At that moment, before the sky was opened, it was all a flurry of
this and that and the everyday. But with the Opening, there came a stillness, a
pause in the endless avalanche of life, if you will, as if the stars themselves
whispered for us to turn away from what troubled us and glimpse what waited at
our journey's end. And the truth is, what the stars showed was no different
from what we had already suspected: There were many paths to that final
destination, and even in the Temple of All That Had Been and Was Still To Come,
the place where all answers waited, it was up to us—to us—to choose our own
way.
—JAKE SISKO,
Anslem
PROLOGUE
In the Hands of the Prophets
"THERE was another
time," the Sisko says.
"It is not linear," Jake answers. The twelve-year-old boy
dangles his fishing line in the quiet water of the pond, rippling the
reflections of towering trees, green fields, and the pure blue sky of Earth.
The sun is strong, and the rich scent of the bridge's sun-warmed wood makes
uncounted summers happen all at once for the Sisko.
"But it is, was, will be.. .." The Sisko falters with
the syntax of eternity. His father plays the upright piano in the restaurant in
New Orleans as the Sisko plunges into the depths of the Fire Caves with Gul
Dukat and first takes his captain's chair on the bridge of the Starship Defiant, all within a single
heartbeat— the same heartbeat.
—The heartbeat of his unborn child, now grown,
now fulfilling a destiny unimaginable to the Sisko, a destiny now
known to him, now unknown.
The Sisko laughs at the wonder of it all.
"You're laughing again," Jean-Luc Picard tells him in
the ready room of the Enterprise,
in orbit of Bajor.
The Sisko looks down at the old uniform he wears at this moment.
The texture feels so real to him, even as it dissolves beneath his fingers and
he is in his bathing suit on the beach carrying lemonade to the woman who will
be/is/was his wife—still at this same moment.
"That is correct," Solok confirms. The young Vulcan
walks beside the Sisko on the path leading from Starfleet Academy's zero-G
gymnasium to the cadets' residences. "All moments are the same."
"In this
time," the Sisko says. He watches Boothby plant fall flowers by the
statue of Admiral Chekov. "But there are other times. That's my
point." The gardener now prunes bushes for the spring.
"This is not logical" Solok says. His cadet's uniform
becomes that of a baseball player, and he tosses a small white ball into the
air, then catches it with the same hand an infinite number of times.
"Logic has no place here," the Sisko says. He reaches
out and intercepts the ball even as Solok attempts to catch it. "Because
logic is linear."
"Some logic is absolute," Sarah Sisko says. She % stands by the viewport in the Sisko's
quarters on Deep Space 9, the radiance of the opening doorway to the Celestial
Temple filtering through her hair. Wormholes within wormholes. Temples within
temples. An infinite regression. Or an eternal one.
"I think I finally know why I'm here," the Sisko says.
"Why you . . . had to be certain my mother would marry my father, give
birth to me."
"You are the Sisko," Major Kira agrees. She stands at
her station in Ops.
"You need
me here," the Sisko says.
"You are the Sisko," Curzon Dax agrees, the vast
spacedocks of Utopia Planitia orbiting with flawless precision beyond the
viewport of his shuttle.
"You need me here to teach you," the Sisko says.
Interruption.
The Sisko finds himself in the light space. Around him Sarah,
Jake, Kira, Solok, Curzon, Worf, and Admiral Ross.
"You have much to learn," the admiral says.
"Then shouldn't I already know it? "
"Your language is imperfect for these matters," Solok
says.
"You have much to realize that you already know," Worf
says.
"That you have always known," Jake says.
The Sisko holds up a finger, and each of his observers watches it,
as he knows they will.
The Sisko regards their expectant faces and laughs again.
"Look at you all," he exclaims. "You want to know what I'm going
to say next. Because you don't know! "
The Prophets are silent
The Sisko thinks of a thing, of a time, of a moment, makes it
real.
And they are on the Promenade of Deep Space 9, as it is the day
the Sisko first sets foot upon it.
The Sisko can smell stale smoke, hear the clamor of work crews.
Feels what the Prophets cannot
feel, the . .. anticipation.
He leads them to the entrance of the Bajoran Temple.
"Since you do not know time, how can you know of
other times?" the Sisko asks, so much that is hidden now
known to him.
As he knows they will, the Prophets continue their silence.
The Sisko holds out his hand to them. "Welcome,
Prophets," the Sisko says with a smile. "Your Emissary awaits
you."
All enter the Temple then. Intendant Kira and Jadzia and Ezri,
Jake and Kasidy, Weyoun and Damar, Quark and Rom and Nog, Bashir and Garak, Vie
and Worf, O'Brien and Keiko and Eddington and Vash. All at the invitation of
the Sisko.
It takes hours for them all to pass through, all in a single
moment.
The last is the Sisko, poised on the threshold of the Temple.
He remembers his own words the first time he stands here.
"Another time."
An infinity of eternities in just two words. An infinity beyond
the understanding of the Prophets.
Until now.
The Sisko enters the Temple.
Not to show them the beginning of things. Because that would be
linear.
He enters the Temple to show them the end.
As it was.
As it is.
As it will be....
CHAPTER 1
on this day, like a beast with talons extended to claw
through space itself, the Station stalked Bajor one final time.
Viewed from high above, from orbit, the dark, curved docking arms
angled sharply downward, as if gouging the planet's surface to leave blood-red
wounds of flame. And from each blazing gash of destruction, wave after wave of
ships lifted from the conquerors' camps and garrisons, on fiery, untempered
columns of full fusion exhaust.
As those ships exploded upward through the planet's smoke-filled
atmosphere, the sonic booms of their passing were like the echo of the
death-screams of the ravished world they left behind. The jewel-like sparkle of
the departing ships' thrusters like the glittering tears of that world's lost
gods.
On this day, on this world, sixty years of butchery and brutality
had at last come to an end.
But on the dark station that was Terok Nor, with viewports that
flashed with phaser bursts and shimmered with the fire of its own inner
destruction, there was still far worse to come.
On this day, the Day of Withdrawal, the Cardassians were leaving.
But they had not left yet...
Held within the cold and patient silence of space, the Promenade
of Terok Nor itself was a tumultuous pocket universe of heat and noise and
confusion.
The security gates that had bisected its circular path had by now
collapsed, twisted by hammers and wire-cutters and the frantically grasping
hands of slaves set free. Glowing restraint conduits that once had bound the
gates now cracked and sparked and sent strobing flashes into the dense blue
haze that choked the air, still Cardassian-hot.
Hull plates resonated with the violent release of multiple,
escaping shuttles and ships. A thrumming wall of sound sprang up as departing
soldiers phasered equipment too heavy to steal.
Decks shook as rampaging looters forced internal doors and
shattered windows. Among the empty shelves of the Chemist's shop, a Bajoran lay
dying, Cardassian blood on his hands, Cardassian bootprints on his back, his
collaboration with the enemy no guarantee of safety in the madness of this day.
Turbolifts whined and ladders rattled against their moorings.
Officers shouted hoarse commands. Soldiers cursed their victims. In
counterpoint, a calm recorded voice recited the orders of the day. "Atten-
tion, all biorganic materials must be disposed of according to
regulations. Attention...."
But on this day, the only response to that directive was the
desperate, high-pitched shriek of a Ferengi in fear for his life. And in fear
for good reason.
Quark the barkeep kicked and fought and shrieked again, as the
Cardassian soldiers, safe in their scarred, hard-edged armor, dragged him from
his bar, soiling and tearing his snug multicolored jacket.
Quark opened his eyes just long enough to recognize the scowling
officer, Datar, a glinn, who waited for him with a coil of ODN cable. In the
same quick glimpse, he saw the antigrav lifter from a cargo bay bobbing in the
air nearby; he heard the soldiers as they mockingly chanted the last words he
would hear before he stood at the doors of the Divine Treasury to give a full
accounting of his life—
"Dabo! Dabo! Dabo!"
Yet even as he faced his last minute of existence, Quark still
couldn't help automatically tallying the damages each time he heard a crash
from his establishment as the Cardassian forces laid waste to it.
A sudden blow slammed Quark to the Promenade deck, and a quick,
savage kick from a heavy leather boot forestalled any thought of escape.
But even as he cried out in pain, Quark wondered if his brother
and nephew had made it to a shuttle, and if the Cardassians had found his
latinum floor vault. He gasped in shock as he felt Glinn Datar's rough hand
claw at the sensitive lobes of his right ear, the violation forcing him to his
feet. In the same terrible moment, Quark found himself wondering just why it
was Cardassians always had such truly disgusting breath.
"Quark!" the glinn growled at him. "You have no
idea how it pains me to take my leave of you."
"All good things," Quark muttered as waves of incredible
pain radiated from his crushed right ear lobe and across his skull and neck.
Datar's swift, expert punch to the center of his stomach doubled
Quark over, his lips gaping in vain for even a mouthful of air.
"Relax, Quark," the glinn hissed, reaching out for
Quark's earlobe again. "It's not necessary for you to speak—ever
again!"
Quark felt himself hauled up until he stared right into Datar's
narrowed eyes. He felt his poor earlobe throb painfully, already starting to
swell.
"My men and I are going to make this a real farewell."
The glinn nodded once and Quark felt huge hands forcibly secure his shoulders
and arms from behind. Datar addressed his soldiers as if reading from a proclamation.
"Quark of Terok Nor, you miserable mound of sluk scum: For the
crime of rigging your dabo table, for the crime of watering your drinks,
short-timing the holosuites, inflating tabs, and... most of all for the crime
of being a Ferengi... I sentence you to death!"
Incredulous, Quark tried to plead his innocence, but his rasping
exhortations were drowned out by the cheers of the surrounding soldiers. He
tried to blurt out the combination of his floor vault, the shuttle access codes
Rom and Nog were going to use to escape, even made-up names of resistance
fighters, but the sharp cutting pressure of the ODN cable Glin Datar suddenly
wrapped around his neck ended any chance he had of saying a word. Even the
squeak that escaped him then registered as little more than a soon-to-be-dead
man's chocked-off wheeze.
Eyes bulging, each racing heartbeat thundering in bis cavernous
ear tunnels, Quark could only watch as two soldiers hooked the other end of the
thick cable to the grappler on the cargo antigrav.
Datar slammed his hand on the antigrav's control and the
meter-long device bucked up a few centimeters, steadied itself, then rose
smoothly and slowly and inexorably, trailing cable until it passed the Promenade's
second level.
The cable snapped taut against Quark's neck, yanking him at last
from the grip of the soldiers who had held him. Kicking frantically, he felt a
boot fly free. He grimaced in embarrassment as he realized his toes were
sticking through the holes worn in his foot wrappings. Hadn't his moogie told
him to always wear fresh underclothes?
Even Quark knew that was a foolish thought to have, especially at
the moment in which he was draw-mg his last breath. His fingers scrabbled at
the cable around his neck, but it was too tight and in too many layers for him
to change the pressure.
Dimly through the pounding that now filled his bead, Quark could
hear the soldiers' laughter and hooting. Even as his vision darkened, he raged
at himself for having failed to predict how quickly the end of the Occupation
would come.
He had seen the signs, discussed it with his suppliers. Another
month, he had concluded, perhaps two. Time enough to profit from the Cardassian
soldiers being shipped out, eager to convert their Bajoran "souvenirs"
to more easily transportable latinum. He had even already booked his passage on
a freighter and—
—Dark stars sparkled at the rapidly shrinking edge of Quark's
vision, as he mourned the deposit he had
paid to Captain Yates. Just then the roar of something large
approaching—something loud and silent all at the same time—swallowed the jeers
of the Cardassians, and Quark felt himself fall, flooded with shock that he
was not ascending to the Divine Treasury but apparently on his way to the
Debtors' Dungeon. How could that be possible? He had lived a life of greed and
self-absorption. How could he not be rewarded with eternal dividends? He wanted
to speak to someone in charge. He wanted to renegotiate the deal. He wanted his
moogie!
And then the back of the deck of the Promenade smacked into the
back of his bulbous head and scrawny neck.
Through starstruck vision, he saw the glow of a phaser emitter
node by his chin, felt a searing flash of heat at his neck, and then the
constriction of the ODN cable was gone.
"Breathe!" a harsh voice shouted from some distant place.
"Moogie?" Quark whispered. His mother was about the only
person he could think of who might have any reason at all for saving him from
the Cardassians.
Then Quark was roused from his lethargy by four nerve-sparking
slaps across his face.
He wheezed with an enormous intake of breath, then choked as he
saw who was saving him from the Cardassians.
Another Cardassian!?
This new Cardassian, gray-skinned and cobra-necked like all the
others, was someone Quark had never seen before. He wore an ordinary soldier's
uni-4. form but had the bearing and diction of an officer, perhaps even of a
gul. All this Quark observed in the split
second it took for the new Cardassian to haul him to Ms feet. As a
barkeep, Quark was a firm believer in the 194th Rule, and since he couldn't
always know about every new customer before that customer walked through
the door, to protect his profits he had been required to become expert at
deducing a customer's likely needs and desires from but a moment's quick
observation.
This Cardassian, for instance, would order vintage kanar, and
would always know if the Saurian brandy was watered. An officer and a
gentleman. Quark (bought admiringly. Reflexively he considered the
likelihood of the Cardassian also needing wise and seasoned—and not
inexpensive—investment help.
But then the gray stranger locked his free arm around Quark's neck
to violently spin him around as he fired his phaser at two other Cardassian
soldiers across the Promenade at the entrance to the Temple.
Quark flopped like a child's doll in the stranger's grip. He
goggled in surprise as he saw the body of Glinn Datar sprawled on the deck
nearby, smoke still curling up from the back of his head and adding to the Hue
haze that filled the Promenade. Cardassians fighting Cardassians? It made
no sense. Especially when it seemed they were fighting over him.
Suddenly Quark's captor crouched down and misted to return fire to
the second level. Still held in a stranglehold, Quark squealed as with an
ear-bruising thump he was whacked backside-first against the deck. Crackling
phaser bursts lanced past him, blackening the Promenade's deck. The scent of
burning carpet now warred with the stench of spoiled food wafting along from
the ruined freezers in the Cardassian Cafe.
"... I'm going to be sick..." Quark whimpered.
But clearly, the Cardassian stranger didn't hear, or didn't care.
Quark felt his gorge begin to rise. Under other circumstances, he
woozily decided, he might wish he were dead rather than feel the way he felt
now. But he seemed too close to that alternative already.
"... I have a stomach neutralizer in my bar..." Quark
mumbled hoarsely. He waved a hand vaguely in the direction of an area behind
his captor. If he could just get back to his bar....
But there was an abrupt lull in the phaser firefight, and the gray
stranger jerked Quark to his feet. He pointed spinward toward the jewelry
shop—or what was left of the jewelry shop. "That way!" he shouted.
"As fast as you can!"
Protectively holding onto both of his oversize ears, Quark peered
through the haze at what appeared to be other figures hiding among the debris
in front of the gem store. Their silhouettes were unmistakable. More Cardassians.
"Could I ask a question?" Quark whispered.
The Cardassian glared at him, then shoved him down to the floor
again and leaped to his feet, slamming both hands together on his phaser as he
fired blast after blast at a group of Cardassians suddenly charging him from
the other direction.
Quark risked looking up just long enough to see multiple shafts of
disruptive energy blast his captor and send him flying across the Promenade.
Alone now, Quark acted on pure instinct and did what any Ferengi would do.
He sped for his latinum, all injuries real and imagined forgotten.
Scuttling like a Ferengi banker crab, half crawling,
half running across the deck, he finally reached the door of his
bar.
Quark rolled through the door and jumped to his feet once he was
securely inside his own domain. "Safe!" he cried out, then cursed as
his one bootless foot trod on a piece of shattered glass.
Only after digging the glass out of his sole did he
think of looking over his shoulder. The scene was one of
mayhem. The Promenade had become a
full-
fledged war zone. Phaser fire streamed back and forth like
lightning in the atmosphere of a gas giant. On the
one hand, Quark had no problem with Cardassians killing
Cardassians. Especially since it would be a few days before he could get his
bar reopened, so a few missing customers wouldn't be noticed. On the other
hand, could it be possible they were killing themselves over him?
"Get down, you fool!"
Quark whirled around at the guttural command. He had no idea where
it came from, but the rough voice was unmistakable.
"Odo?" Quark asked.
Suddenly, a humanoid hand shot out of a dark corner behind the
overturned dabo table, trailing a qua-sitransparent golden shaft of
shape-shifter flesh.
For an instant, Quark felt as if he were about to be engulfed by a
Terran treefrog's tongue, then the hand slurped around his already bruised neck
and snapped him into the shadows.
With the enforced assistance, Quark somersaulted to a sitting
position behind a tumble of broken chairs. Automatically, his barkeep mind
tabulated the potential cost of the damage. Half of them would have to be
replaced, at two slips of latinum each. Three, he could
see, could probably be repaired for half a slip each. He might
even be able to get a deal from Morn if he could be persuaded to stay on the
station. But the way Morn was always traveling around, never staying put for
two days in a row—
"Quark! Get your head down!"
Instantly, Quark flattened out on the floor beside Terok Kor's
shape-shifting constable. Odo's half-finished humanoid face, with its
disturbingly small ears, stared ahead toward the front of the bar, as if he
were expecting an attack any moment.
"How long have you been here?" Quark hissed.
"An hour. Since Gul Dukat left the station."
Quark felt a rush of indignation. If Dukat was already safely
evacuated, why were all these other Cardassians still here? "You were
hiding here when they dragged me out there?" he said
accusingly.
Odo looked at him, nothing to hide. "Yes."
"Aren't you supposed to be the law on this station?"
"I am a duly appointed law-enforcement official."
"Doesn't that mean you're supposed to protect law-abiding
citizens?"
"Your point would be?"
"They were going to kill me!"
"Yes," Odo said again.
Quark fairly vibrated with outrage as he tried to find the proper
words to express his fury and sense of betrayal. "Then why didn't you try
to stop them?!" he finally said, adding sarcastically, "In your
capacity, that is, as a duly appointed law-enforcement official."
Odo shrugged as best he could for someone lying on his stomach
among a cluster of broken bar chairs.
"A shrug?" Quark said. "That's your answer? The law
doesn't apply to people like me? You're not a law-
enforcement official, you're the judge and jury too, is that
it?"
As usual, Odo's eerily smooth visage revealed no emotion, only the
weary resignation of a teacher forced to repeat a lesson for the hundredth
time. "Fifty-two hours ago, Terok Nor ceased to be a protectorate of the
Bajoran Cooperative Government. Martial Jaw was declared under the provisions
of the Cardassian Uniform Code of Military Justice."
Quark waited ... and waited ... but Odo said nothing more, as if
his most unsatisfactory explanation had Been fully complete.
"And?" the Ferengi said in a state approaching apoplexy.
"Quark, I heard the charges the glinn read against you. You have
rigged your dabo table. You do water jour drinks. You short-time the
holosuites and inflate the tabs you run for customers who have consumed
too much alcohol to be able to keep track of their spending. Under military
law, the Cardassians were within their legal rights to execute you."
Quark's mouth opened and closed silently as if the ODN cable were
wrapped around his neck once more. The only words he managed to utter were,
"But they were going to hang me for the crime of... of being a
Ferengi!"
Odo shrugged again. "Even the Cardassians are allowed poetic
license." Then Odo held a finger to his lips and nodded sharply at the
main entrance to the bar.
Quark looked out to the Promenade. The firefight had stopped. It
was too much to hope that both sides had killed each other. Which could only
mean one side or the other had won. "I hope someone steals your
bucket," he snarled at the shape-shifter.
His insolence, however justifiable, earned him a sharp jab in the
ribs. Unfortunately in the very location where the brutish Cardassians had
kicked him.
Then three figures stepped into the bar.
Quark recognized them at once. They were the same three he had
seen silhouetted by the gem store. Which meant the loser in the fight he'd just
survived had been the Cardassian who had tried to save him.
One of the three interlopers scanned the bar with a bulky
Cardassian tricorder. It took only seconds for him to point to the mound of
chairs by the overturned dabo table.
A second of the three stepped forward. "Ferengi. Constable Odo.
Step into the open, hands raised."
Quark looked at Odo. The shape-shifter had the expression of an
addicted tongo player calculating the odds of calling a successful roll.
"Step out now," the Cardassian threatened, "and you
will have a chance to live. Remain where you are, and you will certainly
die."
"I'm convinced," Quark said and pushed himself to his
feet, in spite of Odo's accusatory glare.
He frowned at the angry shape-shifter. "Oh, turn yourself
into a broken chair or something." Then he stepped forward, hands
stretched overhead, wincing as his torn jacket sleeve momentarily brushed his
injured earlobe.
As Quark limped heavily toward the three Cardassians, he actually
heard Odo step out from cover behind him. But then his attention was diverted by
another surprising observation that had escaped him on first seeing the three
strangers: These Cardassians weren't in uniforms. They were civilians. Three
young males clothed in drab shades of blue, brown, and gray,
without even the identity pins that might establish them as
members of the Occupation bureaucracy or diplomatic corps. Two of them,
though—the ones in blue and brown—carried military-issue phase-disrup-tor
pistols, the housing of each weapon segmented like the abdomen of a golden
beetle. What is it about Cardassians and bugs? Quark wondered. If he
could just understand that about them, he'd know exactly what
would tempt them to buy, and he'd corner yet another market missed
by others.
But then Quark's soothing thoughts of profit were displaced by
alarm as the gray-clad Cardassian shoved tricorder like a weapon in the
barkeep's face. This particular Cardassian was distinct from the others because
he was bald. Quark had never seen a bald Car-dassian before. In some ways, the
sleekness of the
Carrdassian's skull made the alien look more intelligent. Except,
of course, for his pathetically small ears. Not to mention the two secondary
spinal cords running up the sides of his wide and flattened neck like cables of
a suspension bridge. And the spoon-shaped flap of gray flesh on his forehead
that made him look like a—
The light from the tricorder's small screen flashed a different
set of colors across the bald Cardassian's face. "This Ferengi's
Quark."
The Cardassian in the blue tunic gestured at Quark
with his phaser. Quark noticed that his overgarment
was torn at the shoulder and smudged with black soot, as if its
wearer had ripped it on burning debris. "There are two other Ferengi on
the station."
The Cardassian in blue didn't have to ask the obvious question
for Quark to decide to answer it. There was no profit in withholding
information for which they could easily torture him. "My brother and
nephew. They left on a shuttle as soon as we heard what was
happening on Bajor." Quark was confident he could carry off the lie. He
had been dealing with the Cardassians—and the gelatinous Odo—long enough to
have developed a reasonably effective tongo face.
The Cardassian in the torn blue tunic stared at Quark a few
moments longer, as if he expected the Ferengi to suddenly break down and
confess the real whereabouts of Rom and Nog. But since Quark had no actual
knowledge of where his cowardly brother and confused nephew were at this
precise moment, it was doubly easy to stare back with an expression of total innocence.
At last, his interrogator turned to the bald Cardassian with the
tricorder. "What setting do we need to kill the shape-shifter?"
Quark stared hard at Odo beside him. Let's see how you like it,
he thought peevishly.
But maddening as ever, Odo simply stared impassively at the three
Cardassians, betraying not even a hint of emotion. The shape-shifter was as
annoying, in his way, as a Vulcan.
"Wait." It was the third Cardassian who intervened now.
The one in the brown tunic, so blatantly new it still bore the creases from
having been folded on some display shelf, probably in Garak's tailor shop. This
Cardassian was certainly not bald. His long black hair was drawn back in the
same style as some soldiers Quark had seen. The new civilian clothes could mean
he was a spy, but they could also mean he was a coward. Which one, however,
Quark couldn't yet be sure. But because the brown-suited Cardassian didn't seem
eager to kill Odo, Quark was leaning toward the latter.
"Can you take on the appearance of a Ferengi?" the
Cardassian in the suspiciously new civilian clothing asked Odo.
Odo frowned. "If I had to."
Quark scowled at the constable. From the way the shape-shifter
answered, it was obvious he'd rather
change himself into a mound of garbage before he'd become a
Ferengi.
"Would that work?" The question came from the Cardassian
in the torn blue tunic, and was addressed to the bald Cardassian with the
tricorder.
"We only have one Ferengi. If we need a backup...."
".All right. We won't kill you. Yet." The imperious
pronouncement from the Cardassian in blue made Quark think for the first time
that the group had a leader. Whatever that information was worth.
"How generous of you," Odo replied with ill-concealed
sarcasm.
Responding immediately, the Cardassian leader smashed his phaser
across Odo's face as if to teach him a lesson in obedience.
Though Quark had seen it before, he still cringed as Odo's face
rippled into a honey-like jelly at the moment of impact, allowing the phaser to
slip Trough his mutable flesh as if passing through smoke.
An instant later, Odo's humanoid face had reformed, his expression
still one of vague disinterest.
The Cardassian bared his teeth like a Klingon, as if he were about
to attack Odo again and this time with more than a single blow. But the bald
Cardassian put his hand on the attacker's shoulder. "We can't keep her
waiting," he said. Her? Quark thought. Now that was
something new.
Perhaps there was another leader. But who? And for what
reason?
The Cardassian in brown gestured harshly with his phaser.
"Turbolift 5's still working."
This time it was Odo who made the first move. He started forward,
onto the Promenade, and Quark followed gingerly—with each step he could feel
another sliver of glass he'd missed get driven deeper into his exposed foot.
"Could I just get my boot?" he asked plaintively.
"Only if you want to die," the bald Cardassian growled.
Quark sighed heavily and gritted his teeth, stepping carefully
around the sprawled bodies of the fallen Cardassian soldiers. "Interesting
negotiating technique you've got there," he muttered.
"Faster," was the bald Cardassian's only reply.
Quark picked up his pace and followed Odo into the haze.
After they had passed a few empty shopfronts, Quark realized what
was different about the Promenade. "Does it seem quiet to you?" he
whispered to Odo.
Odo sighed. "Yes, Quark. Too quiet."
Quark snorted as he recognized the line Odo had quoted. "And
I thought you didn't like holosuite programs."
"The next one of you who talks dies," a Cardassian snarled
from behind them.
This time, Odo smiled nastily at Quark as if to say, Please
continue. But Quark walked on in dignified silence.
As they stepped cautiously over the torn-down and sparking
security gate leading to the Bajoran half of the station, Quark looked up to
see a fourth Cardas-
sian, also in civilian clothes, crouching on the second level. For
an instant, their eyes met. It was Garak.
Quark was just about to call out Garak's name when he remembered
the Cardassians' two phasers and the order he and Odo had just been given.
But the bald Cardassian had already noticed where he was looking,
and now glanced up at the second level as well. Quark held his breath, but the
bald Cardassian looked away, having seen no one. Garak had obviously jumped back,
out of view.
Quark wasted no time trying to figure out why. No one had any
reasonable explanation for why the Cardassians were leaving Bajor after sixty
years of the Occupation. They were aliens, so in Quark's view— in the sensible,
practical Ferengi view of things— they were obviously going to behave like
aliens. As they should be allowed to do. Provided they paid their bills, of
course. Alien or not, some laws were universal.
Turbolift 5 was on the Promenade's inner ring, just across from
the small Bajoran Infirmary. Though the door to the Infirmary was open, Quark
could see there was no sign of damage within. And why would there be? There had
never been anything of value in it. All the medical supplies that came aboard
Terok Nor were destined for the fully equipped Cardassian Infirmary across from
his bar. The Bajoran Infirmary might just as well have been a barber shop for
all the medicine that was allowed to be practiced in it.
Against all logic, the turbolift car arrived. Another event that
made no sense to Quark. All the main lights on the Promenade were out. Only
emergency glow panels were operating. And virtually all other equipment, from
automatic firefighting systems to station
communicators and the replicators were off-line. But not, it seemed,
Turbolift 5.
The bald Cardassian scanned the waiting car with his tricorder,
then stepped inside. The leader in the torn blue tunic waved Quark and Odo in
without speaking.
Quark looked out at the Promenade as the lift doors closed. For a
moment, he saw Garak again, huddled behind the rolling door of the disabled
security gate across the main floor. At least, the figure had looked like
Garak. But what would Garak have put on a uniform for... ? Quark couldn't
identify the tailor's military-style outfit, other than that he knew it wasn't
Cardassian.
Quark looked to Odo to silently inquire if the shape-shifter had
seen Garak, but Odo was still pointedly ignoring him.
Quark decided he could play that game every bit as well as Odo,
and looked straight ahead as the lift descended. The movement felt unusually
rough, as if the power grids were under strain. Quark tried his utmost not to
think about that. The last thing he wanted was to be trapped in a turbolift
with three surly Cardassians. Unlike Odo, he couldn't count on conveniently
escaping by liquefying and slurping out between the doors....
Quark took another look at Odo as a sudden thought struck him. Why
was the shape-shifter still here? He himself was trapped, of that there
was no question. But Odo had already had at least a dozen opportunities to make
his escape.
As Quark pondered the shape-shifter's motives, that portion of his
brain that constantly counted and calculated registered that they had
descended precisely ten
levels. Almost unconsciously, Quark braced for the turbolift car's
change of direction as it would begin to move laterally along one of the
station's spokes.
But the direction didn't change. The car kept descending past the
level of the docking ring.
Quark began to feel again the clammy touch of panic. Up till now,
he had been operating under the assumption that there was something these three
Cardassians—and she, whoever she was—wanted him to do. The fact
that they wanted anything at all meant, reassuringly, that he was in the middle
of a business transaction. And when it came to business, Quark knew he was
definitely fighting on home soil.
But now, once again, he was heading into unknown territory. As far
as he knew, the lower core of the station was the site of the fusion reactors,
the power transfer manifolds and basic utilities, and its few residence levels
were little more than prison cells for Bajoran ore workers. It was a realm for
engineers, not business people. Even worse, he was not aware of any docking
ports off the lower levels. The only way out of the lower core would be back up
through the turbolift shafts.
Or through an emergency airlock, he thought queasily.
Quark moaned as he realized the trap he was entering. Then moaned
again when he realized he had been so thrown off-balance by the lift car's
continued descent that he had actually lost count of the levels they had
passed. And every fool knew that a Ferengi who lost count had lost everything.
The two phaser-armed Cardassians continued to stare at him, their
weapons held loosely at their sides as if daring him to break the rules and
talk. But, finally, Turbolift 5 reached its destination.
The stop was so sudden, Quark felt the car rise back up a few
centimeters as if it had overshot the desired deck. Then the doors opened.
The level beyond the open doors was so dark, it looked to Quark
like the void of space itself.
But the Cardassian leader in the torn blue tunic pushed him
forward anyway, and Odo at his side, even before a welcome pool of light from a
palm torch sprang to life ahead of them.
"Straight ahead," the Cardassian leader ordered,
Quark limped on, as told. Adding to his resentful discomfort now
was the fact that the deck plates on this lower level weren't covered by any
type of carpet. They were just bare hull metal as far as he could tell. And
since the station's lower core was terraced like a towering cake built upside
down, Quark realized with a sinking feeling it was entirely possible that boundless
space was really only a few centimeters below his feet.
But then, why are the deck plates so hot? he wondered.
He decided he absolutely hated Terok Nor. He'd be glad to leave
it.
Alive, he
added quickly, in case the Blessed Exchequer or any of his Exalted Tellers
happened to be listening in.
The long, curving corridor on this level was narrower than others
on the station. The ceiling lower. And except for a pale patch of light which
Quark was just now beginning to perceive ahead, it seemed that none of the
emergency glowpanels was functioning down here.
The spot of light from the palm torch kept skittering ahead,
leading the way. On either side it was too
gloomy for Quark to make out the Cardassian directional and
warning signs on the bulkheads, but every few meters he passed an inner door.
Some of these were open, with total darkness beyond.
If I were Odo, Quark thought darkly, I'd be through one of those doors so fast
the light from the palm torch couldn't catch me.
But most inexplicably, the shape-shifter remained at Quark's side,
even letting the Ferengi's injured foot set the pace.
Finally, just as Quark feared he would fall to the floor in
exhaustion, the Cardassian leader ordered them to turn right at the next
intersection. It was a cul-de-sac, where Quark would normally expect to
find a turbolift. But instead, he halted before three more Cardassians, all
females this time. Two were in soldier's armor, crisp, unmarked, the composite
surfaces gleaming in the way Quark had come to recognize only the most elite
Cardassian units were able to maintain. And despite the cold level of threat
the two uniformed females presented, there was no doubt in Quark as to which
female his three captors served.
She was the one in the middle, the only one in a matte-black
civilian outfit that clung, Quark appreciatively noted, to the ridges of her
spinal cords like a second skin.
"This is the only Ferengi on the station." Surprisingly,
it was not the Cardassian in the torn blue tunic who was the first to address
the female. It was the bald Cardassian with the tricorder. But in any case,
Quark knew they were now in the presence of the real leader of the entire
group, male and female—She.
The female leader studied Quark as if he were livestock at an
auction. Quark straightened up, smirking
engagingly, but her widely spaced dark eyes turned to Odo.
"Why is that here?"
The bald Cardassian's reply was instant. "I thought we could
use him as a backup. He can take on the shape of a Ferengi."
Quark's evaluation of the female shot up in value with her
skeptical response. "But can he take on the brain of a
Ferengi?"
"Terrell," the bald Cardassian said deferentially,
"with respect, we are running out of options. Dukat has left. The station
will be under Bajoran control in hours."
Terrell frowned as she hunted for something in the engineer's case
she wore at the side of her wide belt. "Unlikely. In fifty-three minutes,
the station will be a debris field and navigational hazard. Dukat activated the
self-destruct." She removed a palm phaser and without a moment's pause
shot Odo.
The constable grunted and slumped to his knees, gasping painfully
for breath. But to Quark's intense relief, Odo was only lightly stunned.
Terrell lowered her palm phaser and glared at the bald Cardassian.
"Atrig, that thing is a shape-shifter. It could have escaped you
whenever it chose. The fact that it didn't, suggests it was spying on us."
The bald Cardassian's reaction to his leader's admonition was
most revealing to Quark. It was definitely not that of a soldier. The
Cardassian in the gray tunic merely clenched his teeth, glanced down,
embarrassed more than anything else. Definitely not the response of a soldier.
Quark's fuschia-rimmed eyes narrowed in speculation. If these two had come into
his bar as customers, Quark would have instantly concluded that Atrig, Terrell's
bald subordinate, was desperately in
love with his superior, while Terrell considered Atrig as nothing
more than a useful tool she might carry in her case.
"Of course," the bald Cardassian said, in almost a
whisper, his head still respectfully lowered.
Terrell dropped the small phaser back into her case. "Just
see you keep it stunned in case we do need it." Then she turned her
attention to Quark. "You will perform a service for the Cardassian
Union. If you succeed, you will have time to reach an escape pod before the
station self-destructs. If you fail...." Her smile was cruel.
Quark looked questioningly at Atrig. Atrig understood. "Now
you can talk."
"What kind of service?" Quark demanded. Let the
negotiations begin, he thought.
"A simple one." Terrell turned her back to him and faced
a blank bulkhead. Though he couldn't see exactly what she was doing, Quark
could tell she was operating some kind of small device, for the bulkhead began
to move to one side, revealing an extension of the corridor.
Quark's first reaction was one of true surprise. His second was of
true apprehension. Over the years he had mapped every hidden section of the
station, to establish his network of smugglers' tunnels—but here was a corridor
extension completely unknown to him. And beyond it, there was a light source,
about ten meters past the bulkhead.
Quirk squinted at the light. It appeared to be emanating from a
door whose center glowed pale pink.
"What's in there?" Quark asked nervously.
Terrell turned back to him. "Nothing for a Ferengi to
fear." Then she nodded, and Quark felt himself
pushed forward, toward the light, a phaser jammed between his
shoulder blades.
Halfway to the door, he heard a sudden commotion behind him, then
phaser fire. Odo. The constable must have tried to make his escape, and
not been fast enough.
Quark chanced glancing over his shoulder and did a relieved double
take. Odo was still staggering along behind him, supported by the Cardassian in
the torn blue tunic.
But now the two armor-clad female Cardassians held a third stunned
captive.
Garak.
The Cardassian tailor was no longer in the strange uniform Quark
had been unable to identify, but was back in his usual civilian garb. Quark
didn't stop to question the change. He had always suspected that Garak wasn't
the plain, simple tailor he made himself out to be. All Cardassians were
masters of conspiracy, duplicity, and deviousness. The only remaining mystery
for Quark was how the contentious aliens had managed to occupy Bajor as a
cohesive force for as long as they had.
Atrig grabbed Quark's shoulder, forcing him to a stop three meters
from the glowing door.
Correction, Quark
thought. The door wasn't just glowing. It was pulsating. The effect was
difficult to define precisely, but to Quark it seemed as if the door
alternately bulged out and relaxed in, as if it were the flank of some large
creature slowly breathing. The glow intensified with each intake of breath,
changing from rose-pink to dark red, and Quark saw now that the light it
created wasn't uniform. Instead, the vertical surface rippled outward, like a
rock-disturbed pool of water standing on its side.
But that shimmering surface wasn't liquid, Quark knew. It was a
solid layer protecting those on the outside from something that these six
Cardassians didn't want to face—or couldn't.
Yet for some reason, they believed a Ferengi could.
But why? Quark
thought, even now still trying to find an angle to exploit. If whatever was
causing the door to ripple and glow was some deadly form of radiation, the
Cardassians could have captured anyone to ... to do whatever it was they wanted
done. It was a well-known fact to everyone on the station that no Cardassian
officer would hesitate to order a fellow Cardassian soldier to face death.
So why do they need a Ferengi? And only a Ferengi?
"Garak," Terrell said with sarcastic condescension.
"I don't know which surprises me more. That you haven't left the station
already. Or that Dukat left you alive."
Quark looked back to see Terrell standing before Garak. The tailor's
sagging body was held upright by the two female soldiers, each holding an arm.
Garak shook his head as if to clear it.
"I was merely trying to warn you," the tailor said
faintly. "I believe that Gul Dukat may have failed to inform you that for
some reason the station's self-destruct system has been inadvertently
activated. You should leave as quickly as possible."
Terrell patted the tailor's cheek. "Why, Garak, how noble of
you."
'Terrell, my dear, given all that we mean to each other, I feel I
owe it to you."
Interesting, Quark
thought.
"And I owe you. So much."
Quark shivered at the unpleasant edge to Terrell's cool voice.
Garak merely nodded as he glanced at the glowing door. In the
rose-colored light, his gray Cardassian skin took on an almost sickening,
raw-meat color. "Well, I can see you're busy. So I'll be on my way."
"You'll leave with me, Garak. Interrogating you will help
pass the time on the way back home." Now Terrell's voice was openly
menacing.
Garak's careful civility gave way to cold rage. "You know I
cannot go back to Cardassia."
"I do know," Terrell said. "That's why I'll execute
you myself before we arrive." Then she turned toward the glowing door, her
back to the Cardassian tailor as if he no longer existed.
Quark's eyes followed her movement to the door. He alone of the
observers gasped at the change. It was as if Terrell now faced a vortex of
glowing magma, blazing with light, yet producing no heat. Pulsating coils of
red light snaked out from the rapidly deforming surface of the door. Some
tendrils seemed almost ready to break free of the surface, as if whatever lay
beyond was increasing its efforts to escape confinement.
Quark felt himself pushed forward again by the bald Cardassian.
"Terrell," Quark squeaked, his voice breaking in its
urgency. "I'm going to need some information." More than anything
else, he longed to run home. But he knew that wasn't possible. Perhaps he'd
never see Ferenginar again. "What in the name of all that's profitable is
in there?"
"A lab," Terrell said tersely. "What you're seeing
is merely a holographic illusion. A new type of holosuite technology."
Quark couldn't be certain of the truth. He couldn't see any
holoemitters in this hidden section of corridor. But then, they could be
installed behind the illusion. Maybe—
Don't be a fool, Quark told himself.
Whatever was responsible for the phenomenon before him, it wasn't
an illusion, and it was dangerous. There was no other reason for him to
be here.
"So what do I have to do?" Quark asked.
"Go into the lab—"
Quark couldn't help himself. "Through that thing?! You're
crazy!" He flinched as Atrig shoved a phaser into his back. "My
mistake," he croaked.
"We will open the door," Terrell continued. "You
will go inside the lab, ignoring everything you hear, everything you see,
except for the main lab console on the far wall."
"Everything I hear?" Quark asked, his voice trailing
off as his imagination got the best of him.
Terrell ignored his apprehension. "On the main console,
you'll see a... power unit. A ... type of power crystal. Sixty-eight
centimeters tall. Twenty-five wide at its top and bottom. Spindle-shaped. You
can't miss it."
The corridor fell into momentary darkness as the door heaved
inward.
"And you want me to bring it out," Quark said weakly.
Terrell nodded at him. "Very perceptive. It's in an open
housing. Simply disconnect two power leads to detach it from the console, then
carry the crystal out. As soon as you do ... you'll be free to go."
Her very unconvincing smile confirmed the situation for Quark. He
instantly knew that if he did sue-
ceed in retrieving the crystal from the lab, a minute later he'd
be as dead as if he were still dangling at the end of an ODN cable on the
Promenade.
Quark's agile mind raced to identify the loopholes in this transaction.
But he had run out of time.
"Open the door," Terrell ordered.
At once, the Cardassian with the torn blue tunic moved to place
himself alongside the pulsating door, one arm stretched out before him. With
one trembling hand, Quark shielded his eyes from the increasing red glare to
see what the Cardassian was trying to do.
At the edge of distortion effect, Quark saw a door control. The
Cardassian in blue touched it gingerly.
Incredibly, the door seemed to melt to one side, and Quark
squinted as the light level reached an almost painful intensity.
"—YES— "
Startled, Quark looked around, trying to see who had just cried
out.
It was Odo.
"YES! YES, I UNDERSTAND!" Odo shouted. He struggled in the grip of
the Cardassian in the new brown tunic, the Cardassian who Quark suspected was
either a soldier, a coward, a spy. "/ WILL—" Odo screamed.
Then the shape-shifter began to reach out his arms, stretching away from his
captor toward the blood red light of the lab.
"Stop him!" Terrell commanded.
Instantly, Atrig stunned Odo again and the shape-shifter slumped,
as his semiconscious body slowly assumed its humanoid shape once more.
"What happened?" Quark demanded.
"You didn't hear them?" Terrell asked in return.
"The voices calling?"
"What voices?"
Terrell's face blazed with reflected crimson light. "You'll
do fine," she said. "Go! Now!"
Pushed relentlessly forward by Atrig, Quark swayed before the open
doorway. He could see nothing in the lab except a swirl of light, a whirlpool
of luminescence.
"Hurry!" Terrell shouted.
And then the light swirls fragmented before Quark, becoming
writhing tendrils that seemed to reach out for him and—
"TERRELL!"
This time the outcry came from Atrig, as the bald Cardassian
leaped through the air to meet the coil of light heading directly for the woman
he loved. The light hit Atrig square in the back, hurling him across the
corridor as if a battering ram had struck him.
Atrig's limp form crumpled to the deck, a glowing patch of carmine
light flickering over him.
Quark ducked as two more tentacles of flame-red energy snapped out
from the doorway. Beneath the crackle of their passage, he heard hideous
screams. Saw the Cardassian in blue and the other in brown lifted up from the
deck, wrapped in red light.
Their cries became muffled as the scarlet glow spread over them,
flowing around them like a hungry wave. Then, horribly, slowly, their wildly
flailing arms and legs ceased their struggle, as if the light itself were
somehow thick and resistant.
Forgetting for a moment that Atrig no longer was behind him to
prevent his escape, Quark stared at the faces of the two trapped Cardassians.
Their gaping
mouths were stretched in soundless wails. And then, like a plasma
whip being cracked, the two were sucked back into the vortex of light, disappearing
in an instant.
Odo—now held by no one—knelt on the deck and looked back at the
light. Quark could see him silently mouth a single word, over and over—Yes...
yes... yes....
The two female soldiers still held on to Garak, showing no fear,
but clearly ready to leave as soon as they were ordered.
Quark turned to flee, but Terrell blocked his way. Her palm phaser
was aimed directly at his head. "Hurry!"
Quark stared at Terrell. It was madness to do what she wanted. It
was guaranteed suicide. But as much as he hated to admit it, if he didn't do as
she ordered, then that fool Odo would be on his feet and stumbling forward in
Quark's place, into something that for some unknown reason the Cardassians
believed only a Ferengi could survive.
Quark told himself it wasn't respect he felt for Odo. It was just
that after so many years of being adversaries, he knew how the shape-shifter
thought, knew his strategies. And most importantly, Quark thought, he knew how
much he could get away with. And for some inexplicable reason, the
shape-shifter had stayed at his side all the way from the Promenade, when he
could have escaped and left Quark to his fate—alone.
Quark's chest swelled out as he drew in a deep breath. As the old
Ferengi saying had it, Better the Auditor you know, than the Auditor you don't.
Sometimes, he told himself, you just have to sign the contract you
negotiated.
"Now!" Terrell ordered.
Quark released his breath in a mighty sigh, covered his head with
his arms, and ran straight through the doorway into the blinding red light and—
—his cut and bleeding foot suddenly sank into a soft sludge of
cooling mud.
It was raining. A soft mist, really.
Quark stood completely still, eyes tightly shut.
The air was sweetly perfumed with the fetid rot of a swamp.
The swamp.
Quark lowered his arms from his head. Opened one eye. Then the
other. And then he gasped as through the dark silhouettes of reaching branches
and hanging moss, he saw the soft and welcoming lights of the Fer-enginar
capital city shining through the distance and the dark of night.
"Home ..." he cried, delighting in the magical way the
word created a delicate puff of mist before him.
But Quark was no believer in magic. He needed to know how it was
he could see his breath as a delicate puff of mist. There had to be another
source of light nearby.
He looked around trying to figure out where the lab had gone,
where Terok Nor had gone, if he had finally died.
But all questions were erased as he saw a sparkle of blue-white
brilliance approaching through the swamp trees, as if a living diamond were
floating toward him.
Quark was completely overcome by the beauty of the spectacle. He
stood transfixed until...
"Quark? Is that you, son?"
Quark's mouth dropped open in incredulity. "Moogie?"
"Over here, Quark...."
Quark shifted in the mud of his homeworld, and suddenly the
glittering diamond was before him, held in his beloved mother's arms.
"Why didn't you tell me you were coming home," Quark's
mother said crankily. "I would have made your favorite mooshk."
Quark's mouth watered at the intense memory of his moogie's mooshk.
And to see her right now, glowing as if she were a part of the crystal she
held, her completely unclothed skin faceted with light.
"So the only thing I have to give you is this," Quark's
mother said. She held out the glittering jewel to him, until it seemed to float
by itself, a shining, hourglass-shaped orb of promise and hope and everything
anyone could ever want. "Go ahead, Quark. Take it. . . ."
Quark reached for the orb like a child reaching for a toy.
Everything was going to be perfect now.
But as his hands closed on the object his mother was giving him,
one tiny nagging thought came to him.
Small. Subtle. Barely worth mentioning.
Something that might only occur to a Ferengi.
"Moogie," Quark said. "Can I ask you a
question?"
And as Quark's mother began her transformation, Quark shrieked
louder than any Ferengi had ever shrieked, as he saw—
CHAPTER 2
—stars flashed before
Quark's eyes, and he slapped his hand to his expansive forehead, grimacing with
pain.
"Who designed this frinxing bed.. ." he muttered,
as he swung his feet over the edge of the narrow Cardassian sleeping ledge and
tried once more to sit up, this time without banging his head on the underside
of a utility shelf.
Then he looked around at the stark holding cell in Deep Space 9's
Security Office and answered his own question.
"Cardassians. Ha!"
Quark had had it with Cardassians. In fact, even though the
Cardassian Occupation had ended six long years ago, Quark had had it with this
station. "Deep Space 9, Terok Nor ... Federation bureaucrats, Cardassian
secret police.... What's the difference? I ask you...."
He stood in front of the holding cell's forcefield and checked to
make certain the Security Office beyond was still empty. Though the lighting
levels were low, set for DS9's night, the main door was still sealed and Quark
remained safely alone. He cleared his throat. "Computer: Release the
prisoner."
The security screen flashed with silver scintillations, then shut
down. At least, it appeared to shut down. Quark wasn't a Ferengi to take
anything for granted. He carefully flicked a finger toward the boundary of the
forcefield, until he was certain the screen was off. Only then did he step over
the lip of the cell doorway.
Quark trudged across the deck in his nightclothes, scratching
where it itched. He came to the replicator, smacked his lips, then punched in
his prisoner code for a cup of millipede juice, hold the shells. The cup
appeared and Quark gulped the pale green bug squeez-ings down, looking around
to check that he was still—
"Bzzzt—you're dead," Odo said, only one meter behind
him.
Quark choked, then sprayed a mouthful of millipede juice, forcing
Odo to step back out of range.
"Don't do that!" Quark sputtered indignantly, wiping
bug juice off his sleep shirt.
Odo shook his head, not impressed. "Would you rather the
Andorian sisters did that?"
Quark jammed the cup back into the replicator for recycling.
"You're supposed to be protecting me. That's what this is, remember?"
Quark waved his hands to include the entire security office. "Protective
custody."
Odo pointed to the holding cell. "In there. Behind a
forcefield. That's protective custody. Out here, you're fair game."
Quark rubbed at his temples, not knowing where the pain of his
impact with the shelf left off, and his tension headache began. Twenty meters
away, just across the Promenade, his bar was in the hands of Rom. Engineer Rom.
Turned-his-back-on-everything-Fer-engi, work-for-free,
use-a-padd-to-total-all-bills, good-for-nothing Rom.
"Are you all right?" Odo asked.
"Do you care?"
Odo crossed his arms. "Not particularly."
Quark muttered a partially satisfying Ferengi epithet under his
breath and looked around for a padd.
"Now what?" Odo asked
"I need something to read. Rom's driving me into bankruptcy
and there's no way I can sleep."
"Actually, the bar has seldom been busier."
In a sudden wave of apprehension, Quark grabbed Odo's tunic.
"He's cut prices, hasn't he? Go ahead, I can take it."
Odo firmly removed Quark's hands from his chest. "Rom is
treating the customers fairly. Word must have gotten out, and so business is
up. You should be happy."
Quark couldn't believe the foul language Odo was capable of using.
" 'Fairly.' I'm ... I'm ruined. I..." And then Quark could see no
other way out. "All right, that's it. Protective custody is over. Thank
you. I'm going to my—"
Odo didn't let him finish. And didn't let him leave. "It's
not that simple, Quark."
Quark had been battling Odo for more than a decade. He knew what
that tone meant. "What do you mean, not that simple? Being in here was my
idea."
"It was your idea. Now, I'm afraid, it's mine."
Quark rocked back on Ms bare feet, studying Odo more closely in
the dim light. "You are worried about me. I'm touched. But, I'm
also running behind, so—"
Odo didn't move from Quark's path. "Please return to your
cell."
Quark laughed derisively, smiled broadly. "Odo ... you almost
make it seem as if you're putting me under arrest."
Odo said nothing. He didn't have to.
"You can't be serious," Quark said. He knew his earlobes
were flushing telltale red. "No, I take that back. You're always serious.
What I meant was, you're joking. No, you don't do that either. But what you do
do is ..." Quark's throat tightened. He couldn't bring himself to say
the words.
Odo could. "Put people under arrest."
"For what?!" Quark demanded. His face creased in
a disbelieving grin as he said the most outrageous thing he could think of. "Murder?"
But Odo's silence and unchanging expression made the grin fade.
Quark's head throbbed unbearably. "Odo, you know me. How many
times do I have to say it? I did not kill Dal Nortron."
"That's right. I do know you, Quark. Which is why I don't
believe that you planned and carried out the premeditated cold-blooded murder
of your Andorian business partner."
Quark sagged with relief. "Well, at least we can ..." He
looked up at Odo with sudden fear. " 'Business partner'?"
"Did you honestly think you could keep it from me?"
"The Andorian sisters did it! They killed him!"
"And they say that you killed him. Imagine that."
"So you're arresting me on their word but
you're not arresting them on mine?!"
Odo uncrossed his arms and shook his head. "Quark, we've been
over this. If I arrest Satr and Leen while they are on DS9 as representatives
of the Andorian government, they will file a diplomatic protest, I will have
to release them, and I guarantee they will leave the station and my
jurisdiction within the hour."
"Sure! Right! So that's why they can walk around the station
free as a greeworm while I'm in here—"
"Where they can't get you."
"No!" Quark exploded. "Where / am under arrest!"
Odo looked away as if preparing to leave. Quark knew that was how
the changeling preferred to solve most of his problems. By avoiding confrontation.
But then, Odo looked back at Quark, and there was almost an air of
sorrow about him. "Quark, listen carefully. This time, you are in serious
trouble. Two nights ago, Dal Nortron won a considerable amount of latinum from
you."
"It happens, Odo," Quark said tightly. "That's why
they call it gambling."
But Odo did not allow himself to be interrupted. "Two hours
later, Dal Nortron died—"
"Of unknown causes!"
"Under mysterious circumstances. The latinum— gone."
"Odo, think about it. How long would I stay in business if I
started killing everyone who won at my dabo table? Are you kidding? I give the
winners presents! I give them unlimited holosuite sessions—even free
drinks!" Quark shuddered at the thought of it. "I do whatever I
can to get them to return to that table so I can win my latinum back. I don't
kill customers!"
"Satr and Leen say you had an argument with Nortron."
Quark glared at the changeling. "I have arguments with you.
And I haven't killed you. Yet."
"Quark—pay attention! If I hadn't put you in protective
custody, the Andorians would have killed you for revenge. They see justice in
rather more simplistic terms than I do."
Now the sorrow was Quark's, as well. "Justice? So you do
think I'm a murderer."
Odo reluctantly confirmed Quark's conclusion. "There is the
matter of Kozak—"
"Kozak?! That was almost four years ago. And it was an
accident!"
"Exactly," Odo agreed. "As I said, I do not believe
you planned to kill Dal Nortron. But accidents do happen. Especially in
the heat of an argument between business partners."
Quark swung his hand at Odo as if trying to clear the air.
"Why don't you just string me up on the Promenade and be—" He
stopped speaking, suddenly overwhelmed by a powerful sense of deja vu.
A few moments of Quark staring blankly into space was apparently
all Odo could take. "Quark—?"
"I was ... having a dream. Just before I woke up. Hit my
head." Quark rubbed at his forehead again. The pain seemed diminished. He
let his fingers trail to his throat and ran them lightly across his larynx, as
if expecting to find rope burns there. "They were hanging me...."
Odo frowned. "Guilty conscience?" Quark knew he'd get
nowhere arguing this any longer with Odo. He started back for his cell.
"We still have a few things to discuss," Odo said.
"I
will need to know the details of your... 'business arrangement'
with Dal Nortron."
Quark stepped over the lip of the cell. 'Talk to my lawyer."
"You don't have a lawyer."
Quark shrugged. "Then I guess we have nothing to discuss
until I do get one. Computer: Restore security field."
The air between Quark and Odo flashed with silver sparkles.
"Quark, don't make this more difficult than it has to
be."
But by this point, Quark didn't care about making anything easier,
especially not for Odo. "When is Captain Sisko back?"
'Tomorrow afternoon. If they don't run into any Jem'Hadar
patrols." Odo's stern attitude softened. "That captain they were
trying to rescue ... she was dead."
"I suppose you think I killed her."
"She had been dead for three years. Apparently, an energy
field around the planet she'd crashed on shifted the subspace signals through
time."
"Odo, let's get our priorities straight. What does any of
this have to do with me?"
"Please forgive me," Odo said icily. "I forgot with
whom I was dealing. Pleasant dreams, Quark."
Odo turned like a soldier on parade and marched toward his office.
He had just reached the doorway when Quark called out to him.
"Odo, wait."
Odo stopped, but didn't look back.
"Can I ask you something?"
Odo looked over his shoulder. "You can ask."
Quark held his hand to his throat again, trying to recapture the
elusive threads of his half-forgotten dream. "Those last few days on the
station ..."
"What last few days?"
"The end of the Occupation. When the Cardassians
withdrew."
"What about them?"
"The Cardassians never liked me."
Odo turned back to face Quark. "Can you blame them?"
Quark struggled to find the words for what he knew / he had to
ask. "They destroyed so many things on the station ... four Bajorans dead
..."
"Your point, Quark?"
"Why didn't they kill me? I mean, that's what happens
when governments fall. People like me are lined up and ..."
"Shot?"
Quark saw an image of Ferenginar's capital city. He was there,
doing something important in... in a swamp? "Hung," Quark said quietly.
"Strung up on ... on the Promenade . .. ?"
"Sounds almost... poetic," Odo said.
Quark stared at Odo, saw the glimmer of recognition in the
changeling's eyes. "You've said that before. Or something like that. I can
see it. I can remember it."
And then something went dark in Odo. "I don't know what
you're talking about."
"Yes, you do," Quark said.
"I'll tell Rom you want a lawyer. When you're willing to
talk about your business arrangement with Dal Nortron, we can talk again."
Odo turned to leave.
"Where were you on the Day of Withdrawal?"
Quark called after him. "You answer that and I'll tell you everything
about Dal Nortron!"
Quark saw Odo hesitate. "Come on, Odo, admit it. There's only
one way you can resist an offer like that."
The hesitation ended. Without another word, Odo disappeared
through the doorway to his office. He had resisted.
And to Quark, that could mean only one thing.
Odo didn't remember what had happened to him on the Day of
Withdrawal, any more than Quark did....
CHAPTER 3
lieutenant commander Jadzia Dax stood on the deck of the Starship
Enterprise with her back to the captain's chair. Because it was the first Enterprise,
there was only one direction from which the final attack could come.
The turbolift.
Five minutes ago, when she had hurriedly studied the ship's
schematics on the desktop viewer in the briefing room, she had found it
difficult to believe that the most critical command center on the entire ship
was serviced by only one lift. But in the memories of her third host, Emony,
she found the explanation. The more than century-old Constitution-class to
which the original Enterprise belonged had been designed primarily as a
vessel of scientific exploration. The engineers of the twenty-fourth century
might perceive its design idiosyncrasies, such as a single turbolift serving
the bridge or fixed-phaser emitters, as design flaws. Dax's third
host, however, considered such features to be the last echoes of the
twenty-second century's charmingly naive optimism toward space travel, inspired
by the end of the Romulan Wars and the resulting birth of the Federation a mere
two years later.
As a joined Trill possessing the memories of eight lifetimes, more
or less spanning the past two centuries, Jadzia Dax understood she was more
attuned than most beings to the similarities of every age. And the truth was
that while technology might change, human hearts and minds seldom did. It
definitely wasn't the case that life was simpler or human nature less sophisticated
in the past.
But in the case of this ship, Jadzia couldn't help thinking, the designers were behind
the curve. They really should have known better. After all, the first Enterprise
had been launched a full twenty-seven years after the first contact with
the Klingon Empire, a disastrous meeting that clearly proved that not everyone
in the quadrant shared the Federation's belief in coexistence. And right now,
the proof of that was about to face her in a life-or-death confrontation.
Jadzia heard the distant rush of a turbolift car approaching the
bridge. She hefted the sword in her hand and with one quick step vaulted over
the stairs to the upper deck of die bridge. She reflexively tugged down on the
ridiculously short skirt of her blue sciences uniform, changing her balance to
be prepared to spring forward the instant the doors opened. If, that is,
she could spring forward in the awkward, knee-height, high-heeled black
boots that were also part of her uniform.
The turbolift stopped. She held her breath as she
faced the doors with only one thought in her mind . .. Klingons—can't
live with them, can't—
The red doors slid open. The lift was empty! Then a sudden crash
made her spin to see a violently dislodged wall panel beside the main viewer
fly into the center well of the bridge. The wall panel had covered the opening
of an emergency-access tunnel, and now from its darkness emerged her enemy,
resplendent in the glittering antique uniform of the Imperial Navy, a
blood-dripping bat'leth held aloft, ready for use again.
Jadzia straightened up, unimpressed. "Worf, that wasn't on
the schematics."
Lieutenant Commander Worf leaped down from the upper deck and
moved warily around the central helm console, eyes afire. "I am not Worf.
I am Kang, captain of the Thousand-Taloned Death. And you are my
prey!"
Worf lunged past the elevated captain's chair, swinging for
Jadzia's legs with a savage upsweep of his bat'leth.
Jadzia expertly deflected the ascending crescent blade with her
sword as she flipped through the air to land behind the safety railing that
ringed the upper deck to her right. Although he had missed his target, Worf's
momentum forced him to continue his spin until his bat'leth plunged deep
into the captain's chair behind him, shorting the communications relays in its
shattered arm and causing a spectacular burst of sparks to shoot into the air.
"Worf, I'm serious," Jadzia complained testily. "I
was just in the briefing room. I specifically called up the bridge
schematics."
Worf grunted as he struggled to tug his weapon free
of the chair. "You should not be talking. You should be
running for your life."
He turned away from her to give the stubborn bat'leth one
final pull.
Jadzia saw her opportunity and took it. She leaned over the
railing and swatted Worf's backside with the flat of her sword.
Worf wheeled around in shock. "That was not a
deathblow!"
"I said, I checked the schematics. There is no emergency
tunnel beside the viewscreen. You're cheating."
Worf flashed a triumphant grin at her, his weapon finally free.
"If you did not see the tunnel on the deck plans, it means you did not use
the proper command codes to access them. To the computer, you might have been
an enemy, and so you were not shown the correct configuration."
"What?!"
"Defend yourself!" Worf shouted. He swung down to slice
the safety railing in two, directly in front of Jadzia.
But Jadzia lashed out with her boot to slam Worf on the side of
his head, at the same time she swung her sword against his bat'leth to
send it spinning out of his grip to shatter the holographic viewer on Mr.
Spock's science station.
"You never told me about needing command codes!" she
protested.
Worf put one huge hand to the side of his head, looked at the pink
blood on his fingers, flared his nostrils in what Jadzia, sighing, knew all
too well was a sign of intense pleasure. There was nothing a Klingon liked
better than a caring, loving mate who knew how to play rough. "You did not
ask," he said, breathing
hard, then leaped over the twisted railing to land heavily on the
upper deck two meters from Jadzia.
"You're not playing fair," Jadzia told him.
Worf shot a glance upward at the center of the bridge's domed
ceiling. "That is not the opinion of the Beta Entity," he growled.
Jadzia risked a sudden look at the ceiling as well. It was
maddening to admit, but Worf was right. The amorphous energy beast that fed on
the psychic energy of hatred and conflict grew brighter as she watched.
Worf took a step closer. Jadzia took a step back.
"Do not attempt to delay the inevitable. Escape is
impossible."
Jadzia stood her ground, raised her sword. "Who said I wanted
to escape?"
Worf took another step, arms reaching out to either side, eyes
absolutely fixed on his quarry. "Ah, knowing you must lose, you choose to
attempt to take your enemy with you. The w'Han Do. A warrior's
strategy." Worf threw back his massive head and roared approvingly .
"Even better, I have no intention of losing, either."
Then Jadzia slashed her sword back and forth in an intricate display of k'Thatic
ritual disembowelment that had taken her past host Audrid more than eight
years to master, and finished the motion by unexpectedly launching the sword
across the bridge, where it crashed into an auxiliary life-support station.
Worf, who had been transfixed by Jadzia's dazzling swordplay,
appeared shocked by what could only have been a careless mistake. He stared at
her sword as it twanged back and forth in a shower of sparks from a shattered
display screen.
The diversion worked exactly as Jadzia had planned it. As Worf
puzzled over the sword, she slammed into him, shoulder first, elbow in the
stomach, driving him back until he collided with a station chair and pitched
backward, falling flat on his back.
In an instant, Jadzia was astride him, hands raised, fingers
scooped in the strike position for a Romulan deeth mok blow to crush the
larynx.
Worf fought for breath, the air in his lungs knocked out of him by
the violence of his impact. The sweat and blood that covered his face gleamed
as the energy beast pulsated above them.
"... You can not defeat a Klingon with a pitiful deeth mok..."
Worf wheezed defiantly.
"There's more than one way to skin a Klingon," Jadzia
said.
Worf's eyes widened in alarm at the thought—and also, Jadzia
thought, more than a touch of anticipatory excitement.
And then she swiftly brought both hands down to the sides of
Worf's enormous ribcage and—
Worf howled with laughter. He frantically wriggled under Jadzia,
ineffectually trying to slap her hands away as he gasped for breath.
"Give up?" Jadzia asked.
Worf's eyes teared as he snorted, "I will not surrender! I
am Kang!"
"Ha! I knew Kang," Jadzia said as she dug in, effortlessly
repelling his futile attempts to stop her. "Kang was a friend of mine. And
you are no Kang!"
By now, Worf was totally incapable of speech. Any intelligent
sound he attempted to make was overwhelmed by convulsive laughter.
Jadzia went for the kill.
"Say 'rumtag,'
" she
demanded as she drove home her attack, running her fingers over
Worf's ribs at warp nine. "Say it!"
The word erupted from Worf like a volcanic explosion. "Rumtag!
Rumtag!"
With a whoop of victory, Jadzia rolled off her husband and
stretched out on the floor beside him, holding her head up on one elbow as she
watched him struggle to catch his breath and regain his dignity.
His pitiful attempt to glare at her as he said, "You tickled
me" made even Worf burst out laughing again. After a few more aborted
tries, he took a deep breath and blurted out, suddenly deeply serious,
"Now we are both in danger."
"Something else you didn't tell me?" Jadzia asked
lightly.
She was suddenly aware of the light from the Beta Entity getting
brighter, and then the creature was all around them both. She felt a mild
electrical tingle over her body and tugged down on her short skirt again. Then
the light winked out as the energy creature disappeared.
"What happens next?" she asked, more curious than
alarmed.
Worf took an even deeper breath, in an obvious attempt to restore
his warrior's concentration. "Nothing. We are both..." He fought to
stifle an incipient giggle. "... dead." He snorted again and rubbed
his ribcage.
"Say that again."
"The Beta Entity was not pleased with the change in our
emotional mood. Thus, it enveloped us and drained us of our life energy."
Jadzia screwed up her face in confusion. "That's not right. I
studied this mission at the Academy. The
energy creature that captured Kirk and Kang and made their crews
keep fighting to the death on the Enterprise fed on hate. When Kirk
convinced everyone to stop fighting and to laugh, to express joyful emotions,
the creature didn't kill anyone. It just. .. left."
Worf had finally regained his appropriately stern expression.
"This is the Klingon version of the holosimulation. And besides, it was
Kang who convinced the others to stop fighting."
Jadzia raised an eyebrow and playfully placed a single finger
against Worf's side. "It was who?"
Worf smiled. "It was ... your rumtag!" And then
he was on her, running his fingers up and down her sides, until this time it
was Jadzia who was reduced to helpless laughter.
Finally, exhausted, breathless, they both collapsed together on
the lip of the upper deck, Jadzia sitting up, leaning against Worf's broad
chest, Worf's fingers gently untangling the intricate weaving of her
twenty-third-century hairstyle.
The bridge of the Enterprise was silent, filled with a soft
haze colorfully lit by the shifting display screens that ringed the Trill and
the Klingon, a ship out of rime.
"It's almost romantic," Jadzia said softly, sighing. She
remembered being on this same bridge—in reality—when she and Captain Sisko had
taken a trip into the past. She thought of the legendary Spock again, how close
she had actually come to him. She sighed again.
Worf ran a finger along the spots that trailed from her temple.
"Perhaps we should return to our quarters."
Jadzia looked up at Worf and smiled teasingly. "Actually, I
was thinking that maybe we could slip
down to the captain's quarters. Imagine—James T. Kirk's bedroom.
Think of the history."
Worf frowned. "I would rather not. Besides, we only have the
holosuite for another five minutes."
Jadzia considered the possibilities of the bridge for a moment,
but five minutes was more of a challenge than she was in the mood for right
now. She ran a finger along Worf's sexily rippled brow. "There's an
arboretum a few decks down. Call Quark and book another hour."
"That is not possible, Jadzia. Odo has requested all the
holosuites beginning at oh-seven hundred."
"All of them?" Jadzia sat up, away from Worf. "He's
having a party and he didn't invite us?"
"It is for his investigation of the Andorian's murder."
"Ahh," Jadzia said, understanding. Once highly-detailed
scans had been made of crime scenes, they could be flawlessly recreated with
holotechnology, and the computers could be used to call out various anomalies
with great precision. "Does he have any new leads?"
Worf blinked at his wife. "Why would he need new ones?"
It took a moment for Jadzia to realize what Worf was actually
saying. "Worf, Quark didn't kill the Andorian."
"All the evidence points to him."
"All the circumstantial evidence."
Worf got to his feet. "It is my understanding that the
evidence is more than circumstantial." He adjusted his old-fashioned
gold-fabric sash, then turned in the direction of the turbolift.
Jadzia jumped to her feet and grabbed his arm to
stop him. "Not so fast, Kang." She forced her groom to
turn to face her. "What evidence does Odo have?"
Worf rolled his eyes, replying like a five-year-old asked to
recite logarithmic tables. "The Andorian businessman—"
"Dal Nortron," Jadzia said. "Let's concentrate on
the facts."
'The Andorian businessman, Dal Nortron, arrived on DS9 last
Sunday afternoon. Sunday evening, he won more than 100 bars of—"
"One hundred twenty-two bars."
Worf glowered at Jadzia. "One-hundred twenty-two bars
of gold-pressed latinum—after three consecutive wins at dabo. That fact
alone is enough to suggest that Quark had arranged to pay off the Andorian—Dal
Nortron—through rigged winnings."
"Dabo's a popular game in this quadrant. There are two documented
cases of gamblers winning seven consecutive dabos, which is within the
statistical realm of probability."
"Not at Quark's," Worf said.
"Come on, Worf. Odo inspects the table every week. Quark
doesn't rig it."
Worf let his opinion be known with a grunt.
Jadzia shrugged. "Go on."
"Two hours after Nortron left Quark's, he was found dead, and
the latinum was missing."
"Stop right there. There's no logic to what you're
saying." Jadzia waited for Worf to interrupt, surprised when he didn't.
"If Quark had arranged to pay off Nortron with rigged dabo winnings, then
why would he kill Nortron to get those winnings back?"
Worf shifted his considerable weight from one foot to the other.
"Perhaps Nortron took advantage of the
table once too often. Perhaps Quark wanted people to think he had
settled a debt to Nortron and planned, when he had done so, to steal
back his latinum. Perhaps he did not like the way Nortron was dressed."
"Oh well, now, that is motivation for murder."
"Jadzia, Quark is a Ferengi. Ferengi do not think the way
other civilized beings do."
Even though Worf's sternly delivered pronouncement told Jadzia
that her new husband was reaching the limits of his patience, she persisted.
"Worf—this is the twenty-fourth century! That kind of stereotype belongs
in the dark ages."
"The Andorian was found dead near the reactor cores in the
lower levels. Security monitoring is limited there. Who else would know that
better than Quark?"
"You, for
one. Maybe we should suspect you. That makes about as much sense as suspecting
Quark."
Clearly upset by her lack of wifely loyalty, Worf glowered at
Jadzia. "I am DS9's strategic operations officer. It is my job to know the
station's security weaknesses—just it is in Quark's interest to know them
because of his long involvement in smuggling operations."
Jadzia softened her tone and affectionately reached up to
straighten Worf's sash. "There's a difference between smuggling and
murder, Worf. Especially since some of Quark's smuggling operations benefited
the Bajoran resistance as well as the Federation."
Mollified only slightly by her touch, Worf regarded her gravely.
"He cares only for profit."
"Granted. But not enough to kill for it."
Worf brushed aside Jadzia's hand. "This conversation is
useless. You have not listened to me at all. You
have already made up your mind about the Ferengi's
innocence."
"Me? How about you? You've already made up your mind he's
guilty."
Worf stared at Jadzia as if he really didn't understand what she
was talking about. "Of course I have. Because he is."
"Worf! We don't even know if it was a murder!"
Worf's heavy brow wrinkled, and Jadzia could see he was waging an
internal debate. She decided that he knew something she didn't and was
wondering if he should tell her. Jadzia decided to help him make the right
decision. There were better ways to defeat a Klingon than through combat.
She stepped closer to him, slipping her hand beneath his sash this
time. The old Klingon uniforms had no armor, and the thin cloth of his shirt
did little to interfere with the contact of her flesh against his.
"Worf..." she whispered into his ear, "I'm your wife. We have no
secrets from each other, remember?" Then she bit his ear lobe. Hard.
Worf took a quick breath, then spoke quickly, as if he was worried
that he would change his mind. "Odo showed me Dr. Bashir's preliminary
autopsy report. Dal Nortron was killed by an energy-discharge weapon. Odo
believes such a weapon would be too primitive to show up on the station's
automatic scanning system."
"How primitive?" Jadzia asked, stilling her hand on his
chest.
"Microwave radiation. Extremely intense. It... overheated
every cell in his body. A weapon without honor."
Jadzia swiftly reviewed everything she knew about
microwave radiation. In this case, it was her own experiences as
a science specialist that took precedence over the memories of Dax's previous
hosts.
Microwaves were part of the electromagnetic spectrum, one of at
least seven energy spectrums known to exist in normal space-time. In
pre-subspace, EM-based civilizations—that converged toward rating C-451-5018-3
on Richter's scale of culture—the primary applications of microwave radiation
were line-of-sight radio communications and nonmetallic industrial welding,
typically with some half-hearted attempts to create first-generation
beamed-energy weapons. On Earth, it had even been used for cooking food.
Primitive was not the word for it. Prehistoric was more like it, right
alongside stone knives and bearskins.
Jadzia took her hand from Worf's chest, amused in spite of the
situation to see her groom only then resume easy breathing. "Be
reasonable, Worf. Why would Quark use an old-fashioned microwave weapon when he
could have disintegrated Nortron with a phaser?"
Worf glanced over his shoulder at the turbolift doors, as if
worried someone was about to join them. He took a step back from her.
"Phaser residue can be detected for hours after a disintegration."
But Jadzia curled one finger under his gold sash to gently pull
him back to her. "Who would have known he was missing?"
Worf smoothed his sash again, trying to dislodge Jadzia's grip.
"Perhaps Quark didn't want to put the latinum at risk."
"So ... stun Nortron, take the latinum, then disintegrate
him."
"Just because I believe Quark is a criminal does not mean I
believe he is a smart criminal. And would you please stop that!"
Jadzia was about to raise the stakes when she was interrupted by
an announcement from hidden speakers.
"Ladies and gentlemen, boys and girls and morphs, this
simulation will end in thirty seconds. Thank you for choosing Quark's for your
entertainment needs. Be sure to inquire about our half-price drink specials for
holosuite customers when you turn in your memory rods. Now, please gather your
personal belongings and take small children by the appropriate grasping
appendage. And remember, Quark's is not responsible for lost or stolen articles
or for damage caused by micro-forcefield fluctuations. Five . .. four . . .
three . . ."
The bridge of the Enterprise melted from around Jadzia and
Worf, retreating back into history. Now they stood in a simple unadorned room,
its lower walls studded with the glowing green emitters of a compact
holoprojector system.
"Please exit through the doors to the rear of the holosuite,
and thank you for visiting Quark's—the happiest place in the Bajoran
Sector."
Jadzia and Worf exchanged a look of shared puzzlement.
"That voice sounded like Leeta," Jadzia said.
"I have heard that Rom is introducing new policies during
Quark's ... incarceration."
"If Rom is next in line for the bar, I'm surprised you
haven't started suspecting him of setting up his brother."
The holosuite door slipped open to reveal Odo and two security
officers.
"Commanders ... I trust I'm not interrupting," the
constable said.
"We have finished," Worf said brusquely. He started for
the door.
"No, we haven't," Jadzia countered.
"I'm sorry," Odo said, "but I do require the holosuites
for assembling—"
"That's not what I meant," Jadzia interrupted.
"Odo, Worf told me that Dal Nortron died of exposure to microwave
radiation."
Odo frowned. "That is privileged information. At least,"
he added gruffly as he looked at Worf, "it was."
"Worf was conferring with me—security operations officer to
science officer."
Odo did not look convinced. But then, he rarely did. "Go
on."
"A microwave weapon seems such an unlikely choice to commit a
murder, I was wondering if there might be another explanation."
"I am open to suggestions."
"Well, if the body was found near the reactor levels, have
you ruled out energy leaks or power modulations coming from the power
transfer-conduit linkages?"
Odo blinked. "I was not aware that fusion power-conduits
could generate microwave radiation."
Jadzia shrugged. "Not directly. But there's so much other
equipment on those levels, a fusion power surge could set up rapid oscillations
in various circuits. That's all you'd need to generate an electromagnetic
field. And if the field was strong enough or close enough to something that
might function as a waveguide, it could reach microwave levels."
Odo looked off to the side as if reprocessing the
data she had just provided. "Could traces of such a field be
detected after the fact?"
Jadzia ignored her husband's disapproving frown. "Absolutely.
You'd need to examine everything in the area for magnetic realignment, heat
damage, even signs of electrical sparking between conductive materials.
"Electrical?" Odo made a sound in the back of his
throat, then nodded. "Very well. I'll send a forensics team down at once.
If they find evidence of anomalous energy discharges, I'll let you know."
"And if they don't?" Jadzia asked.
Odo gave her a grim smile, as if he had successfully led her on.
"Then it will be additional evidence that the murder was committed with a
microwave weapon."
Jadzia was surprised when Worf suddenly grunted.
"Unless," he said, and Jadzia could sense his reluctance, "the
Andorian was killed by an anomalous power discharge somewhere else on the
station and his body taken to the lower levels to confuse the investigation."
Jadzia was pleased that Worf had offered some support for her
theory, despite his conviction that the guilty party was already in custody.
But Odo rendered Worf's suggestion unnecessary. We can rule that
possibility out, Commander. I do have enough security tapes and computer logs
to establish that Dal Nortron took a turbolift to the lower levels
approximately twenty minutes before he was killed."
"Before he died," Jadzia corrected.
"He was murdered, Commander. Of that I have no doubt."
Jadzia ignored Odo's increasing air of formality.
"Do your security tapes and computer logs show that anyone
else was in that area at the same time?" she asked.
Odo's hesitation answered the question for her.
"I didn't think so," Jadzia said.
"There's no such thing as a perfect crime," Odo said
bluntly. "I've already connected Quark to Nortron. They were involved in a
business dealing together. They had a falling out. Quark killed him.
Accidentally, more likely than not. But it is definitely murder."
Jadzia studied Odo closely. She had seldom heard such emotion in
the changeling's voice. Almost as if he were personally involved in this case.
"Odo, did you know Dal Nortron?" Jadzia asked.
"Of course not. Why would you even ask such a thing?"
Eight lifetimes of experience told Jadzia she was on to something.
"No reason. But I'd find someone who did know him," she said.
"Someone who can tell you why he came to DS9, and why he went down to the
lower levels."
Now it was Odo who was losing his patience. 'To meet Quark."
"But your own records say Quark wasn't down
there."
"Records can be altered, Commander."
Jadzia smiled sweetly. Now she had led him on.
"Exactly. Altered to take someone out. Or to put someone in. And if the
records can be altered so easily, Quark and Dal Nortron could have met anywhere
on the station without you knowing about it. And if they could have met
anywhere, why did they choose the lower levels?"
Odo exhaled in frustration, but said nothing.
CHAPTER 4
they were called tiyerta 'nok—literally, the life-flow of iron, or as the
current usage had it, the arteries of the machine.
That was the term the Cardassians gave to the engineering access
tunnels that riddled their mining station: a complex network of barely
passable crawl spaces supporting a web of ODN cables, power conduits, waste-,
water-, and replicator-mass plumbing, and air-circulation channels. But as soon
as Starfleet had taken control and Terok Nor became Deep Space 9, the tiyerta
nok inevitably became known as Jefferies tubes, a term some said had its
origins as far back as the very beginnings of Starship design. Others said even
further.
But unlike DS9's other Jefferies tubes—most of which by now had
been retrofitted with new, Starfleet-standard lighting sources and ODN
upgrades—the Jef-
feries tube on this lower level was dark, cramped, and cut off
from the station's main air-flow system. Not a whisper of a breeze passed
through it, and Jake Sisko blinked as steady drips of sweat rolled into his
eyes.
"You're crazy," Nog said. "It'll never work."
Jake was flat on his back at the end of this particular tiyerta
nok, lifting his cramped arms directly overhead to work on the panel set
into the uncomfortably low, sloping ceiling. The much shorter Nog was crouched
at Jake's feet, where the tunnel height was a bit more generous, keeping a palm
torch on the panel above Jake and passing along tools as Jake requested them.
"Nog, it's perfect," Jake insisted. He wriggled a
multispanner against the flathead mini-tagbolt he had finally loosened, and the
second of three U-shaped clasps holding the egress panel in place dropped free,
hitting him right between the eyes. "Oww!" It was more a cry of
surprise than pain. "These things never used to be so tight."
"Some of the old Cardassian subsystems are
self-repairing." Nog spoke with apparent disinterest, though he added with
a chuckle, "Did that ever surprise the Chief when he finally figured out
why some of his repairs kept reverting to Cardassian configurations. But
anyway, the plan can't work, because there's no way you'll ever get past the
ambassador's bodyguards."
Jake carefully put the multispanner down beside him and groped for
the intergrips. Three more minis to go. "That's what the diversion's for.
When the bodyguards go to help the dabo girls, we slip into the ambassador's
quarters, take the latinum—"
"What?! You never said anything about stealing latinum!"
Jake moaned and lowered his strained arms to rest
them. "Technically, we're not stealing it, Nog, we're only
taking it to confuse Odo about the motive. And even if we were really
stealing it, so what? We're murderers, remember? Cold-blooded and
remorseless."
Jake squinted as Nog aimed the palm torch directly into his eyes.
"Jake, my friend, you have to start getting out more. We 're not
murderers."
"Okay, okay. You know what I mean. Quark and Morn are the
murderers."
Nog put down the palm torch, but even with the suddenly increased
darkness Jake had no trouble sensing how annoyed his friend was. "I
thought you said you couldn't use their names."
"You're right. I mean 'Higgs and Fermion.' It's just that
I've been thinking about this story for so long, and while you were on patrol
Quark let me watch one of his smuggling transactions—"
"Jake!" Nog hissed. "I'm wearing a communicator!" The Ferengi
teenager lowered his chin to his chest and spoke loudly and precisely for the
benefit of any potential eavesdroppers. "And I'm certain my Uncle Quark
would never be involved in smuggling, or any other type of illegal—or even
questionable—activity. Perhaps he was just playing a joke on you by pretending
that he was."
"Oh, forget it," Jake muttered. Then he went back to
attacking the third mini-tagbolt. "No one ever told me writing was such
hard work."
"What's so hard about sitting in front of a computer and
talking?"
"Shine the light here," Jake said. "And that
part's not hard. It's all the work you have to do ahead of time so you can know
what to say to the computer. That's the hard—owwh!"
The third mini was much looser than the second, and left a dent in
Jake's forehead when it fell.
"We could have used the transporter to get down here,"
Nog said.
Jake didn't know why he bothered to keep explaining things to
Nog, but he tried again. "That would leave a trace in the station security
log." He pried at the egress panel with just his fingers now; to his
relief, it came out easily. "Huh. I thought that would have been stuck
after all these years."
Nog, uncharacteristically, said nothing, and Jake looked back at
him with renewed suspicion. "You sure you haven't been back here since the
last time?"
Nog looked offended. "Why would I come down here?"
Jake smiled insinuatingly. 'The 'Room,' remember?" Then Jake
used his feet to push himself backwards until his head and upper body poked
out through the wall-panel opening. A moment later, he had turned his body and
swung his legs out and down, hung on to the edge of the opening, and then
dropped lightly to the floor of a small stretch of corridor. The corridor was
lit only by the reflected light coming in through a panel opening set high near
the ceiling in the bulkhead behind him.
"Whoa... it's still not hooked up to the main power
grid," Jake said.
Nog's voice echoed in the Jeffries tube before he stuck his head
through the wall-panel opening and brought the palm torch up beside him, letting
it play around the area. "With the war, the Chief's retrofit schedule lost
its priority. Except, of course, when he needed to maintain critical
functions."
Jake's eyebrows lifted in surprise. Starfleet had
made the retrofitting of Deep Space 9 a high-profile project, and
accordingly Chief O'Brien had been given the authority to set up a
renovation-and-repair program that would eventually move through the entire
station, from Ops to the lowest level. War or no war, it was hard to believe
that after almost six years, no one on any of the retrofitting
teams had stumbled upon this ten-meter stretch of corridor that somehow had
been sealed off from all the other corridors on the level.
Jake glanced up at Nog. "Aren't you coming down?"
"I thought you said you just wanted to time how long it would
take for Quark and—I mean, for 'Higgs and Fermion' to escape through the
Jefferies tube."
That was the original reason why Jake had talked Nog into
retracing their old routes through the Jefferies tubes. He had decided to put
his semiautobiographical novel, Anslem, aside for the time being and try
something more commercial. So the new crime novel he was working on, The
Ferengi Connection, was going to be set on a fictional Cardassian mining
station still in orbit of Bajor. For that reason, he wanted to be completely
accurate about how long it would take his crime lords Higgs and Fermion to
secretly move from one part of the station to another. When Quark had allowed
him to observe the illegal sale of Denevan crystals last Saturday night, Jake
had been most interested to learn that the Ferengi used a network of secret
passageways different from the Jefferies tubes. That would allow him to move
through the station without being observed by Odo. Unfortunately, Nog's uncle wasn't
about to give Captain Sisko's son, of all people, any details about the
network, so Jake had decided to base
the tunnels in his novel on the engineering ones he and Nog used
to play in.
"Well, we're here. You timed it. Let's go back," Nog
said impatiently. He held out his hand to haul Jake back up to the panel
opening.
"No," Jake said as he looked around. "I can use
this in the story. A lost section of the station.... Maybe this is where Quark—Higgs,
has his secret headquarters."
"Jake, did you ever stop to think that maybe this section was
sealed off for a reason?"
Jake didn't understand why Nog was being so cautious. "Nog,
we used to come down here almost every day after school. If there was anything
dangerous, we'd already know about it. Now get down here."
Nog mumbled something in an obscure trading tongue that Jake
couldn't make out. But the young Ferengi squirmed through the panel opening and
dropped with a loud thump to the uncarpeted deck beside his friend. He got up
awkwardly, brushed dust from his Starfleet uniform, then aimed his palm torch
to one end of the short corridor. The beam of light found only a standard, DS9
bulkhead, a dull, burnished-copper color, ridged and scalloped like the skin of
a gigantic reptile. Nog shone the light in the other direction, but his
torchlight uncovered only more of the same. "You know, we really have to
tell Chief O'Brien about this," he said.
Jake patted Nog on the back. "And what are we going to say
when he asks us when we discovered a lost section of corridor?"
"We were children," Nog said. "If we told anyone
what we had found back then...." He laughed. "My
father would have served me my lobes on a platter for playing in
the tubes."
"And for playing with a 'hew-mon,' " Jake added.
Nog frowned, and Jake knew why. Despite the cannibalism rumors
that still refused to die, human-Ferengi relations had come a long way in the
past decade; but those relations still weren't so secure that many Ferengi
would be comfortable joking about them.
"Would your father have been any more understanding?"
Nog asked defiantly.
Jake snorted. "If I had told him about the tunnels back then,
I'd still be confined to my room."
"But... we are going to tell them now, correct?"
"Maybe not right this minute," Jake said.
"Jake, we don't have any excuse for keeping this to
ourselves. In fact, it might be my duty as a Starfleet officer to tell my
commanding officer that—where are you going?!"
Jake ignored Nog and his unfathomable anxiety, and walked toward
the only door in the corridor. "Let's just see if it's still here,"
Jake said.
Nog darted past him and stood in front of the lone door. "It
is. Now let's go to Ops and—"
Jake smiled at Nog and reached for the door control panel.
"And now, let's see if it's still working."
"It is working!" Nog bleated as he pushed Jake's
hand away from the door control.
Jake regarded his friend with a slight frown. "Nog, is there
something you'd like to tell me?"
"Let's go to Ops, find Chief O'Brien, and... and I'll tell
you everything."
Even in the pale illumination from the palm torch, Jake saw Nog's
large ears flush. The explanation came to him suddenly.
"Nog ... you have been coming down here, haven't
you?"
"No. Well, yes. But, not often. A few times. Five ... maybe
eight, ten times."
Jake stared at Nog, nonplussed. "By yourself?"
Nog's mouth opened and closed but nothing came out.
"Oh, I get it now." Jake shook his head with a laugh,
the sound oddly muffled in the enclosed space. "So... if I open this door,
just what am I going to see?" He tried to remember the titles of the
'special' holosuite programs they used to 'borrow' from Quark's bar, the ones
Quark kept locked in the little box under the stale pistachios no one ever
asked for. "Lauriento Spa? Vulcan Love Slave?"
At that, Nog started to laugh, too. "Part One or Part
Two?"
There was only one answer to that question. "Part
Two," Jake said with a snicker. Then both friends completed the title
at the same time: "The Revenge!"
That was enough to make both double over in fits of uncontrolled
giggling, both recalling how they would take the adult holosuite cylinders and
try to run the graphic subroutines through their personal desk padds. At best,
they were able to call up mildly suggestive silhouettes of some of the
holographic performers from the programs, usually obscured by blurred color and
jagged outlines. But the two young friends, certain they were close to learning
the secrets of the universe—and equally certain they were going to be caught
by their fathers at any minute—had stared at those flickering images for hours,
trying desperately to see in them what it was that adults found so compelling.
Eventually, the laughter faded and Jake caught his
breath. "So, you really don't want me to open the
door?" he asked.
Nog chewed at his lip. "And if I say No, as soon as we leave
you'll be right back here to open it anyway, right?"
"Right," Jake agreed. That's exactly what he had decided
to do.
Nog sighed in resignation. "Go ahead." He stepped aside.
Jake made a production out of pressing the door control. When the
door slipped open, he comically placed both hands over his eyes.
Until he heard Nog say, "Hey, that's not my program.
..." Jake took his hands away, looked into what had been the most exciting
discovery of their childhood on Deep Space 9, something not recorded on any
deck plan or technical drawing. A lost Cardassian holosuite.
Nog was already inside the room, standing on a slightly inclined
rocky landscape. Beyond him, about a holographic kilometer away, Jake spied a
collection of small stone buildings reminiscent of a primitive village. It was
night on the holosuite, but the buildings and the land were lit by a cool,
blue-green illumination. Jake couldn't detect the source of that backlighting,
though it appeared, improbably, to be coming from somewhere behind him.
He stepped inside to join Nog, then turned around to look past the
improbable cutout of the doorway to the DS9 corridor, to an astounding
holographic vista of a night sky.
At once he identified the source of the blue-green light.
A planet filled almost a tenth of the sky in the holo-
graphic scene, the bright light reflecting from the green oceans
of its sunlit half enough to wash most of the stars from the heavens.
Then he recognized the planet. "Hey, that's Bajor...."
"Really?" Nog said.
Jake pointed skyward. "By the terminator... see those
mountains?" The distinctive pattern created where three tectonic plates
had collided to form a perfect X of intersecting mountain ranges was so well
known as to almost be the galactic symbol for Bajor.
"Dahkur Province," Nog murmured. He looked around the
holographic landscape again. "So this must be one of Bajor's moons. But I
didn't program this."
"Neither did I," Jake said.
The two friends looked at each other, and Jake could see that Nog
had just reached the same conclusion he had. "Someone else has been down
here."
"Pretty dull program," Jake said softly. "I don't
see a single Vulcan love slave."
They stood in silence for a few moments, listening to the
holographic wind. Jake looked back at the village and saw flickering lights in
some of the windows of the small buildings.
"Does it feel as if something should be happening?" Nog
asked.
Jake shook his head. "It's not on pause. We've got wind,
moving lights in that village."
"But why would anyone want a holosimulation of... of nothing
happening on a Bajoran moon?"
Jake shrugged. "Maybe the program's caught in a loop. Or the
holosuite's broken." He cleared his throat. "Room, this is Jake
Sisko. Show me my fishing hole...."
Unlike any other type of holographic simulation Jake had ever
seen, the distinctive program switchover of the Cardassian holosuite now began.
At first, the colors and the shapes of the Bajoran moon's landscape seemed to
liquefy and swim into each other, and then, as if the plug had been pulled on
reality, all the colors spun swiftly—dizzyingly—into a spiral vortex that made
Jake feel as if he were about to be drawn down an endless tunnel. But, just as
quickly as the vertigo of that transformation made itself felt, the spiralling
stopped and with a strange optical bounce that Jake could almost feel, the new
program took shape.
Jake and Nog were standing on a covered wooden bridge that spanned
Jake's favorite fishing hole. It was his father's favorite, too, and six years
ago, Jake had been delighted to discover that this secret Cardassian holosuite
could access his father's programs from DS9's main computers.
Except...
"This isn't my program, either," Jake said to Nog. The
perpetual summer sun wasn't shining. In fact, the day was overcast. In fact, it
was actually raining."
"I, uh, sort of made some, uh, minor modifications," Nog
confessed with a shrug. "The rain makes me feel more ... at home...."
Then Jake saw that he and Nog weren't alone. There were people swimming
in the fishing hole. "Who are they?" He stepped closer to the
bridge's railing, saw the impressive size and bulbous shape of the swimmers'
bald heads. "Ferengi?"
"Uh-huh," Nog said in a strangled croak, as if his
throat was slowly closing in.
The Ferengi swimmers saw Jake and Nog on the bridge, and started
waving enthusiastically.
Then Jake saw how small their ears were, and he began to really
understand. "Ferengi females..."
"I've never really been much for... pointed ears," Nog
mumbled.
Two of the swimmers began climbing a wooden ladder at the side of
the bridge. They were calling Nog's name, and as they stepped onto the bridge,
leaving wet footprints behind, Jake was momentarily startled by the bulky,
multilayered swimming costumes the Ferengi females wore. Other than their
heads, their hands, and their feet, not a square centimeter of skin was
exposed, not a curve of their bodies could be discerned.
Jake looked at Nog with a grin.
Nog's open-mouth smile was so broad, it almost made him look as if
he'd just been stunned by a phaser. The Ferengi teenager stared at the two
fully clad females without blinking.
"You're drooling," Jake teased.
Nog looked up at his friend. "Vulcan love slaves don't...
wear any clothes," he said sheepishly. "Where's the fun in
that?"
Jake took Nog by the arm, tugged him toward the door to the
corridor. "Nog, you need to get out more. Let's go find Chief
O'Brien."
Allowing Nog to wave a sad farewell to the Ferengi females, Jake
pushed his glum friend out the door.
The Ferengi females—representing everything Nog could ever
want—returned that wave sadly as Jake and Nog left, reverting to their true
forms only when the door had completely closed, and the waiting began again.
CHAPTER 5
if miles O'BRIEN had his way, every Starship, every runabout, every
shuttlecraft, and every space station in the galaxy would be as smooth
and featureless as his little son's bottom.
Not that DS9's chief engineer minded a turn in space. Perhaps
because he was a happily married parent of two young, active children, O'Brien
greatly enjoyed putting on an environmental suit and slipping out of the
artificial gravity fields for an hour or two, just as he was doing today to
float above the Defiant, relatively speaking, of course. And stolen
moments such as these, when he could just drift peacefully among the stars,
hearing only the rhythms of his own heart, his own breathing, he found those
moments truly restoring.
But to work in space? In the twenty-fourth century? What
was Starfleet thinking?
To O'Brien, who had given the matter some thought, the perfect
spacecraft would be without surface texture—not one exposed conduit, not a
single inset panel, and absolutely no components that could only be serviced
from the outside of the ship. Instead, in his opinion at least, everything
should be accessible from within, so that engineers and repair
technicians could work safely in a breathable atmosphere, under controlled
temperatures, in conditions where an unexpected sharp edge of metal would mean
only a quick trip to the infirmary and not explosive decompression and a
terrible, painful death.
Humans are far too fragile for space, O'Brien thought, not for the first time.
Far too fragile for most things, actually. Which is why machines were so necessary.
And why engineers in particular were humanity's best hope for a better future.
O'Brien smiled to himself just thinking about his engineer's dream
of that better tomorrow. Gleaming Starships, hulls like mirrors, blazing past
the stars with their fragile cargo safely cocooned, and—
"You still breathing out there, Chief?"
The brisk voice in O'Brien's helmet communicator was as loud as it
was unexpected.
"Who is this?" O'Brien demanded.
The short sharp burst of laughter that came in response to his
startled request was enough to answer his question.
"Sorry, Major," O'Brien said. "I was ... I was concentrating
on the transionic power coupling."
O'Brien regretted the words as soon as he said them. He could
picture the wry smile on Kira's face as she replied, "I'll say. You were
concentrating so hard we could hear you snoring."
Blushing in spite of himself, O'Brien maneuvered gingerly around
from the open coupling bay until he could look along the length of the Defiant's
upper hull, past the towering pylon and immense curve of DS9's docking ring
and up to the Operations Module, as if there were viewports there through which
he could see the major. "I'm running a level-six diagnostic," O'Brien
explained. "There's not a lot I can do while the computer's working."
"Which is why I was wondering if you'd like to lend a hand to
the PTC work crew," Kira said. The humor had gone from her voice. O'Brien
thought he could detect the slightest undercurrent of concern.
"Have they run into trouble?"
"It's not trouble yet, Chief. They were almost ready to lift
off a hull plate, but then they got an anomalous density reading."
Kira's news hit O'Brien like a shock of translator current.
"Tell them not to touch it!"
"I'm confident they know enough not to do that. Rom's leading
the team."
"Ah, well, all right, then," O'Brien said, his sudden
concern subsiding to a more tolerable level of wariness. Rom was one of the
best junior technicians he had ever trained. The hardworking Ferengi could be
counted on to take a conservative approach to repairs—and to O'Brien, the
conservative approach was always the best. "Let me seal this bay and I'll
join them." O'Brien tapped his thruster controls to move closer to the Defiant's
hull and the open coupling bay.
"Want me to beam you over?" Kira asked.
O'Brien gazed up through the top of his helmet, admiring the
towering spires of the station's curved docking arms, picked out against the
fathomless black
of space by brilliant running lights. That a machine— an
artificial construct built by intelligent hands—could even exist in this
universe, could even dare to shine as brightly as the timeless stars, frankly
thrilled him at such a visceral level that he couldn't care less if those hands
had been Cardassian or human. "That's all right, Major. Looks like a nice
day for a walk...."
As DS9's chief engineer, O'Brien was well aware that, according to
regulations, untethered spacewalks from one section of the station's exterior
to another were strictly forbidden. The massive station's slow stabilization
spin, almost imperceptible even at the outer edge of the docking ring, could
induce in inexperienced personnel violent attacks of debilitating
space-sickness. Poor Worf almost had to be prodded into his environmental suit
for EVA drills.
But O'Brien had no such trouble with an exterior traverse of the
station. In his mind, he saw the huge structure simply as a giant cog, moving
within its perfect circle, wholly predictable, reassuringly stable. Thus,
after the transionic coupling bay was safely sealed and the diagnostic readers
placed on standby, he oriented himself to the station's local coordinates, correctly
pointing his feet at the Defiant's hull, and tapped his thrusters. Then
he smoothly slipped above the ship, effortlessly adjusting his vector so he
would rise above the gentle slope of the docking ring beside the pylon, level
out, then drop over the ring's inner edge as if taking a ski jump into an
infinite valley filled with stars.
O'Brien sighed with pleasure. He loved this view, the sensation of
this movement. In an old-style system of measurement he had mastered in order
to be able to read old engineering texts, the distance to the far side of the
ring was almost a mile. Certainly, he now
reflected, he had seen larger artificial structures in his career
in space. The planet-sized Dyson Sphere, for instance, which Captain Picard's Enterprise
had encountered when they had rescued the legendary Montgomery Scott.
Contemplating that engineering feat still kept O'Brien awake at night, as he
struggled to comprehend the staggering mechanical stresses on its hull
components. But a Dyson Sphere was so enormous, he knew, that there was only
one way to truly make sense of its size and scope, and that was through
mathematical abstractions.
A mile-wide space station, though, that was something concrete,
something that could be seen and felt. In fact, Deep Space 9 was about as large
as an artificial structure could be built and still be comprehensible to
unenhanced human senses. It was part of the reason he had enjoyed this
assignment so much. In some ways, DS9 was the ultimate machine. And its size
and complexity were just below the level at which engineers were forced to
rely on artificial intelligence and data reduction in order to grasp the
structure of what they built. But DS9—well, by now, O'Brien felt he knew it
well enough that he could almost have built a duplicate of it by himself.
As he dropped, O'Brien's line of sight cleared the interior
habitat ring. Now he could see the red glow of the fusion reactors' exhaust
cone at the relative bottom of the station. There, the saucer-shaped module containing
the station's main fusion reactors—of which only four had been certified safe
enough to remain operational—was attached to the main core by a constricted
airlock linkage. That airlock connector was what allowed the quick jettisoning
of the module in an emergency with minimal loss of interior atmosphere.
The airlock connector, though, was strictly designed to allow only
the passage of turbolift cars and life-support services. The end-product of
the fusion reactor— power—was delivered to the rest of the station through six
exterior power transfer conduits that extended from the top hull of the fusion
module to the bottom hull of the lower habitat. Again, in an emergency they
were designed to be quickly separated from the station. A single conduit could
supply the station's minimal power needs for weeks.
But yesterday, when Odo's murder-investigation team had detected
an inexplicable modulation in the output of power-transfer conduit B almost
exactly where it entered the main station, jettisoning the conduit had
fortunately not been required.
No Dominion warships were reported within tens of parsecs of the
Bajoran system, so emergency conditions did not apply. O'Brien had called for
a by-the-book shutdown of conduit B, using the remaining five to supply the
station without requiring any power rationing. And once the conduit was cold,
he had assigned an engineering team to open it up and remove all the exterior
hull plates, so that they could conduct a visual inspection in addition to the
molecular scanning. It was a time-consuming procedure to be sure, but also a
conservative one. A chance to make repairs without danger of attack or risk of
catastrophic disaster was something that came to O'Brien less and less these
days. He found he was actually looking forward to helping Rom and his team.
There were three other engineers with Rom, floating by the top of
the power conduit where it entered the lower hull of the main station. O'Brien
could see they were each attached to the station by a memory
tether— without them, DS9's rotation would move the conduit away
from anyone in an environmental suit within sixty seconds.
O'Brien expertly maneuvered himself into position beside Rom. Rom
was easy to identify among the engineering team because he was the shortest of
the four, and he wore a modified helmet that provided more room for his Ferengi
skull.
"Chief O'Brien," Rom said in greeting as he took
O'Brien's arm, "I didn't mean for Major Kira to call you away from your
important work."
"That's all right, Rom." From any other Ferengi, O'Brien
knew that those words would be a reflexive and meaningless expression of the
33rd Rule of Acquisition. But in Rom's case, O'Brien believed that the Ferengi
technician, gratifyingly enough, did consider anything the chief engineer of
DS9 did to be of crucial importance to the station. Of course, it also was true
that Rom always believed anything a chief of engineering did to be more
important than what a mere assistant did. Unsure whether the Ferengi
technician's belief stemmed from something in the Ferengi tradition of
apprenticeship or from Rom's admiration for his chief's skills, O'Brien rather
hoped it was the latter.
Grateful for Rom's steadying grip, O'Brien fired a memory tether
from the mobility module around his right forearm. At once, the tether's tip
sought out the nearest spinward positioning cleat on the hull and magnetically
attached itself to the metallic surface. Now, O'Brien knew, the tether would automatically
adjust its length and tension to keep him in position over the very same
point—power-transfer conduit B, hull plate B-OF-186-9776-3. The Cardassians
were nothing if not impressive record keepers.
"So what do we have?" he asked Rom.
Rom tapped some controls on his forearm padd, and they watched as
a holographic display of a tricorder screen sprang up and took shape a
half-meter in front of O'Brien's helmet.
O'Brien whistled as he interpreted the shifting, false-color
display of a hull-plate scan. On a typical plate, the scan would show thirteen
distinct color bars representing the thirteen composite layers used to form the
station's skin. But on this display, O'Brien noted with a frown, several
segments of the hull plate's interior layers were mixed together as if
sections of them had melted into each other.
He checked the coordinates of the display. "You're sure this
isn't reversed?"
"Yes, sir," Rom said earnestly. "See the outermost
layer? Pure plasma-sprayed pyroceramic trianium."
Rom was right. The PSPT layer was for micromete-oroid protection,
a final fail-safe for the station in case the station-keeping deflectors went
off-line. Even more importantly, it was always and only applied to the exterior
of the hull plates. Which meant the mixing of layers was definitely on the
inside.
"Good attention to detail," O'Brien said. Even through
his helmet he could see Rom's broad smile in response to his compliment.
"A lot of engineers would have automatically concluded that the sensor was
in error."
The smile left the Ferengi technician's face as quickly as it had
appeared. "Oh, no, Chief—the whole team agreed that this was an anomalous
reading."
O'Brien nodded. He didn't know if that were true or not, but he
appreciated the fact that Rom took responsibility for his team—two Bajorans
and a new Vulcan
ensign who had just been assigned to DS9 from the Academy.
"Well done, people," he said, with a glance that encompassed Rom's
three assistants.
This time, all except the Vulcan smiled back in acknowledgment of
the praise.
"All right, Rom," O'Brien said. "What do we do
next?"
Though obviously startled that O'Brien wasn't taking over the
operation, Rom rose to the challenge. "Well, the final decision will have
to be based on an understanding of what has caused the mixing of the hull
layers."
"Very good. What possibilities should we investigate?"
O'Brien effortlessly reassumed his role as instructor for the station's
engineering staff. It gave him real pleasure to see someone grasp and apply
engineering concepts for the first time. Somedays, he even thought he might
enjoy teaching at the Academy himself. Once the war was over, of course.
"Um, um..." Rom said as he gathered his thoughts.
"Well... if we had found this kind of mixing on the exterior layers
of the hull, we could conclude that... it was the result of an energy
discharge. Maybe a stray ... phaser hit from an old battle."
"That's one," O'Brien confirmed.
"And... if we open up the plate and find that the innermost
layer is not disturbed—that is, it appears to be undamaged, then ... we
might conclude the mixing of layers is a manufacturing flaw."
O'Brien decided to challenge Rom once again. He frowned. "The
Cardassians? Miss a manufacturing flaw as prominent as this?"
A look of momentary panic contorted Rom's face. From long
experience, O'Brien knew that many stu-
dents folded at this point, unwilling to appear to contradict
their teacher's pronouncement.
But Rom swallowed hard and blurted out. "I really don't mean
to argue but...."
"But what?" O'Brien prompted, trying to keep a smile
from his face.
"Well... Cardassian manufacturing standards fell drastically
during ... the last few years of the Occupation and if this hull plate was
manufactured during that period and Bajoran slave workers were part of the quality
assurance program then ... then there's a chance— a little tiny
barely-worth-mentioning chance—that a manufacturing flaw like this could
slip through." Rom audibly gulped at his own temerity and the remainder of
his words tumbled out in a rush. "But... you're probably right. Don't pay
any attention to me."
O'Brien shook his head. "Rom, never be afraid to question the
chief engineer."
Rom blinked in surprise. "Never? Really?"
O'Brien reconsidered. "Well, maybe not when you're under
enemy fire. But this is a stable situation, so we might as well enjoy the
luxury of exploring all the possibilities. In this case, you're right. It is
possible we're seeing a manufacturing flaw."
Rom brightened like a puppy who'd been given a brand-new chew toy.
O'Brien couldn't help himself. He had to smile.
"Thank you, Chief."
"But let's not get carried away." O'Brien was the
teacher again. "I think there's one more possibility we should consider.
What about you?"
Rom nodded quickly in his helmet, making his entire weightless
body rock slowly back and forth around his center of gravity.
"And that possibility would be ... ?" O'Brien said.
"Oh, uh, a power conduit rupture!"
"Exactly," O'Brien agreed. "Though because the hull
plate surrounding the conduit isn't deformed. ..."
Rom got it at once. "It would be a very small rupture."
"So given those three possibilities, what procedures do we
follow to identify which one is the actual cause of the layer distortion?"
Rom looked off into space and recited the steps to be taken next,
beginning with shutting down the power conduit—which had already been
accomplished—to the final step of setting up a portable forcefield in order to
keep any possible debris contained once the damaged hull plate had been
removed.
Timing his actions to coincide with the completion of Rom's list,
O'Brien activated the memory tether override and used his thrusters to slip to
the side. "Well, what are you waiting for, Rom?"
O'Brien chuckled at the expressions first of surprise and then
delight that washed across Rom's face as the Ferengi technician realized he was
being permitted to continue with the examination.
With renewed confidence, Rom efficiently directed the others in
setting up the forcefield generator that Kira now beamed to the engineering
team. Then he positioned his team at the connection points of the hull plate
they were about to remove.
Elapsed time for these preparations was approximately twenty
minutes, and O'Brien took full advantage of his position as an observer to use
the time to watch the incomparable parade of the wonders of space: the steady
shine of the untwinkling stars, the
subtly shifting colorful filaments of the Denorios Belt, and the
distant pure light of Bajor's sun, Bajor-B'hava'el—the brightest star in space
for DS9, though distant enough from the station that it was simply a brilliant
point of light, not a blazing disk.
"We're ready, Chief," Rom announced.
Even from his position, floating five meters away, O'Brien could
see that Rom's team had properly installed the forcefield emitters and that the
four engineers were correctly in position. "You're in charge, Rom."
Rom nodded and turned his attention to steadying himself on the
multitorque defastener he had attached to the plate bolt, then gave a quick
glance to reassure himself that each of his team members was also poised to use
their own. "All right, everybody, on the... count of ten. One—"
"Uh, Rom?"
"Yes, Chief?"
"Why not make it the count of three?"
"Good idea. Everybody, forget what I said about going on the
count of ten. That would take too much time and slow down the—"
"One!" O'Brien prompted.
Rom got the hint. "Uh ... two ... and three!"
O'Brien carefully monitored the spinning bits of each defastener
as they counterrotated, detaching the hull-plate fasteners.
"Slowly ..." Rom cautioned nervously. "Standing by
to activate the forcefield... as soon as the hull plate is free...."
Then a few puffs of gas vented, as the hull-plate seal was broken
and the plate itself began to drift away from the curved pillar of the conduit
structure, pro-
pelled by the centripetal force imparted by DS9's rotation.
O'Brien's attention focused on what would happen next—in the next
minute or two. When the plate had drifted about a meter away from the surface
of the conduit, Rom would activate the forcefield so that any debris behind the
plate would remain in place. Then, when the plate was about ten meters from the
conduit, Jadzia was standing by in Ops to grab the plate with a construction
tractor beam and hold it safely out of the way.
As far as O'Brien was concerned, his credits were on the cause of
the distorted layers being a tiny rupture in the power-transfer conduit that
had allowed plasma current to leak out and melt the inside of the hull plate.
And a ruptured energy conduit would certainly explain the anomalous readings
Odo's people got from the lower levels when they were investigating the death
of that Andorian businessman.
Then the loudest, highest-pitched Ferengi scream O'Brien had ever
heard shoved every other thought from his mind as he slammed his gloved hands
to the sides of his helmet in a useless attempt to block out the din.
"Computer!" O'Brien shouted. "Lower helmet volume!"
Instantly, Rom's squeal dropped to a more tolerable level, and
O'Brien swiftly detached his memory tether and thrusted in to see whatever it
was that had so upset Rom.
Dead bodies.
Two of them.
Cardassians.
Crammed into the insulating buffer zone between the power-transfer
conduit's inner and outer hulls.
The arms of the two corpses were stretched out as if desperately
reaching to freedom. Their black, shrivelled lips were drawn back exposing
startlingly white teeth, their jaws agape in terror.
O'Brien shivered. The dessicated gray flesh still coating what
could be seen of the two skeletons was fractured by deep-cut purple fissures,
the result of prolonged exposure to the absolute vacuum of space.
"It's all right, Rom. Calm down. Breathe normally."
O'Brien stayed out of Rom's reach in case the Ferengi panicked and started
flailing. "O'Brien to Ops, lock on to Rom and prepare to beam him in on my
order."
"What is it, Chief?" Kira asked.
"I'm locked," Jadzia's voice added.
O'Brien kept his voice deliberately neutral, setting a proper
example for his staff. "There are two bodies in the insulating space between
the hulls. Cardassians."
"Construction workers?" Kira asked.
O'Brien thrusted in closer. One of the skeletons was missing its
hand—it had been severed cleanly at the wrist. "Don't think so, Major.
They're not in environment suits. In fact, they look to be civilians. Been
here quite a while, though. All the moisture in them's sublimated long
ago."
O'Brien puzzled over the missing hand. He looked around to see if
it had floated free.
It had. He could see it attached to the inside of the detached
hull plate, as if it had been welded in position, exactly where scans had
detected that strange mixing of the plate's interior layers.
"Chief," Kira asked carefully, "any chance they
might have been put in there when the conduit was manufactured?"
O'Brien understood what the major was suggesting.
The two Cardassians might have been victims of the Bajoran
resistance—walled up in the conduit to die when it was carried into space. They
certainly looked as if they had been in vacuum long enough to have been killed
during the Occupation.
But the theory didn't hold because of one critical detail.
"Probably not," O'Brien said. "These conduits were all assembled
in space when the station was constructed. I don't know how the blazes they
got in there."
Jadzia's voice came over the comm link next. "Chief, we
should transport the bodies to the Infirmary for Julian. But I can't get a good
lock on them. Is that conduit still live?"
"Dead cold, Commander. If you can lock onto Rom, there's no
reason why you shouldn't be able to lock onto the Cardassians."
"Well, I can't," Jadzia replied, and O'Brien could hear
her annoyance.
"How about I pull them out into the open?" O'Brien
suggested.
"What a good idea," Jadzia said, with more than a hint
of sarcasm.
O'Brien looked back at Rom. The Ferengi engineer seemed calmer
now. "Okay, Rom. Best thing to do is to climb back on the horse."
Rom's grimace of distaste was clear behind his faceplate.
"There's a horse in there, too?!"
O'Brien didn't have the strength to explain. "Just give me a
hand pulling them out so Jadzia can transport them."
O'Brien could see that the Ferengi engineer would rather start a
fight with Worf than handle dead Cardassians, but he gamely tapped his
thruster controls and moved into position beside his teacher.
"You get the one on the right," O'Brien said as he moved
in to grab the arm stump of the Cardassian on the left. "And be gentle.
They're apt to be a bit... brittle."
"Shouldn't a medical team come out to do this?" Rom
asked as he tentatively reached for the Cardassian on the right.
Exercising caution, O'Brien took hold of the other corpse's arm.
For a moment, he was disconcerted because the insulating gap was only about a
meter and half deep, and he couldn't see where the dead Cardassian's legs were.
But before he could stop to analyze the significance of what he saw, his hand
reflexively gave his thruster controls a tap for reverse, and he abruptly
tumbled away from the conduit, pulling the upper half of the dead Cardassian
with him.
At the very same moment, Rom's renewed screaming in O'Brien's
helmet informed him that Rom had discovered where the missing legs were.
He could see it for himself.
The corpse he'd been reaching for was only half there.
Severed at the waist, the truncated body spun around in empty
space, slipping away from the conduit with the momentum O'Brien had transferred
to it.
And the fate of the lower half was now apparent.
All that remained of it was a shiny discolored patch of merged
flesh and metal on the inner hull of the conduit.
The lower half of the Cardassian's body had been fused within the
metal hull plate of the station.
No wonder Dax couldn't get a clear lock on them, O'Brien thought. The poor devil must have
been
caught in the worst kind of transporter malfunction imaginable.
So bad that fifteen separate fail-safe systems made certain that
such a tragedy could never happen by accident.
Which meant only one thing to O'Brien, as the gigantic station
wheeled around his tumbling form.
Odo had two more murders to investigate.
CHAPTER 6
.an entire world lay before Captain Benjamin Sisko.
Its visage was smooth and pristine, like the all-enshrouding ice
caps of a frozen planet. And its unmarked surface held no hidden secrets,
nothing lost or obscured in deep caves or folded valleys.
Only smooth, featureless mountains broke the Pla-lonic ideal of
that perfect sphere. One long, unending line of regular red stitches,
interlocking the two halves of the skin of the world to make a single whole.
Yet from that unblemished perfection, from that balanced mass and
absolute symmetry, unending diversity was born in unending combination. Like an
omega particle exploding to become an entire universe of possibilities in
which—
"Captain Sisko ... ?"
Sisko looked up from the baseball he held in his hand to glance
across his desk. He saw the questioning
expression in Commander Aria Rees's eyes and instantly knew this
was no time for excuses. This very serious young Bajoran Starfleet officer
deserved the absolute truth.
"I apologize, Commander. I must have tuned you out and—"
"That's quite all right, sir. I read the report of your
mission to save Captain Cusak. I understand it might take time to recover from
such an encounter."
Sisko regarded the attractive young commander with new interest.
He had returned from the Defiant's latest patrol—and the mission to save
Cusak—to find that Starfleet had unexpectedly assigned him a new
second-in-command to coordinate with Major Kira.
Kira's reaction had been explosive. She believed Starfleet was
passing judgment on her performance, or the perceived lack of it. Fortunately,
Sisko had been able to quickly confirm that Commander Aria was here only on
temporary assignment. After more than a decade of intricate negotiation and
elaborate construction, the Farpoint Starbase on Deneb IV was finally about to
be activated and Aria was slated for the number-two position on the base's
command staff. Given the complexities of Starfleet's relationship with the
Bandi of Deneb IV, the staffing wizards at headquarters had decided that Aria
could benefit from experiencing life on DS9, a living laboratory of
cross-cultural complexity.
She 'II need the benefit of a few other experiences, too, if she's
to survive out here, Sisko
thought as he contemplated the Bajoran newcomer before him, whose sharp edges
had yet to be blunted by the realities of routine. But he remembered what he
had been like when he was a freshly minted commander. He was
willing to give her the benefit of the doubt. Jean-Luc Picard had
done the same for him when Sisko had taken this assignment, though the captain
of the Enterprise might not have realized it at the time.
"Thank you, Commander," Sisko said. "But that's no
excuse for not listening to your report."
Aria offered him a padd. "You could read it later."
Sisko was tempted. The last thing he needed to hear right now was
yet another report on Starfleet-Bajoran cultural referents in the workplace.
But why was Commander Aria suggesting that she would be willing to forgo the
official schedule? The scuttlebutt had it that Aria wasn't allowing anyone on
the station to bypass standing Starfleet orders. Why was she willing to bend
the rules for him?
"I appreciate the offer," Sisko said. He put his baseball
back in its display stand on his desk and pushed it away so he wouldn't be
tempted to reach for it again. "But you've worked hard on that report. I
would like to hear it."
Aria nodded, and looked back to the padd, as if trying to find
her place. Sisko was momentarily caught by the particularly elegant line of the
epinasal folds on the bridge of her nose. There was a slight downward curve to
them, which gave her an intriguing expression, as if she had just thought of a
sly joke and was keeping it to herself.
Careful, Sisko
cautioned himself. She had looked up without warning and caught him staring.
Second time in this meeting alone.
"Captain? Is there something you wanted to say?"
Sisko shook his head, making a deliberate attempt to ignore her
expression of shy amusement. "Please— continue." Then he leaned back
in his broad-backed
chair, tugged down on Ms jacket, and forced himself to listen to
every word Aria Rees had to say about the time-and-motion modification studies
that had arisen from observations of Bajoran and Starfleet personnel working
together.
Regrettably, but inevitably, the thirty-minute presentation was
followed by Aria's suggestions for overcoming the perceived difficulties of
human-Bajoran interactions. Sisko struggled to give his full attention to each
of her recommendations before responding.
"Very clearly thought out," he announced when she had
finished. And he meant it. The new commander's report revealed exceptional
intelligence. For just the briefest of instants, Sisko felt a rush of pride in
knowing that someone with the potential of Aria Rees— who could have chosen
virtually any career in the galaxy—had been inspired to join Starfleet.
"Thank you, sir."
"A most thorough analysis of the existing literature as
well."
Aria's smile was tremulous, expectant.
Sisko wondered how far he'd have to go with this. "I'll
definitely circulate it among the command staff." That should do it, he
thought.
"And ..." Aria prompted.
"And ... I'll ask them to read it." Sisko didn't know
what else she wanted of him.
Well, obviously that wasn't it, he thought as he saw Aria's crestfallen expression.
"Shouldn't we have a general meeting of all command staff to
discuss implementing my changes? Sir."
Sisko leaned forward, trying to find the best possible way to put
what he knew he had to say.
"Commander, truthfully, those are all very insightful
observations about working conditions on DS9. And your suggestions
for improving things are just... fine. But they're not necessary." Before
Aria could respond, Sisko quickly added. "And more than that, they won't
work. Can't work."
The dismayed young commander shook her head as if to be sure she
had heard him properly, making the chain of her single silver earring sway
against her olive-gold cheek.
"I beg your pardon, sir, but how can you know without
trying?"
Sisko firmly reclaimed his usual air of detachment, settled back
in his chair with a patient smile. "I have tried them, Commander.
Everything you've suggested and more. And really, when it comes down to a
choice between forcing everyone to do their work according to Starfleet's
textbook definition of perfection, or having everyone do their work in their
own way, with respect for other people's traditions and work habits, I have
found it's better for people to find their own way than to have it forced upon
them by an unseen bureaucracy."
Aria's chin lifted, in a way that reminded Sisko of Major Kira
when she was not at all convinced of someone else's argument. "But sir,
the literature clearly suggests ways that humans and Bajorans could be more
efficient as team workers."
With a sigh, Sisko rose to his feet and waved a hand past the
closed doors of his office, down the stairs to the lower level of Ops. "I
have no doubt that's true, Commander—for humans and Bajorans. But look out
there. What about Commander Worf? Commander Dax? And I have a half-dozen other
races staffing this station. Should we make Bolians adhere to some form
of Bajoran-human work ethic? Should we force Martians to
celebrate the Bajoran Days of Atonement instead of Colonial Independence
Day?"
Aria's almond-brown eyes met his. "Well actually, sir, one of
my suggestions is that all group religious celebrations be banned from the
station. Not personal expressions of faith," she hastily amended, as his
look of consternation and lack of comprehension registered on her. "I'm
not suggesting that. But for the good of the group, religious events really
have no place in what is, after all, a military environment—which is what DS9
will be for the duration of the Dominion War."
Sisko concentrated on keeping his voice calm in the face of Aria's
surprisingly insensitive conclusion. "Commander, war or no war, this
station is first and foremost a civilian installation run by the Bajoran government.
Starfleet's presence as an administrative authority is temporary, and strictly
limited to security operations. In no way would we ever infringe on the
religious rights of any culture—which makes your suggestion totally out of
line."
Aria's face reddened. "Sir, I'm not suggesting Starfleet
outlaw religion, just relegate it to private expression, off-duty. I... I don't
think there's anything out of line with my suggestion."
"No," Sisko said slowly. "Not as a suggestion. But
what surprises me, frankly, is that you—a Bajoran— are making it."
"We're not all religious fan—" and Aria hesitated,
apparently rethinking her choice of words. "We're not all religious to the
same degree, sir."
"So it would seem."
"I don't mean to offend you, sir. I mean, I know that
many Bajorans believe
that the wormhole
aliens you've encountered are their Prophets."
"And you don't," Sisko said, not bothering to make it a
question.
"Sir, with all due respect, I'd be much more inclined to
believe that the Bajoran wormhole was a celestial temple if it didn't form with
verteron nodes. I mean, if it's truly a home for gods, shouldn't it operate
outside the normal laws of physics, instead of appearing as a natural
phenomenon?"
Sisko sat down again and reached out for his baseball. He decided
he was going to have to take a closer look at Commander Aria Rees's personnel
file. He had met many Bajorans, with many different degrees of belief and many
different traditions of worship. But he had never met one who so obviously
rejected the idea that the beings in the wormhole were the Prophets.
"I have heard that argument," Sisko said,
noncom-mittally, tossing the baseball from one hand to another while he waited
to see what else the surprising young Bajoran would come up with.
Aria didn't keep him waiting, apparently most reluctant to accept
such a neutral stance from him.
"Sir, do you believe the wormhole aliens are the
Prophets? I mean, I know some people call you the Emissary, and I don't mean to
offend you, but... you're an educated man."
"And as such," Sisko said lightly, "My eyes are
open to the full range of wonder the universe contains."
Aria's spontaneous smile was full of quick, responsive humor.
"You're not answering my question, sir."
Sisko stopped playing games. He placed his hands together as he
thought for a moment. "Very well. What do I personally believe? I am sure
there are entities
who live in the wormhole. I have no doubt that these entities are
the source of the Orbs which have had such a profound effect on your people's
history and culture. I have no doubt that these entities are, indeed, what the
Bajoran people call their Prophets. And I have no doubt that the Prophets are
inextricably involved in the fate of your people."
"That's still not an answer." Now Aria, too, spoke in
earnest. "And the question is so simple. Are... they ... gods?"
"A wise man once said, 'Any sufficiently advanced technology
is indistinguishable from magic.' Why should it be indistinguishable from the
works of gods, Commander?"
"Sir, don't you think there's a difference—a profound difference—between
having the attributes of a god, and being a god?"
If you only knew how many times I've asked myself that same
question, Sisko thought
wearily. "Yes," he said. "I do."
At that, Aria shot him a quick, almost triumphant look from
beneath her improbably thick fringe of eyelashes. "So—what is the answer
to my question?"
Sisko suddenly felt the need to bring an end to their
conversation. "In all honesty, I don't know."
Sisko could see this disconcerting young woman didn't want their
meeting to end with that pronouncement. But he could also see that she
understood he did not wish to continue on this topic.
So, instead, she turned abruptly to look out the viewports in the
main doors. Beyond her, in Ops, Starfleet uniforms mingled chaotically with
Bajoran.
She glanced back at him. "So, ten races?"
Sisko reminded himself of his earlier resolve to give
the young commander the benefit of the doubt. In her way she was,
perhaps, trying to change the subject, to bring their discussion back to the
work at hand. "And that doesn't count the civilian staff," he said.
Aria turned away from the viewports, glanced down at her padd,
then hugged it close to her, as if she no longer had any intention of turning
it over to him.
"I'm sorry, Captain Sisko," she said quietly. "It's
all new to me but I was just... trying to help."
"Believe me, Commander, I understand."
Aria took an impulsive step closer to his desk, and Sisko couldn't
help noticing that the young commander's stiff military bearing, formerly so
reminiscent of Kira's, had suddenly relaxed. "You do understand,
don't you," she said with an open, frank look of approval that reminded
Sisko of earlier days, of his youth, when he too had been capable of
uncomplicated emotion. "I... I felt you would from the moment I met
you."
Sisko might have been distracted before, but he was on full alert
right now. There was only one way of dealing with what was happening, what
might happen. "We should have dinner," he announced, rising to his
feet to meet her gaze directly, though he had to look up to do so. The young
Bajoran was a half head taller than he.
Aria's smile of pleasure was instantaneous. "I'd like
that."
"So would I. I'd like you to meet two very important people
in my life. My son, Jake, and Captain Kasidy Yates."
Aria regarded him quizzically. "I don't remember a captain of
that name from the Starfleet personnel lists."
"Ah," Sisko said, as he stepped around his desk and
toward the main doors, moving close enough to trigger their sensors.
"That's because Kasidy is a civilian. A merchant captain." The doors
slid open and the noise of Ops filled Sisko's office like a current of power.
"She is also the woman I love," Sisko added deliberately, knowing no
better way to set the record straight than by a blunt statement of the facts.
He was greatly relieved to see Aria's shoulders come back into
square and her posture return to that of an officer. "I look forward to
meeting them both," she said politely.
"I'll check with Kasidy, but I believe tomorrow night is
open."
Aria stood beside Sisko at the top of the stairs to his office.
She handed him her padd after all, and as he took it, her long, slender fingers
for the briefest of instants grazed his, generating a current of another kind.
'Tomorrow night," she said.
Startled by his own response, Sisko took the padd, promptly
removing his hand from contact with Aria's. He was about to dismiss her when
his communicator chirped, followed by a familiar voice.
"Bashir to Sisko."
Sisko tapped his communicator. "Go ahead, Doctor."
"I've completed my preliminary scan of the two bodies Chief
O'Brien found."
Sisko could sense Bashir's unspoken conviction that his captain
wasn't going to like what he heard next.
"What's the bad news?" Sisko asked.
"The Chief was right," Bashir answered. "I'd say
we're looking at two more murders. And at least from
a preliminary analysis, it appears both were killed by the same
type of weapon that killed the Andorian."
Sisko's jaw tightened, and he felt his back stiffen as he reached
a conclusion he suspected Bashir was about to share with him. "I see. Does
Quark have a connection to the Cardassians?"
"I've asked Odo to bring him over to the Infirmary. I think
you should be here."
"On my way, Doctor." Sisko paused for a moment, and then
made a sudden decision. "Speaking of inter-species relations, Commander
Aria, have you ever seen a changeling and a Ferengi interact?"
"Oil and water?" she asked.
Sisko shook his head. "Matter and antimatter. And you're
about to experience it first-hand."
CHAPTER 7
"quark, quark, quark ..." The expression in Sisko's eyes
revealed such an unsettling combination of exasperation and pity that Quark
couldn't hold the captain's gaze. Instead, he glanced furtively around the
infirmary to avoid it—but everyone else present was looking at him too.
Everyone except the two very dead Cardassians on the examination
table.
What was left of them.
"Can't you ... cover them up or something?" Quark
finally asked. "It's disgusting."
"Hmm," Odo said.
"What 'hmm'?" Quark demanded. "And don't say it's
another sign of a guilty conscience. I've never seen them before. My conscience
isn't guilty."
"I wasn't aware you had one," Odo said.
"Besides, Quark," Dr. Julian Bashir added, looking
up from his continuing inspection of the corpses, "after
being blasted with microwaves, transporter-fused to hull metal, and exposed to
vacuum for a few years, these two are so mummified that one of them could be
Garak and you wouldn't be able to recognize him."
"However," Garak added with a polite cough from his
position overlooking Bashir's shoulder, "one hastens to add that a simple
process of elimination should serve to confirm that I am not one of the
dear departed."
With open-mouthed disbelief, Quark watched the decidedly striking
new Bajoran Starfleet officer who had entered the Infirmary with Captain Sisko turn
to address DS9's sole Cardassian inhabitant. "Oh, are you Garak?" She
held out her hand. "I'm Commander Aria. I've heard so much about
you."
After a moment's hesitation, Garak shook the Bajoran officer's
hand as if it were coated with a Brigellian nerve toxin. "I'm sure you
have."
"Excuse me," Quark interrupted, "but can we get
back to me for a minute?"
"That depends," Odo said gruffly. "Are you ready to
make a confession?"
"That's it! That is absolutely it!" Quark bared his
artfully stained fangs, which had cost his parents a small fortune in
orthodontic bills to twist into such Ferengi perfection. "You people—oh,
you take the spore pie, all of you. Two nights ago, an unexplained death, and
what do you do? You play Let's Blame the Ferengi! And now, two more unexplained
deaths— from ten years ago—and what do you do? The same thing! Well,
I'm sick of it." He jabbed an accusatory finger at Odo. "I'm sick of
being your one-size-fits-all
answer to crime on DS9!" Then he pointed at Sisko. "And
I'm fed up with Starfleet not standing up to Odo's lax standards and sloppy
investigations!"
Odo bristled with predictable indignation. "Let's talk about
'sloppy' after we've discussed those Denevan crystals you sold to the Nausicaan
last Saturday night. You thought I didn't know, didn't you?"
"Arrrghh! You're doing it again! Changing the subject! Every
time I make a point in my own defense, it's as if you people don't even want to
pretend you've heard me."
Quark turned to Captain Sisko. "When the Cardassians
withdrew, you were the one who wanted me to stay on this station as an
example to others. To keep the community together."
"As I recall," Sisko said calmly, "first I had to
threaten to put Nog in jail."
Quark waved his hand dismissively. "Negotiations. That's all that
was. The point is, I stayed, didn't I? Even in the middle of this war, the
Promenade is thriving. Do you have any problem hiring workers to live on board
these days? No. Because I've done exactly what you wanted me to do."
"Let's not forget you made considerable profit at the same
time," Major Kira said pointedly.
Quark felt as if he were in a shuttle spiraling out of control.
"Of course I'm in it for profit! I'm a businessman! But there are rules
to business!"
"Two hundred and eighty-five. Isn't that right, Quark? Some
of which have never been revealed to a non-Ferengi." Odo's condescendingly
snide tone was utterly maddening to Quark.
Quark was so overcome by frustration, his voice almost rose to
shouting level. "When the Dominion
took over this station, I could have made immense profit by
turning in the major and... and your son, Captain ... and everyone else working
in the Resistance. I could have become an honorary Vorta and ended up with a
ship made of latinum. But I stayed here and I risked my life—and my
business—for you people! And this—this is how you repay me. You should
all be ashamed of yourselves."
This time, there was only silence in the Infirmary. Quark
straightened his jacket, wondering if it just might be possible that he had
finally managed to get through to these small-lobed, microencephalic aliens.
And then Sisko ruined it all by saying, "Why ten years?"
Quark sighed. "Didn't you hear a word I said?"
"Every one of them," Sisko confirmed. "And the two
that concern me are 'ten years.' How do you know when these two Cardassians
were killed?"
Quark's ridged brow crinkled in puzzlement. "Isn't... isn't
that what Dr. Bashir said? That they were killed during the Occupation? That
was ten years ago."
'Technically," Kira said, "the Occupation spans anywhere
from six to sixty-six years ago. Though the station wasn't built until
twenty-four years ago."
"All right!" Quark sputtered. "I confess! I took a
number out of thin air! I was confused! I suppose the almighty Federation has
laws against Ferengi businessmen being confused and I deserve everything I've
got coming to me!"
"Calm down, Quark," Bashir said. "You're jumping to
far too many conclusions."
"Me?!"
Bashir nodded. "The only reason I've called every-
one in here is to see if we can't get some answers." He
turned to Garak, who was still hovering behind the examination table on which
the Cardassian corpses were displayed. "Garak, may I call upon your expertise?"
Garak regarded the doctor warily, the reptilian gray nobs of his
forehead bunching together in deep furrows. "Oh, Doctor, I'm afraid that
in matters of mysterious deaths, I am entirely bereft of experience."
Quark took some comfort in noting that no one in the Infirmary
appeared to believe Garak any more than they appeared to believe him.
"I was speaking of your expertise as a tailor," Bashir
clarified.
Now smiling expansively, Garak nodded graciously. "But of
course. You'd like me to examine the clothes these two are wearing."
"Please," Bashir said. "They're carrying no
artifacts, no currency, weapons, I.D. rods ... all they have is their
clothes."
Without further hesitation, Garak bent over the table as if he saw
such grotesquely mutilated bodies every day of his life. The only reason Quark
watched what happened next was because the thought had occurred to him that his
freedom might be dependent on the outcome of Garak's examination.
Garak's sharp gaze traveled from one wizened corpse to the next.
One body—the one truncated at the waist—was clothed in an undistinguished tunic
of brown fabric. The other body, which had been severed approximately at the
knees, wore a similar garment, this time of blue.
Quark held his position as Garak picked up a pair of medical tongs
from the side of the examination table
and pushed them through the slightly elastic resistance of the
medical containment field that surrounded the bodies. No doubt Bashir had set
up the field more to protect the sensibilities of his visitors than out of concern
for medical contamination. That simple act, however, released a sudden and
most unpleasant odor of charred flesh mixed with the sickly-sweet-smelling
antiseptic spray the doctor had used to coat the bodies. Quark turned away,
coughing and gagging, noticing that even the doctor held a hand against his
mouth.
Garak, however, appeared impervious to the stench. Concentrating
on his task, he delicately nudged the head of the body in the brown suit.
Quark's eyes narrowed. The Cardassian tailor's handling of the tongs made it
seem as if he was quite experienced with autopsy procedures. "Ah, here's
your first clue, Doctor, and one doesn't have to be a tailor to see it."
Quark stopped breathing so he could take a closer glance at the
gruesome mess on the table. He stepped back quickly, having seen nothing that
told him what Garak was talking about. From his expression, neither had Bashir.
"His hair," Garak said. "See how long it is? The
way it's tied? Very characteristic. This man was a soldier in the Invidian
Battalion. They managed the southern provinces."
"Managed?" Kira repeated angrily. "They were a
death squad."
Sisko put a hand on Kira's shoulder as if passing her an unspoken
signal. "Then why is he in civilian clothes?" he asked.
Hew-mons, Quark
thought, with a shake of his head. Always changing the subject.
"Perhaps he died on his day off," Garak said lightly,
directing his answer to Kira. "Whatever his reason for
choosing this attire, I'm sure his DNA profile will be on file at Central
Records. Determining his identity should make it easier to discover his date of
death."
"What about the other one?" Bashir asked.
Garak glanced over at the slightly more complete body in the blue
tunic. He used the tongs to lift up a tattered flap of cloth from the corpse's
chest. "This one ... I believe he might have been in a struggle. See how
the fabric is torn on the shoulder?"
Now everyone crowded around the table to verify the tear in the
body's tunic, then just as quickly reeled back. With all of Garak's movement
through the surface of the medical containment field, the distressingly sweet,
cloying odors of death and disinfectant had become even stronger.
"Any way of dating the clothes?" Bashir asked, with a
hand shielding his nose. "The width of the lapels? Length of the
sleeves?"
Garak cocked his head, as if puzzled. "Fashion is more a
function of geography than time, Doctor. What is stylish on one world is
hopelessly garish on the next. There are colony worlds in the Union right now
where this brown tunic would be the latest word in male furnishings. And other
worlds where a man wearing anything blue would be arrested for disrupting
public morals."
"Can you at least make a guess as to where the clothes
were made?"
Still holding the torn shoulder fabric in the tongs, Garak frowned
in disapproval. "I'm afraid this tunic was replicated. It could come from
thousands—tens of thousands of different suppliers across the quadrant."
He released the fabric remnant, then turned his atten-
tion to the second corpse's brown tunic with an approving smile.
"Ahh, but this is—or at least was—a hand-tailored garment of
the finest quality." With his customary, fastidious touch, he manipulated
the tongs to open up the tunic to examine its lining. "It should be
possible to trace the fabric, and from there...." Garak froze.
"Do you see something?" Bashir asked, though everyone,
including Quark was aware that something had shocked the Cardassian tailor into
utter stillness.
"The lining." The tone of Garak's voice seemed oddly
flat to Quark.
The doctor looked over Garak's shoulder. "What about
it?"
"I often used this fabric myself. It's from a very small mill
on Argellius II. I... look at the exquisite workmanship of that cross-stitching
... oh my." Garak looked up at the curious faces of the people who surrounded
him. "This is one of mine."
"That's an enormous help," Bashir said to Garak. 'Isn't
it?"
"I'm... not absolutely certain that's true," Garak
replied, almost haltingly.
Quark couldn't remain silent any longer. Did he have to do
everything himself? "Are you kidding? The kind of records the Cardassians
keep put Ferengi records to shame. And I guarantee you, if I had sold someone a
hand-tailored suit twenty years ago, I'd still know the name of his
mate, his offspring, and his pet vole."
Whatever honest reflection of mood that had been revealed in Garak's
face disappeared as quickly as if an Ark had been closed on an Orb of the
Prophets. From across the examination table, Garak delivered a
withering cold glare in Quark's direction. "Ordinarily, I
might say that the random sand scratchings of an unhatched krimanganee would
put Ferengi records to shame, but alas, this is not the time for banter."
Resentfully, Quark noted how the Cardassian tailor softened his expression as
he turned to Bashir. "And again, ordinarily, I would have to agree with
you, Doctor. It should be a simple matter to discover to whom I sold this
tunic, because I, too, never forget a customer." Garak's face showed he
was as in the dark as they were. "Unfortunately, though, it appears I have
forgotten this one."
Kira voiced the next logical question before Quark could shout it
out. "Is it possible someone else bought the tunic and gave it to this man
as a gift? Or that he stole it?"
"No, no, Major, you misunderstand," Garak said with an
exaggerated display of patience. "Obviously, I could not remember this
customer by his features, given the condition he's in. What I meant to say is,
I have no recollection of selling this tunic to anyone. In fact, I have no
recollection of even making it. Yet it is unquestionably my handiwork."
While everyone else looked mystified, Quark suddenly saw the
pattern that was emerging from the void of confusion. But before he could act
to confirm his suspicions, he saw Odo looking thoughtfully at Garak.
Aha, Quark
thought, Odo sees it, too.
The changeling's next question was proof enough.
"Garak, is it possible that you made or sold this tunic about
the time of the Withdrawal?"
'The lining fabric is old enough. It's ... possible," the
tailor admitted.
But Quark had no intention of standing idly by
while Odo proceeded with his typically, time-consuming,
step-by-step approach to an investigation. It was as if the changeling had
never heard of the 9th Rule and the value of acting on raw instinct.
"Garak," Quark quickly said, "tell me—can you
remember anything that happened on the Day of Withdrawal?"
"Of course," Garak said forcefully. "Every detail.
Why are you smiling at me like that?"
Quark shot a sideways glance at Odo. The changeling was frowning,
but Quark knew it was for the same reason that he himself smiled.
Garak was lying.
And Quark and Odo knew it.
"Would you like to try answering that again?" Odo asked
Garak.
Garak looked at Quark, looked back to Odo, drew himself up
rigidly. "I would not. And now, since I appear to have answered everything
I can about these garments, I have a business to attend to."
Then Garak turned and left the Infirmary without another word.
Quark grinned at Odo, daring him to tell the others about what
they both knew to be true. "See? The same thing happened to him."
"Am I the only one who's missing the point of this
conversation?" Sisko asked.
Odo said nothing so Quark moved immediately to exploit the
changeling's reluctance. "Captain," he announced, "allow me.
Because unlike Odo, / have nothing to hide. You see, neither Odo nor I can
recall anything about what happened to us on the Day of Withdrawal. And I think
it's obvious that Garak doesn't remember anything, either."
"It was a long time ago," Sisko said.
"Not to me," Kira interrupted.
"Not to any Bajoran," Commander Aria added.
"And certainly not to any Cardassian," Quark said, "or
Ferengi, or changeling who was on the station at the time. I'd say
we've got a real mystery brewing here."
Sisko rubbed at his goatee. Quark suppressed a shudder of
distaste. Even though the captain had worn the look for several years now,
Quark still thought it made him look half-Klingon. "Quark, why am I feeling
that you're changing the subject now?"
"It's the same subject, Captain. Two Cardassians dead from
ten—I mean six years ago. An Andorian dead today. Dr. Bashir says everyone was
killed by the same type of microwave energy discharge. Now what you have to do
is find someone with a link to all three victims."
"We have," Odo said firmly. "You."
Quark turned in a full circle, appealing to the rest of them.
"Does anyone else find it suspicious that Odo is going out of his way to
blame these murders on me?"
Odo leaned forward and put his hands on the edge of the
examination table. "You're heading into dangerous territory, Quark."
"See?" Quark said to Sisko. "See how defensive he
is?"
Odo's voice actually shook with anger. "Quark, I'm warning
you...."
But, undaunted, Quark pressed the attack. "So, where were you
on the Day of Withdrawal, Odo? In fact, where were you when Dal Nortron was
killed? By a weapon that couldn't be detected by your own security scanners, I
might add."
"That's it! You're going back to your cell." The
changeling made a move as if to vault over the examination table and its
grisly contents.
To Quark's relief, Sisko intervened again. He held up a hand.
"That's enough, Constable. This is an open investigation."
"Not with Odo in charge," Quark complained through
clenched teeth. He turned to Sisko. "Captain, I formally request you take
him off this case because of conflict of interest. He should be a suspect,
too."
"I will do no such thing. As far as I'm concerned, I agree
with Dr. Bashir. Too many people are jumping to too many conclusions on too
little information." Sisko looked at the doctor. "I want you to
prepare complete DNA profiles for these two bodies so we can identify
them."
"Through Cardassian Central Records?" Bashir asked.
"That's right."
"I'll prepare the records," Bashir said, "but
aren't we at war with the Cardassians?"
"For humanitarian purposes, Starfleet and the Cardassian
Union have established unofficial lines of communication to facilitate the
identification of war dead and the repatriation of remains. You give me the
profiles, I'll handle the rest."
Then Sisko faced Odo. "As for you, Constable, I want a
complete report on Dal Nortron's death on my desk within the hour. And I don't
want to read any conclusions not supported by incontrovertible evidence. Is
that understood?"
Odo's initial reply was terse. "Yes." But then he
continued. "Unfortunately, I will not be able to provide
a complete report because Quark has refused to cooperate
with my investigation."
"Is that right, Quark?
Quark squirmed under Sisko's intent gaze, but he remained defiant.
"Why should I cooperate?" Quark said. "Odo's not interested in
the truth."
The captain's reply was so loud, it echoed off the hard surfaces
of the Infirmary walls and ceiling, and Quark reflexively covered his sensitive
ear channels to protect them from the assault. "I am tired of this game
you two are playing. Even if you don't think Odo's interested in the truth, you
can be certain I am. Cooperate."
Quark knew a bluff when he heard one. "You can't order me to
do anything," he countered.
"You're absolutely right," Sisko agreed. "But what
I can do is decide that neither Bajor nor Starfleet has jurisdiction
over the death of two Cardassian nationals. Which means, I could turn over
these bodies to the Cardassians, along with our prime suspect, and let them
settle this matter."
Quark swallowed. Hard.
"The choice is yours, Quark," the captain concluded.
"You can either cooperate with Odo, or you can 'cooperate' with the
Cardassians."
Quark frantically sought to extract some benefit from a deal he
knew he would be forced to accept. "All right, but I want Odo to release
me from custody, and to provide me with a bodyguard."
The look on Sisko's face told Quark that was the last thing he had
expected the Ferengi to say. "What do you need a bodyguard for?"
"Dal Nortron's partners," Quark said. "The Andorian
sisters."
Sisko looked at Odo for clarification.
"Their names are Satr and Leen. They claim to be
representatives of a trade mission from Andor so they have limited diplomatic
immunity. They both believe Quark murdered Nortron and have filed for the Andorian
Rite of Kanlee."
"And just what is the Andorian Rite of Kanlee?" Sisko
asked.
"Roughly translated," Quark said darkly, "it means
kill the Ferengi."
Odo ignored the interruption. "It's an old Andorian
tradition," the changeling told Sisko. "They believe Quark killed
Nortron. To maintain the balance of good and evil in the universe, they want to
kill him. They are ... a passionate people."
For a very long moment, Sisko stared at Quark, and Quark could
tell the captain was making his decision. Quark felt almost sure he could predict
what it was going to be.
"Here's my offer, Quark. You cooperate with Odo in the
investigation of Dal Nortron's death, answer all the questions he asks, and
instead of being confined to your cell, you'll be under station arrest, with a
bodyguard."
Sisko's terms were exactly what Quark had expected. He took it as
a minor victory. "Thank you, Captain."
But also as he expected, Odo didn't approve. "What about the
murder of these two Cardassians?"
"For now," Sisko said, "I'll handle that investigation."
He glanced around the Infirmary once, as if to make sure no one else had
anything to say, then concluded, "I think we're finished here."
"But—but—" Quark protested, "what about the Day of
Withdrawal?"
"One investigation at a time," Sisko told him. The
captain looked back at the incomplete bodies of the unknown Cardassians.
"This is one mystery where time is no longer of the essence." Sisko
then nodded at Kira and the new Bajoran officer. "Major Kira, Commander
Aria, you're with me." Then the captain and the two Bajoran officers left
the infirmary.
Odo gestured sarcastically toward the door. "Come along,
Quark. You're with me."
But it appeared Dr. Bashir wasn't quite finished with either of
them. "Just a minute, you two. Is it true what you both said about not
being able to remember what happened on the Day of Withdrawal?"
"A complete blank," Quark said emphatically. "I
remember starting to pack up the breakables in the bar when the first reports
of the troop transport launches started coming through ... and then ... next
thing I knew, Rom and Nog found me asleep in the storage room and it was the
next day."
Bashir looked at Odo. "How about you, Constable?"
"Nothing so mysterious," the changeling growled.
"I've been thinking more about it, and I do remember breaking up a fight
outside the chemist's shop. I was obviously hit by phaser fire, and woke up a
day later when the Bajoran provisionals arrived."
"You're sure that's what happened?" Bashir asked.
"I mean, someone saw you get shot, or you confirmed there was a
fight at the chemists?"
Odo nodded. "Now that you mention it, yes. I do recall
looking into it over the next few days. When the fighting broke out, I went to
the Promenade, and the next thing I knew I was waking up and the whole thing
was over—the withdrawal, Gul Dukat's departure, I missed it all."
Quark hid a smile of victory. Odo had just told his biggest lie of
the day—one that would be easy to disprove. At a time when it would be most
profitable to do so, that is.
"Well," Bashir said, "a phaser stun would certainly
explain a loss of short-term memory."
But Quark wasn't willing to let Odo escape so easily. "Tell
me, Doctor, would Odo's getting hit by phaser fire explain why / don't remember
what happened that day? Or why Garak doesn't remember?"
Bashir looked confused. "Garak said he remembered everything
perfectly."
Quark rolled his eyes at the doctor's incredible gullibility.
"Dr. Bashir, Garak says he's a tailor. You don't believe that, do
you?"
Bashir hesitated, then apparently decided to sidestep Quark's
question. "There are techniques available, completely harmless, that I can
use to see if either of you—or Garak—might be suffering from some type of
post-traumatic stress syndrome, perhaps causing you to block out some kind of
unpleasant memory of the Day of Withdrawal. I'd be happy to ... see if I could
help."
"Thank you, Doctor," Odo said. "But I doubt if I
have anything to remember other than being in a phaser coma."
"I'll get back to you," Quark said drily. He would need
many more details about how Bashir's techniques worked before he allowed
himself to be in a position where someone might have access to his safe combinations
and account passwords.
Bashir seemed disappointed by Quark's and Odo's lack of enthusiasm
for his suggestion. "Well, you know where I am."
With that, Odo escorted Quark from the Infirmary, and they both
made their way along the Promenade to the Security Office. Quark was only too
glad to leave the unsettling smell of death and disinfectant and return to the
bustling life of commerce the Promenade represented. Appreciatively, he sniffed
the sweet tang of frozen jutnja mixed with the incense from the Bajoran
Temple, all overlaid with the exotic perfumes of twice a dozen worlds. It all
was pure magic to Quark. Because to him, the combination of all these scents
from all these potential customers gathered together to shop in one place
invariably coalesced into the sweetest scent of all—latinum.
His snug jacket expanded to the breaking point as he breathed in
deeply, happily. Then he saw the crowds in his bar to the left and instantly
his sense of well-being evaporated. His eyes widened in alarm. There was no way
his idiot brother Rom could handle that kind of crowd. He started toward the
entrance. "I'm just going to check in with—"
But Odo grabbed him by the ear. "After you've
'cooperated,' " he hissed, and pulled Quark after him.
It was only with immense effort that Quark kept himself from
squealing in public. Odo knew how much that hurt. But Quark continued
without protest, because in just those few seconds he had had to look in
through the main entrance to his bar he had seen three people who he did not
want to notice him in his current state of custody.
Two of the people were those Andorian sisters, together at a small
table and leaning so close together in intent and sibilant conversation that
their blue antennae almost touched.
But the third person, sitting at the bar, trying and
failing to look interested as Morn prattled on and on and on to
her, was far more important to avoid than either of the Andorians.
She was Vash, a human female who had traveled the galaxy not only
with Jean-Luc Picard of the Enterprise but with the unfathomable entity
known only as Q. She was also Quark's favorite archaeologist—the one potential
business partner he constantly thought of with real regret, as the one who got
away.
And if Vash had returned to Deep Space 9 ahead of schedule, then
Quark had no doubt that the news of Dal Nortron's untimely end had already
spread across the quadrant—and all of Quark's other 'special' customers were
already on their way.
Unfortunately, for that exact same reason—Dal Nortron's
death—Quark had been left with nothing to sell.
Which meant that over the next few days, the Andorian sisters
were not the only ones on Deep Space 9 who'd be looking to kill a certain
Ferengi barkeep.
CHAPTER 8
"ALL right," Sisko
said to Kira and Aria as the turbolift began its short trip from the Promenade
to the Operations Center, "who wants to start? The Day of
Withdrawal."
Kira looked at Aria, who shook her head. "It only took a day
on DS9," Kira said. "But it was more like a week of withdrawal on
Bajor. The Cardassians pulled back to their garrisons and the spaceports in
stages." She paused for a moment, clearly remembering scenes of
devastating destruction, then doggedly continued. "Burning the villages,
poisoning the land and the rivers. For the first few days, the Resistance
didn't know it was happening everywhere. Each cell thought it was seeing the
leadup to a concentrated regional bombing attack. The Cardassians had done that
sort of thing before."
The lift rose up through the final deck and, as
always, Sisko felt a familiar sense of coming home. Ops was the
heart of Deep Space 9, as much so as the bridge of a Starship. Even the harsh
angles and bare metal of its towering Cardassian components had become an oddly
welcoming sight to him.
He exited the lift car with Kira and Aria close behind him and
headed off in the direction of the science station, where Jadzia was on duty.
She was running a metallurgical analysis on her screens.
"Dax," Sisko said, "join us." He nodded at the
short flight of stairs leading to his office. Jadzia rose from her station to
follow him at once.
As Sisko started up those stairs, he asked Kira if she could
remember exactly where she had been on the Day of Withdrawal.
She shook her head with a rueful smile. "I missed it. Twenty
years in the Resistance, and the week the Cardassians left I was in a triage
center in Dahkur, burning with fever and pretty much delirious. Lake flu. It
swept through the whole province that year."
"No lasting effects, I hope."
Kira shrugged. "So do I."
Behind them, Jadzia stepped through the entrance-way, and the
doors to Sisko's office slid shut.
"What about you, Commander?" Sisko asked Aria. He was
pleased to see that whatever air of over-familiarity she had exhibited an hour
ago, she was keeping it in check now.
"Oh, I was on the Solok."
Sisko hadn't recalled that posting from his quick glance at the
Bajoran newcomer's file. "The Vulcan science vessel?"
Aria nodded. "We were at Qo'noS. A very dull
assignment to remap the Praxis Ring."
"So, you weren't involved in any of the events of Withdrawal
either?"
Kira broke in. "She wasn't involved in the Occupation.
Period."
As if a ship had just decloaked before him, Sisko was suddenly
aware of the tension between the two Bajoran officers, and realized with a
start that it had been there since he had first seen them meet.
He exchanged a quick glance with Jadzia and her subtle nod confirmed
that she saw the same animosity. Sisko wondered how he had missed it. But he
could guess what was behind it.
"Is that right?" he asked in as neutral a fashion as he
could.
Aria kept her eyes on him, ignoring Kira. "My grandparents
lived on B'hal Ta. A Bajoran colony world. When the Cardassians annexed Bajor,
my family was able to relocate to New Sydney. That's where I was born."
"You were fortunate," Sisko said. He decided that that
accident of fate was more than enough reason to account for the major's
feelings toward Aria Rees. He knew that there were those on Bajor—especially
those who had served in the Resistance like Kira—who believed that expatriate
Bajorans who had not suffered through the Occupation, and who had not
voluntarily returned to their homeworld or taken up arms against Cardassia,
were only one step removed from being collaborators.
"Yes, sir, very fortunate."
Sisko decided to bring the conversation back to the
less-controversial present. "So, from your experience, Major, and from any
research you might have done, Commander, can you think of any reason why
person-
nel on board DS9 on the Day of Withdrawal might have suffered from
memory loss, selective or otherwise?"
"Benjamin?" Jadzia asked. "Who's suffering from
memory loss?"
Sisko quickly summarized for his old friend Quark's claim to be
missing memories of the day in question, and the Ferengi's suspicions that Odo
and Garak were similarly affected.
"Fascinating," Jadzia said. "The old name for it is
'Missing Time Syndrome.' On Earth, it goes back centuries, before first
contact, when the Reticulii were conducting their genetic profiling of humans
and didn't want anyone in the sample group to know they had been transported to
the orbiting medical ships. Today, the Federation's own First Contact Office
uses the same techniques if a duck blind's exposed or a pre-contact
investigator is detected."
"In this case," Sisko said, "I think we can rale
out any involvement by the Reticulii or the First Contact Office. What other
possibilities should we consider? Medical experimentation?"
Kira shook her head. "The Cardassians conducted a horrendous
amount of so-called medical research on Bajoran prisoners. Some of it involved
mind control. But that was mostly in the camps. Up here, they kept the slave
workers in line with force and random executions. So I think it's unlikely
anyone experimented on Quark—especially since, if the Cardassians had experimented
on him, their protocols usually called for the experimental subjects to be
killed when the experiment was finished."
Aria looked hesitant, but now offered her own theory. "I
don't know how relevant this is, but Starships
use anesthezine gas to disable intruders, and memory lapses are
sometimes reported as a side effect."
Sisko looked at Kira. "We have a Starfleet anesthezine system
installed on DS9. But there're also the remnants of a Cardassian neurozine gas
dispersal network which, as I recall, was kept on hand in case of worker
revolt."
Kira's voice was bitter. "Crowd-control inhalants like
anesthezine are nonlethal. And nonlethality was never a concern of the
Cardassians. They used neurozine at fatal concentrations, and if they had used
it up here on the Day of Withdrawal, there would have been a lot more than just
four Bajorans dead."
Sisko turned to Dax, who had so many times in the past been able
to share the wisdom and experience of her past hosts. "Old Man?"
But she didn't look hopeful. "Benjamin, there're so many
methods of blocking memories that I wouldn't know where to begin without more
information."
"What kind of information?"
Jadzia pressed her lips together in thought. "Well, I'd like
to know how much time Quark believes he's missing. Is it the same length of
time that Odo and Garak can't account for? Is it the exact same period of time?
Were they together on the Day of Withdrawal? Were they exposed to ... a
radiation leak? An unusual subspace discharge?" Her face brightened as if
she had just had a sudden insight.
"Something just occurred to you," Sisko said.
"I talked with Odo yesterday about his investigation into the
Andorian's death. He thinks a microwave weapon was used, but I think it's
possible some sort of accidental energy pulse could have caused similar
injuries."
Sisko smiled at Jadzia. "Old Man, you've been
spending too much time in the holosuites with Worf. You were the
reason we even found the Cardassians' bodies. Right after your talk with him,
Odo sent a team down to the lower levels to look for energy anomalies. They
found one where a power conduit entered the lower module. And Rom's team found
that the cause of the anomaly was that the Cardassians had been
transporter-fused into the inner hull plates, weakening the shielding."
Jadzia made a face at Sisko. After so many years of friendship,
she was allowed more freedom with Starfleet protocol. "I knew that,
Benjamin. I was standing by with the tractor beam when Rom found the bodies. I
was just wondering if an anomalous energy event that resulted in
microwave radiation could also be tied to an anomalous temporal event."
"An anomalous temporal event?" Aria said. "Those
are incredibly rare."
"Not on DS9," Sisko said. "Unexpected time shifts
are quite common in this region of space."
Jadzia confirmed it. "Actually, the odd temporal events we've
experienced in the past almost all arise in some way out of our proximity to
the wormhole. The structure of subspace is extremely twisted in this region.
What's really surprising is that we don't experience even more jumps in
time than we do. But on the Day of Withdrawal, the station was still in orbit
of Bajor. And the planet's gravity well would have provided a great deal of
shielding against almost any wormhole-related phenomena."
Sisko sat down on the corner of his desk, reached back, and picked
up his baseball. "Okay, so we can rule that possibility out, too. But I
still want this looked into.
"Major Kira," he said, rolling the ball back and forth
in his fingers, feeling its comforting contours relax him as they always did,
freeing him to think more clearly. "The constable seemed reluctant to
discuss the Day of Withdrawal in the Infirmary. Perhaps he won't be as
reluctant speaking with you. See if you can get him to talk about what he
remembers from that day."
Kira seemed surprised by the request. "Captain, I'm not sure
I feel comfortable doing that."
Sisko understood her reluctance. Everyone on the station knew
about the love affair that had blossomed between Kira and Odo in the last
month. And as their friend and colleague, Sisko was happy for both of them.
"I'm not asking you to betray a trust, Major. Let Odo know that you're
asking on my behalf. Let him know that I understand his reluctance to discuss
what he remembers in front of Garak, but that I would appreciate a more
forthright account that will remain confidential."
Kira nodded, accepting his argument.
Sisko tossed his baseball up a few centimeters, then caught it
again. "Commander Aria, since I'm assuming you've had few if any dealings
with Cardassians, I'm assigning you to question Garak."
Aria's eyes widened. "Question him about what, sir?"
"What Dax wants to know. I want a timeline of everything that
happened to Odo and Garak and Quark on the Day of Withdrawal." Then
he smiled winningly at Jadzia.
"Don't tell me," she said, pouting. "I get to talk
to Quark."
Sisko's grin grew. "I can't imagine anyone else he'd rather
open up to."
"Captain," Kira broke in briskly, "can I ask why
something that happened six years ago is important enough for us to drop our
other duties and—"
"No one's dropping their other duties," Sisko said.
"There's a war on."
"Exactly," Kira agreed. "And I don't see the point
of expending extra effort just to solve the deaths of two Cardassians,
especially one who was in a death squad."
Sisko replaced his ball on his desk, then stood up to address Kira
and the others, not as their coworker and friend but as their commanding
officer and captain of Deep Space 9. "Major, those two dead Cardassians
represent a mystery. And I will not have mysteries on my station. Because until
we find out how those Cardassians died, and why Quark and perhaps two other
people on this station had their memories interfered with, I can't be certain
if any of it might happen again. And believe me, if an attack wing of Jem'Hadar
fighters is bearing down at us, I want to know that my officers are not
suddenly going to develop a case of amnesia and end up fused into the hull
plates. Is that clear?"
Kira, Aria, and even Jadzia stood at attention. "Yes,
sir." Kira said.
"Right away, sir," Aria added.
"Ben, I'll speak to Quark as soon as Odo's finished with
him," Jadzia confirmed.
Sisko could see that there was more that Jadzia wanted to say.
"Something else?" he asked.
"What about the Andorian?"
"Quark's many things," Sisko said reluctantly, "but
he's no murderer. Though I do think Odo's enjoying this chance to make him
sweat. And at the same time, I
think that by appearing to be convinced that Quark is guilty,
Odo's making the real murderer feel overconfident."
Aria seemed shocked by Sisko's statement. "Sir, do you
honestly believe that the constable has the wrong man, and that the real killer
is still free on the station?"
"That's exactly what I think, Commander."
"But. .." Aria said, obviously disturbed by the thought,
"isn't knowingly permitting the continued custody of an innocent man a
violation of Starfleet directives concerning the application of local laws? And
aren't you risking the real murderer escaping? Not to mention putting the other
personnel on this station at risk of being killed?"
"Commander. Starfleet regulations are written by bureaucrats
in comfortable offices back on Earth. As captain of this station, I do have the
authority to ... be flexible in how I choose to follow those regulations,
whenever I feel a given situation is outside the parameters Starfleet considered
when the regulations were written. Believe me, Commander, this entire station
falls outside those parameters."
Jadzia smiled at Sisko, and then took the confused commander's
arm. "Odo won't be through questioning Quark for a while. Why don't we get
some raktajino and... we'll talk."
Sisko could see that Aria was flattered by Jadzia's request; she
left the office with her, Major Kira following a moment later.
As Sisko stood in the doorway to his office watching the three
officers head for the turbolift, he was pleased to unexpectedly see his son,
Jake, just emerging from the lift on the main deck below. The love he felt for
his boy, this anchor for him in the storm of
events that regularly engulfed this station, filled Sisko with a
transcendent joy.
But his sudden smile was undercut as he saw who stepped out of the
lift behind Jake: Jake's best friend, Nog, and Chief O'Brien.
Jake looked up to wave at him, and Sisko returned the gesture,
growing even more concerned as he noted Jake's half-hearted smile, Nog's
nervous expression, and O'Brien's flushed cheeks.
"Hi, Dad," Jake called out as he took the stairs to the
upper level, two at a time.
"Sir," Nog added crisply, just behind Jake.
Sisko frowned, and the three visitors froze where they stood.
"You know, if this were six years ago and I saw you three coming up here
like this, I'd think Chief O'Brien had caught you boys playing in the
Jefferies rubes again. But you two young men are too old for that now,
aren't you?"
O'Brien was wheezing slightly as he resumed climbing the stairs.
"Funny you should say that, sir."
Sisko sighed. "Should we step inside?"
"Yes, sir," Jake said glumly.
Sisko followed the three into his office, suspecting hie wasn't
going to like what they had to tell him.
He was right.
CHAPTER 9
for the second time in two days, Jake Sisko opened the small egress
panel and slid it to the side of the cramped Jefferies tube.
"It's open," he said. Then he heard Nog's communicator
badge chirp as his friend passed on the report to Chief O'Brien.
The chief's voice came back, echoing along the metal-walled tube.
"According to your position on the station plans, you two lads should be
facing another fifteen meters of unobstructed passageway."
Jake sighed. He and Nog had finally done what they should have
done years ago, and told DS9's chief engineer about the hidden section of the
station. Then, with an agitated O'Brien at their side, they had told Jake's
father. And then—Jake was sure it was just to compound the humiliation
he and Nog felt—Sisko and the chief had insisted they repeat their story to the
forbid-
ding, and strongly disapproving, Lieutenant Commander Worf.
But even though it was plainly evident through all the reporting
that his father was keenly disappointed in him for having kept something like
this a secret for so long, Jake could also see that neither his father nor the
chief nor Commander Worf actually believed the story when they first heard it.
So why were they upset? Not that they shouldn't be, because the story was true.
It was just... Jake didn't know. He only hoped that in a million years or so,
when he was his father's age, he would have a better grasp of a teenager's way
of thinking.
Jake lifted his head to look back down the narrow Jefferies tube
at Nog. "I don't get it. Do they still think we're making this up?"
Apparently, Nog's comm channel was still open because O'Brien
answered. "No, I don't think you're making it up. I'm just telling you
what's on the screen."
"Sorry, Chief," Jake said with a grimace. "I'm
going to climb through the opening now."
Jake pushed himself up through the open access way just as he had
before, then again swung his body around to free his legs so he could drop down
into the dark section of corridor. Nog followed a moment later, much more
quickly and smoothly than the last time. Once again, his palm torch was the
only source of light.
-Tell them," Jake said.
Nog tapped his communicator. "We are in the corridor."
Nog made it sound as if they were commandos who had just beamed in behind enemy
lines.
A few seconds later, the short section of corridor lit
up with the golden energy of the transporter effect, and three
sparkling columns of quantum mist resolved into Jake's father, O'Brien, and
Worf. Each of them carried their own palm torch. Jake wasn't quite sure why
Worf had his hand on the phaser he wore. But then, Worf was like that.
Benjamin Sisko's expression was unreadable. "Chief?" was
all he said. Jake had noticed that his father had a shorthand way of dealing
with his command staff, almost as if they shared some low-level telepathic
link.
Chief O'Brien's attention jumped back and forth between the
corridor and the large engineering padd he carried. The padd was similar to the
kind Jake had seen artists sometimes use for sketching. "This makes absolutely
no sense," the chief said. "Look at the deck plan for this
section."
As Sisko and Worf stood on one side of O'Brien to study the
engineering display, Jake stood with Nog on the other.
On the padd, Jake could see four yellow dots representing the team's
active communicators tightly grouped together, blinking in the middle of what a
label identified as a storage room.
"This is clearly not a storage room," Worf stated in his
deep, somber voice.
O'Brien nodded, pointing to various bulkheads that surrounded the
blinking lights on the padd display. "I think I can see what's happened
here. The Cardassians' own official plans have been altered to show that these
two storage rooms, here and here—" O'Brien's finger touched the surface of
the padd, "—have back walls that extend an extra three meters or so.
Notice this relay room extends two more meters. And this
heat-exchange conduit is ... maybe a half-meter wider than it has
to be. And the two corridor sections running to either side are the same. So
I'm betting the conduits that are supposed to be running right above us have
been rerouted to either side, too, probably passing through the deck plates
instead of running through that Jefferies tube that just isn't there."
Jake was surprised by how seriously the three men were reacting to
the unmarked corridor's existence. His father, especially, looked grim.
"Why weren't these deviations noticed when the first retrofit team went
through the station to confirm the Cardassian plans?"
O'Brien looked apologetic. "I'm betting they were noticed.
But there are lots of discrepancies between me Cardassians' plans for the
station and how they were executed. A project this big, there would have to be.
I've noticed little things over the years myself— pipes in the wrong order, a
junction box on the left wall instead of the right... it gets so you come to
expect it. But they're usually not major enough to bother altering the plans to
fit."
"Yet this stretch of corridor is ..." Sisko swung the
beam of his palm torch from one end of the section to the other. "... at
least ten meters long, Chief. That's a lot of station to go missing."
"No argument from me, sir. All I can say is that this is a
noncritical section of the station, so with the war changing our priorities, we
just haven't had a full refit team down here yet. For what it's worth, we would
•save found this ... missing space ... eventually."
Sisko levelled his gaze at Jake. "For what it's worth, we
should have been informed about this missing space six years ago."
Jake was about to remind his father how many times he had
apologized already, when Nog nudged him in the side. Jake understood. Nog had
gone to great lengths to explain to Jake that their best defense was to behave
like Starfleet cadets—limiting their responses to Yes, sir; No, sir; and most
importantly, No excuse, sir. "It's a good way to avoid arguments,"
Nog had emphasized.
So Jake remained silent until his father said, "All right
then, where's this .. . hidden holosuite?"
Nog hurried ahead. "Right down here, Captain. It's the only
door in that bulkhead."
The team followed Nog until they were gathered together by the
closed door. Worf and O'Brien immediately scanned the door and the area beyond
it with their tricorders—one set for engineering readings, the other for
security.
Jake shifted his weight from one leg to the other, impatient with
the delay. He wanted this over with. "Dad, there's nothing dangerous in
there. We've been inside a lot of—"
Sisko cut him off with an icy glare. "And maybe you've been
lucky. Before they left, the Cardassians booby-trapped all sorts of equipment
and facilities in this station, especially anything with a military function.
And the only reason I can think of for putting a holosuite down here is for
training purposes."
"Yes, sir," Jake said dispiritedly.
"I detect no explosives or triggering devices behind the
door," Worf announced as he lowered his tricorder.
"Captain," O'Brien added, "I'm not even picking up
any evidence of power flow. The tricorder's telling me there's a room beyond
the door, about five meters by six. But I don't think anything inside is even
connected
to the station's power grid." The chief made an adjustment
on his tricorder. "In fact, I'm not even picking up any evidence of holo
equipment. Either projectors or microforcefield emitters."
Nervously, Jake looked up and down the corridor to see if there
was any chance they could somehow be at the wrong door. But just as every time
before, there was only the one.
"You're certain it was a holosuite?" his father asked
him.
"Dad, it could run our fishing hole program perfectly. Water
and everything."
His father looked back to O'Brien. 'Then it has to be a holosuite,
and for it to run a program from my own data library it has to have some
type of interface with the station's main computer network."
O'Brien made more adjustments, then frowned. "If there is,
sir, I'm going to have to make a more detailed -can. From inside."
Sisko nodded at Worf. Worf tapped the door control and the door
opened.
Jake almost smiled as he heard Nog take a deep breath. His best
friend was preparing himself for the embarrassment of having everyone see his
adolescent modification of the fishing-hole program, complete with Ferengi
bathing beauties.
But as the light from the palm torches stabbed into the room, it
revealed ... only a room.
Jake and Nog both tried to push ahead, but were held back by Worf.
"I've never seen that before," Jake said to his father.
"Sir, this holosuite has always been in
operation," Nog added.
Sisko looked at O'Brien. "Any chance the holosuite
ran on batteries and yesterday's visit finally exhausted
them?"
O'Brien was skeptical. "No battery powerful enough for a
holosuite goes completely dead that fast. I'd still be able to pick up some
residual charge somewhere. And even taking a direct reading from the far wall,
there are no holoprojector on it or in it."
Sisko nodded at Worf again and he and the Klingon stepped into the
room together. Jake watched as his father and Worf reached the middle, then
turned slowly, playing their palm torches around in a circle like all-seeing
scanners.
"It appears to be a lab of some sort," Worf said slowly.
"Maybe," Sisko said. "It does look as if they were
building things in here. Maybe a machine shop? Chief O'Brien?"
O'Brien stepped in next and Jake watched him make the same careful
examination of the room, this time giving a running inventory of everything he
saw. "Circuit testbed, communications console, a Type-IV computer
interface...." He gave Sisko a significant look. "That's identical to
Dax's science station in Ops." He returned to his assessment of the room.
"A few storage lockers, maybe for lab coats or tools or lunches ... None
of them locked."
"What about that?" Sisko asked, aiming his torch to a
corner of the room Jake couldn't see.
"Well, it's a console," O'Brien said. "But I don't
recognize the configuration."
Sisko looked at both O'Brien and Worf. "Gentlemen, any
energy readings?" he asked.
Worf and O'Brien replied at the same time. "No, sir."
Sisko motioned to Jake and Nog. "You two. In here."
Jake and Nog stepped over the lip of the door and into the room.
In this nonoperational mode it was completely unfamiliar to Jake, and he could
see the same lack of recognition in Nog.
"Really, sir. We never saw it this way," Nog said.
"You two said you were able to change whatever program it was
displaying," Sisko prompted.
"That's right," Jake said. "I'll give it a
try." He cleared his throat. "Room, this is Jake Sisko. Show me my
fishing hole."
Jake unconsciously braced himself for the sudden swirl of
holopixels and the odd optical bounce that had always followed that command.
But nothing happened.
"Anything?" Sisko asked O'Brien.
"I've set this at full sensitivity, Captain. If there were a
single acoustical pickup in this room, I would have detected the current flow
created when Jake spoke." He showed the tricorder's flashing face to
Jake's father.
Sisko answered his own question. "Nothing."
Jake winced at his father's tone of voice. "Dad, this was a
holodeck. We played in my fishing hole. And Nog had a really great Ferenginar
adventure playground." The playground had been at the edge of a dismal,
rain-misted swamp, Jake remembered, but the programmable swinging vines had been
a lot of fun.
"What else?" Sisko asked sternly.
Jake shrugged, perplexed by what he had no way to explain, or
prove. "A couple of other programs from our personal library. You know,
the theme park at Tran-quility Base, the Klingon Zoo ..." He glanced at
Nog.
"We could only ever ran programs that were in your personal
files or my father's," Nog said. "I mean, we could customize elements
of them with voice commands, but... we never really figured out the room's
full operating interface."
Sisko looked again at O'Brien and Worf as if silently soliciting
their opinions.
In response, Worf asked the next question. "Are you certain
you never saw a holoprogram that was Cardassian in nature? A military training
scenario? Cardassian history reenactments?"
Both Jake and Nog shook their heads.
"Oh," Nog suddenly added. "There was the moon. The
Bajoran moon."
"Which moon?" Sisko asked sharply.
Jake stared beseechingly at Nog, who shrugged. "Dad, I don't
know. One of the inhabited ones. That was the program that was running
yesterday when we came in. That's what made us think that someone else had been
in here."
Sisko rubbed his free hand over his clean-shaven scalp. It was a
gesture Jake had seen his father make a thousand times, most often when Dax was
forcing him into checkmate in three-dimensional chess.
"Chief," Sisko said, "if we don't know what that
console is, is there any chance it could be some radically different form of
holoprojector?"
Jake took a look at the unidentified console as O'Brien walked
over to it and the four palm torches in the room converged upon it.
The console was definitely Cardassian in design—a large, jagged
boomerang shape, tilted slightly toward the operator, finished with the
familiar dull-gray bonding metal. The flat-panel controls were unlit, though
the light from the palm torches showed that the controls were
arranged in standard Cardassian logic groupings. About the only detail that
made the console unusual was that in the center of its slanting surface, a
section had been inset in order to hold a flat shelf about a half-meter square.
Even to Jake's untrained eye, it seemed obvious that whatever had
been connected to the console on that shelf had been ripped out. Two power
leads dangled to either side, their interior component wires roughly torn
apart. Jake could even see heat damage on the console just beneath the lead
ends, as well as in the center of the shelf.
"Now this is interesting," O'Brien said as he held his
tricorder only centimeters from the damaged console.
"Was it a holoprojector?" Sisko asked.
"I doubt it," O'Brien answered. "But I don't think
I've ever seen energy traces like this before."
"What kind of energy?" Worf asked.
"Hard to say, Commander. I don't think it's from a weapon.
But... whatever was on this section here—" O'Brien pointed his tricorder
at the console's inset shelf, "—it was radiating ... something I haven't
seen before."
Jake stepped back as his father moved in front of him and Nog as
if to shield them from the console. "Dangerous?" his father asked.
"Not now, sir. And there's no way to know if what I'm picking
up came about because it was a slow release of radiation over a long period of
time—in which case, I don't think it ever would have been dangerous—or if it
came in a sudden, explosive release, in a short time—in which case, it might
have been."
O'Brien snapped his tricorder shut with a practiced flip of his
hand. "Sorry, Captain. But that's the best I can do with this. I'm going
to need a full team to take it apart. Couldn't hurt to have Dax take a look,
too."
"Maybe in a day or two," Sisko said. "I've already
got her helping out with the dead Cardassians."
Jake was surprised to hear Commander Worf snort.
Sisko raised his eyebrows. "A problem, Mr. Worf?"
Worf looked up at the ceiling. "Sir, it is not any of my
business."
"But... ?"
"For Quark to say that he has lost his memory to provide an
alibi for his actions at the time the Cardassians were killed is ...
ludicrous."
"You're right," Sisko agreed. Jake was as surprised to
hear his father say that as it appeared Commander Worf was. But then his father
finished his statement. "It is none of your business."
"Yes, sir," Worf growled grumpily.
Jake caught the lightning-quick wink and a smile that his father
meant just for him. Then he watched as his father tugged down on his jacket and
transformed himself from Jake's father into a Starfleet captain again.
"Anything else you feel we should know?" he asked Jake
and Nog. "Any detail, however small, you think might help us out?"
Jake and Nog looked at each other, shook their heads.
Sisko accepted their answer. "All right. You two can—"
"I have a question," Chief O'Brien suddenly said.
"How did you two find this room in the first place?"
"We used to explore the Jefferies tubes," Jake said.
"I can understand that," O'Brien replied. "But what
possessed you to go to all the trouble of opening up that access hatch? It
couldn't have been easy."
Jake looked down at the deck, trying to remember the first day he
and Nog had found the room. "I think it was because we had never seen one
so small. It's not exactly a standard size."
Nog coughed. "We were . . . looking for hidden Cardassian
treasure, Chief."
"Ah," O'Brien said. "For a couple of
twelve-year-olds, that makes perfect sense. But then, when you came in here, to
the room, for the first time, how did you know it was a holosuite? It couldn't
have been running any of your own programs without your having given it a
command, right?"
"Right," Jake said with surprise. He looked down at Nog.
"What was running when we came in?"
Jake felt his father's hand on his shoulder. "Jake, do you
have any sense that you can't remember the first time you came into this
room?"
"I don't think so," Jake said, wondering why his father
suddenly sounded so worried.
"Wait! I remember," Nog said.
Everyone looked at him. He looked up at Jake. "You didn't
want to go inside, remember?"
Jake laughed. "Oh yeah. I was ... I was afraid. I remember
now."
Nog looked back to Sisko. "So Jake dared me to go in
first."
"And what program was running?" O'Brien asked.
"That's what was so great," Nog said excitedly. "It
was Ferenginar. The swamp outside the capital city. It was dark, and wet, and
raining. I was so excited. I came out to tell Jake it was just like my
adventure
playground program, and when we both came back in, we found the
playground just a few hundred meters away."
O'Brien looked at Sisko. "The room recognized him. Called up
his favorite program from his father's personal library. And all in the space
of time it took to open the door."
Jake looked at the serious expression that his father, O'Brien, and
Worf all shared now. "Why's that bad?"
O'Brien answered. "Jake, there's no power coming into this
room. There's no computer link through that Type-IV console or through any
other piece of equipment in the room. Yet somehow this room had the data-processing
capability to identify Nog and call up a program from his father's personal
library in seconds. Not even the holodecks they use at Starfleet Academy have
that kind of processing ability." O'Brien turned to Sisko as if making a
formal report. "Sir, with this new information, I think it's reasonable to
assume that this was a top-secret Cardassian research facility, probably
involving advanced computers and holo-replication technology far beyond anything
we have."
"I agree," Sisko said. "So why did the Cardassians
leave it behind?"
"Perhaps," Worf said in a voice full of grave concern,
"the equipment in here was too complex to be removed in time during the
Withdrawal, and was considered too valuable to be destroyed."
Jake could see that his father was definitely intrigued—and
disturbed—by that possibility. "You know," he said softly as if
talking to himself, "Starfleet has never been able to come up with a
satisfactory explanation for why the Cardassians didn't activate
DS9's self-destruct system when they withdrew. I wonder if this
room—this lab—is the reason. Did they achieve a breakthrough here that they
hoped to keep hidden until they could return?"
"But they did return, Captain," Worf said. "Last
year. Why did they not reclaim their equipment then?"
Sisko looked up, and Jake could see he was enjoying the challenge
this room was presenting. "Perhaps the work being done here was so secret
that only a handful of people knew about it. Perhaps they died during the
Withdrawal, or shortly after. There could be a dozen reasons, Worf."
"But if the work was so secret and so valuable," O'Brien
said, "then why was it being carried out here? In a mining station?
In an occupied sector subject to attack by Bajoran resistance fighters?"
"I don't know, Chief," Sisko admitted, and didn't seem
troubled by his lack of an answer. "But you can be sure there was a
reason. We're dealing with Cardassians here, and they have a reason for
everything they do." He looked around the room, deep in thought. "If
this was a Cardassian research facility, then you can be sure that the
reason it is here, is because this is the only place it could be."
Jake saw that O'Brien didn't share his captain's sense of urgency
for the problem at hand. "But, sir, why would that be?"
Jake could see his father was in his element now. His face was
alive with new purpose. "Who knows, Chief. But one thing's for sure—even
after six years, this old place still has a few surprises left in it."
CHAPTER 10
the only thing worse than a Ferengi with a headache was a
Ferengi with an earache. And at this moment, in his darkened bar in the middle
of DS9's night, Quark suffered from both—unquestionably the aftermath of the
past eight hours he had spent with Odo.
And now his woes intensified as he saw the after-hours condition
of his establishment. The chairs had not been placed on top of the tables.
There were still glasses on the dabo table. And behind the bar, the replicator
had been left on.
"Why do I even bother?" Quark said to the empty room. He
gazed up at the vivid orange, red, and yellow stained-glass mural that
dominated the first floor of his bar. All its backglow panels had been left on,
too. "What about you, Admiral? Do you have an answer?"
The mural kept its silence, which was no great sur-
prise. Quark shuffled over to the bar to pour himself a very large
drink.
Exactly what the mural was, Quark really wasn't sure. For years,
that same wall had been dominated by a large Cardassian galor, courtesy
of Gul Dukat.
Quark seldom cared about politics, and if the commandant of Terok
Nor had wanted his grandmother hung on the wall, it would have been fine with
the Ferengi. So the lurid green, pink, and yellow symbol of the Cardassian
Union, which looked to Quark like some improbable combination of the hooded
Smiling Partner of Ferengi legend and a short-handled screwdriver, had
remained proudly in place—until Gul Dukat had swaggered in one day to announce
he had just won a spectacular work of rare and valuable art in a late-night
game of tongo. And since Quark's was the only public facility on the station
with a ceiling high enough to properly display this great treasure, Dukat
proclaimed Quark's would be its new home.
At the time, Quark had cared as much about his establishment's
decor as he did about politics. His was the only bar on the Cardassian half of
the station— indeed, it was the only bar on the entire station, the closest
thing to competition being the Cardassian Cafe. And if a tired Cardassian
soldier or Bajoran trustee would rather eat replicated Cardassian neemuk without
benefit of kanar to wash it down or the company of luscious dabo girls,
then Quark was just as happy not to have those lackluster, boring slugs taking
up valuable space in his bar.
So, Cardassian galor or Dukat's esteemed art treasure, it
mattered little to Quark at the time what was on the back wall of his bar.
True, he had had to shut down for two days while a team of Bajoran artisans
were
brought up to install the mural, and Subcommandant Akris had not
granted Quark's request for a matching percentage decrease in the weekly
kickback—that is, licensing fee—that Quark had to pay the station management
office. But Dukat had more than made up for Quark's initial lost profits by
pretentiously buying endless rounds for his staff on the night the mural was
grandly unveiled—to mostly diffident though polite applause.
As Quark had worked the tables that night, he had overheard the
Bajoran comfort women saying that at least the orange light helped bring a more
Bajoran flush to the cold gray faces of the Cardassian officers they were
forced to entertain. Quark himself liked the orange light, because it made it
easier to use short measures in amber-colored drinks. And Dukat got to proudly
trumpet on about the addition he had made to culture on Terok Nor—making the
station an uplifting beacon of Cardassian light amidst the primitive darkness
of the Bajoran sector.
It was just that no one seemed to be sure what the mural was
supposed to represent—until finally, that first night, when much kanar had
been consumed and two glinns had already been dragged off to the Infirmary
after a particularly brutish fight (which fortunately had lasted long enough
for Quark to take bets and clear five slips of latinum), Dukat toasted the
mural in such a way that it was clear what he thought it was.
"To a mighty enemy," Dukat had proclaimed,
"defeated at last, now sentenced to look on the works of the Cardassian
Union and despair! Ladies and gentlemen, I give you the portrait of Admiral
Alkene, late of the Tholian Assembly!"
After Dukat and his guests had left that evening, Quark and Rom
and two Cardassian mining engineers had closed the place, leaning on the bar,
staring thoughtfully up at what was now called the Tholian mural.
One mining engineer drunkenly offered up the observation that
Tholians had faceted heads.
The other, in an equal state of disequilibrium, disagreed,
maintaining it was the Tholian helmets that were faceted, and that the shape of
Tholian heads was closer to the long and pointed sections included in the
mural. Except that he was positive the mural had been installed upside down.
Rom had volunteered that he was fairly certain the mural
was actually a version of the traditional good-luck banners that were always
hung over the drinking troughs in what he delicately referred to as Tellarite
mud-pits of ill repute. "Yep, they ... make them by the hundreds on
Tellarus," Rom had sniggered. "And you see that same crazy design on
Tellarite scarves and pill boxes and ... lingerie."
Quark remembered glaring at his idiot brother, demanding to know
why the Tellarites would put a portrait of a Tholian admiral on lingerie!
Rom had simply shrugged and gone on to explain in excruciatingly
precise and clinical detail that the shape in the mural was not that of a
Tholian head at all, but of an entirely different, but equally remarkable part
of Tellarite male anatomy.
Even as he began to laugh at Rom's hilariously ribald
description, Quark had felt his heart actually stop beating as he suddenly
remembered the presence of the two Cardassian engineers. Fortunately, both were
so drunk that they didn't hear Rom dismiss the Gul's
great work of art as nothing more than a big Tellarite ... well,
even in private, Quark had not been able to say the word, though he relished the
aptness of the image.
For at least a year after that, he and Rom had shared a rare
moment of rapport in their guilty, private pleasure every time Dukat came to
the bar with whoever his latest comfort woman was and regaled her with the
story of Admiral Alkene, ending with a grandiloquent toast and salute to the
mural.
Only Quark and his brother knew to what the gul was really raising
his glass, and they kept that knowledge to themselves. And if any other
visitors to Quark's during those last years of the Occupation recognized what
was hanging on the wall for what it was, they also wisely kept their expert
knowledge—and their laughter—to themselves.
Though Quark had never been able to confirm Rom's saucy
identification of the mural's subject matter, and for that matter had never
been able to determine how his idiot brother had come to have such deep
knowledge of Tellarite mud-pits of ill repute, it was always in Quark's mind
that if the day ever came that the Cardassians left Terok Nor, he would celebrate
that glorious occasion by shattering Gul Dukat's mural into ten thousand
shards.
But that day had come and gone, six long years ago, and the mural
remained, with both he and Rom still referring to it, in private, as the
Admiral.
But the Tholian mural was of no importance this night, and Quark
tried not to think of the disarray the bar had been left in—or the overtime it
would cost him to get it back in shape for Morn's arrival in the morning.
Instead, he poured himself a snoggin of Romulan ale.
And since old traditions are hard to ignore, he did hold up the
glass to the mural. "To you, Admiral—or whatever you are. Because you're
still here, and I'm still here, and I have absolutely no idea why that should
be." He gulped down a mouthful of the ale, shivering as the blue fluid
sliced through him like a protoplaser. "Except, that is," he coughed
to finish his toast, "as some twisted reminder of the 117th Rule: You
can't free a fish from water."
"Actually ..." a distant, muffled voice interjected,
"that's the 217th Rule. A lot of people make that mistake."
The empty glass slipped from Quark's hand and shattered on the
counter of the bar as he stared at the mural. For just a split second, visions
of latinum came to his mind as he calculated the increased business he could
attract with a talking wall decoration that knew the Rules of Acquisition. But
only for a split second.
"Rommm..." Quark sighed. "What are you doing back
there?"
"Uh, up here, Brother." Quark looked up. Rom was
standing on the second floor, holding a large tray stacked with dirty dishes.
He carried a server's billing padd in his mouth, accounting for the muffled
nature of his voice.
"My mistake," Quark said in exasperation, "what are
you doing up there?"
"Uh, cleaning up." Rom started down the stairs, eyes
fixed on the precariously balanced dishes before him. "We had three
different parties in the holosuites tonight, sooo ... things are still a bit
messy."
Rom made it to the bar and put down his tray just as Quark lunged
to catch the first falling glass. "Where
are the servers?" Quark demanded. "Did they all quit? Or
did you talk them into going on strike again?"
Rom took the padd from his mouth and wiped the edge of it on his
sleeve. "Well, no. I... sent them home."
Quark shook his head, having a hard time believing he was actually
having this conversation. "How could you send them home when the place
looks like this?!"
"Because ... it takes longer to clean up when we've been this
busy—and then we have to pay them overtime."
Quark blinked. Had his brother actually said something sensible?
"Wait a minute. You sent them home— to save money?"
Rom nodded excitedly. "Well... yes. You see, tomorrow's my
day off from station duty, so I can stay up all night to clean the bar, and
that saves us the overtime charges for the serving staff."
Quark snorted cynically. "Sure. So you can pocket that money
for yourself."
"Uh, no, Brother. If we can keep overtime to a minimum for
the next two weeks, then when we get our next beverage shipment, we'll be able
to pay on delivery, and that will net us a one-point-six-seven percent
discount for cash. Which, when you multiply by our standard adjusted gross
markup, works out to an additional profit of—"
"I know what it works out to," Quark said. "Who
gave you that idea?"
Rom looked around the empty bar and shrugged. "Uh,. . .
you've been saying we need to cut overhead, and that made me think of how Chief
O'Brien tries to ... optimize the station's engineering resources, so
I used his Starfleet scheduling programs to examine the bar's
operations. And ... it worked! Didn't it?"
Whether it was the headache/earache assault, the exhaustion he
felt after Odo's interrogation, or—more probably—the Romulan ale, Quark ran out
of things to complain about. "You surprise me, Rom."
Rom grinned. "Uh, you surprise me, too. I... heard you
talking to ..." He started to snicker. "... the Admiral."
Quark poured another snoggin of ale. "I didn't know
you were eavesdropping." Quark went to swallow the drink, but stopped when
he saw Rom staring at him. "What?"
"I heard what you said, Brother. Why is the mural
still here? I mean, you always said you wanted to... get rid of it as soon as
the Cardassians were gone."
Quark took a deep breath, realized he had no answer, so he made
one up. "I got used to it. It's the same reason you're still here."
Rom's gap-toothed grin was knowing. "Oh, I know that's not
true. You're just tired after being in that cell for so long. I sent a message
to the Nagus!"
Quark felt as if he had just been slapped awake. 'About
what?!"
"Well... Odo told Leeta to tell me that you said that you
needed a lawyer."
"Doesn't anyone on this station know about negotiations?"
Quark exclaimed in disgust. "You know, when you make an outrageous demand
that you know won't be met, in order to counter the outrageous demand made by
the other party?"
Now it was Rom's turn to look confused. "You mean ... you
don't need a lawyer?"
"No."
"But—"
"But what?"
Rom shrugged. "You killed that Andorian."
"Rom! I did not kill anyone! "
Rom blinked innocently. "You killed that Klingon."
"An accident! What are you? Working for Odo now?"
"But, Brother, if... you didn't kill the Andorian, why have
you been under arrest for the past two days?"
"Because Odo is one of those rare individuals on this station
who is actually more of an idiot than you are!" Even as the words were
leaving his mouth, Quark could see he had hurt his brother's feelings.
"I'm sorry, Rom. Really. I didn't mean it. It's Odo who's put me in such a
bad mood." Quark set up a second glass. "C'mon, have a drink to
celebrate my release."
Rom watched carefully as Quark poured more ale. "But...
wasn't it supposed to be a good idea that you were in protective custody?"
Quark handed the glass to his brother. "It was, until Odo
decided I really was guilty and made it a real arrest. He still thinks I'm
guilty."
The two Ferengi clinked glasses and toasted the Admiral. Then Rom
gaped like a drowning fish as the Romulan ale scorched his insides. "I...
I don't... understand ..." he gasped.
"You drank it too fast," Quark explained.
"N-no," Rom wheezed. "If Odo still thinks you're
guilty, then why did he let you go?"
"Captain Sisko listened to reason. Hew-mons do that
occasionally, you know, Rom. He made Odo release me and give me a
bodyguard."
"What bodyguard?"
Quark pointed out to the Promenade. "That body— oh,
for—"
The Bajoran security officer he had left standing watch at the
main door to the bar was gone.
Quark crouched down and waved his hand at Rom. "Check the
other door. Hurry!"
Rom jumped back to look spinward at the smaller entrance to the
left of the bar. "Uh, there's no one there either."
Quark's desperately racing mind tried to make sense of the
situation. The bodyguard had been Bajoran, so he probably hadn't been bribed to
abandon his post. And if Vash was making a move on him, she wouldn't kill an
uninvolved party, so she had either stunned the guard and—
"The Andorian sisters," Quark hissed.
Rom nodded with a happy smile. "They're very pretty."
"They want to kill me!" Quark yelped from behind the
bar.
Rom leaned over to peer down at his hiding brother. "But.. .
that was only because they thought you killed Dal Nortron. And since you
didn't..."
"But they still think I did!"
Rom nodded with understanding. "Oh .. . then you are in
big trouble. Huge trouble. Gigantic trouble."
The only thing that stopped Quark from slapping his brother silly
was his desire to stay down, out of the line of fire. "Thank you for
figuring that out for me, idiot! Now listen carefully...."
"Brother, I don't like it when you call me names. Chief
O'Brien—"
"Shut up! Shut up and go to security. Get Odo. I don't care
if you have to pour him out of his pail—"
"Uh, I don't think he lives in a pail anymore—"
"I don't care! It's not important! Just tell him his guard is
gone and he needs to—"
A sudden series of swift knocks froze Quark in mid-command.
He mouthed the words, "Who ... is ... it?"
Rom mouthed back the words, "I... don't... know."
Quark made fists with both hands, and sputtered out loud, "Of
course you don't know—you ..." He caught himself, dropped his voice to a
whisper. "You didn't look."
"Oh," Rom said, as if the concept of seeing who was at a
door was startlingly new. "I can do that." He left the bar.
Quark sank deeper behind it, knowing there was nowhere to run. The
closest entrance to his network of smugglers' tunnels was in a wall halfway
across the bar. Then he brightened. The lights were out. Maybe ... just maybe
whoever was at the door who had come to kill him would think Rom was Quark,
kill Rom, then leave. Quark chewed his bottom lip, trying not to jinx the
possibility of good fortune by thinking too much about it. But it was possible.
There could still be a happy ending to this tawdry mess after all.
"Hello?" Quark heard Rom speaking softly in the
distance. "Is ... someone there?"
Quark braced for the sound of a phaser. My poor brother, he
thought. How brave he is to risk his life for me. He began to plan Rom's
memorial party. He was sure he could get Chief O'Brien to pay for it.
"Hello?" Rom said again.
Quark heard the hum of the door inductors as they began to slide
open.
"Is someone—ah!"
Quark grimaced as he heard his brother's death cry swallowed by
the crackle of an energy discharge. At least it was fast, he thought.
He'd be sure that his nephew Nog took comfort in that knowledge.
But then he heard footsteps—a sound so faint only Ferengi ears
could perceive it.
Vash, Quark
thought, outraged. She knew what he looked like. That hew-mon female had
killed Rom out of spite. You 'd think spite would be enough for her.
Then Quark heard a second set of footsteps. He stifled a groan.
Two sets could only mean he was wrong about Vash. It was the Andorian
sisters. They knew what he looked like too.
Who am I fooling? Quark suddenly thought. It was one thing to sit back and hope for
disaster to strike others in order to save him. But the 236th Rule said it
best: You can't buy fate.
/ have to be brave, he told himself. / have to avenge
Rom's brave sacrifice. I have to stand up for what I believe in.
Slowly, Quark craned his head around and reached for the bottle of
Romulan ale, grabbing it by its neck. In his mind, he painstakingly
choreographed the moves he would have to make to go on the offensive— a sudden
leap to his feet, smash the bottle to create a jagged makeshift weapon, then
prepare for victory. If there were any other result, he wouldn't know it until
he was on the steps of the Divine Treasury bribing the Nagul Doorman.
So be it, Quark
thought with utter finality.
And then in a brilliant burst of speed and grace, Quark thrust
himself to his feet, spun around like a dancer, swung the bottle of Romulan ale
against the edge of the bar and—
—screamed in high-pitched mortal agony as the entire bottle
shattered, slicing his palm with shards from the fragile neck.
"Frinx!" Quark squealed, as he clasped his bloody hand to his chest and
looked out across the bar to see the last person he expected to see—
"Rom?!"
"Uh ... sorry brother... but there was nothing I could
do."
Quark blinked through a haze of pain. Now his hand throbbed as
badly as did his head and ears. "Nothing you could do about what?!"
"Well... he made me open the door."
Quark wrapped a bar rag around his bleeding hand, but that only
drove the bottle shards in more deeply. And despite Rom's babbling, there was
no one else present.
"Who made
you open the door?!"
Rom looked down at something on his side of the bar. "He did.
He ... said you wanted to see him."
"Rom," Quark said as he rocked from foot to foot,
"I can't see anyone!"
"Uh ... because you're not looking?"
Quark sighed and trembled and wanted to cry, all at the same time.
He leaned forward, looked over the edge of the bar, and saw—
—multicolored stars explode in his vision like the prettiest
globular cluster he had ever seen.
As Quark fell into those stars, he heard what could
only be the laughter of the much-maligned Tholian Admiral echoing
in his poor wounded ears. And he suspected that the basic underpinning of his
personal philosophy had been proven true once again.
No matter how bad things look, they can always get worse.
CHAPTER 11
sometimes Sisko felt that he had never left the wormhole after his
first meeting with the aliens. That after his first encounter with the Prophets
in their Celestial Temple, everything that had happened since—or that appeared
to have happened—was somehow already a memory. A memory he was merely
reliving.
Standing before the sink in the tiny kitchen alcove of his
quarters on Deep Space 9, Sisko whisked at the eggs in their copper bowl,
smearing out the streaks of dark pepper sauce, frothing the egg mixture into a
whirlpool just as the wormhole frothed the quantum foam of normal space-time.
How many times had he done this—made an omelette? How many times
had he made this omelette? Or could it be they were all part of the
exact same moment in time and—
—he was a child standing on a low wooden step-stool in the kitchen
of his father's New Orleans restaurant. His father—Joseph—stood behind him,
his large, comforting hand guiding his son's small hand on the whisk as it
swept through the eggs, teaching him as his father had taught him, and—
—he was a father looking over his own son's shoulder. Little
Jake-O was standing on a low wooden step-stool in the cooking corner of that
cramped apartment he and Jennifer had rented in San Francisco as they waited
for the Saratoga to return to port so they could finally share their
careers, and their dreams, as a family. He held Jake's small hand in his,
guiding it as his father had guided him, as Jake might someday guide his own
child's hand—
—all the same moment, these memories of things long ago and
of things still to be, yet all bound up together in the soothing traditions of
those kitchens.
He laughed, softly, caught up in his discovery.
"That sounds nice," Kasidy Yates said.
Drawn suddenly from all moments to this moment, Sisko
turned to Kasidy Yates where she sat on a chair at the dining table set for
breakfast. Her lithe form was draped in one of his caftans, a textured cotton
with a bold brown and white blockprint pattern from Old Zimbabwe. Her long
brown fingers gracefully cradled a cup of morning coffee, her soft dark hair
still mussed from bed, her clear brown eyes not quite yet open. Her infectious
smile transfixed him, as it had from the first day they'd met.
"I've missed that," he heard her say. "You
laughing."
Sisko held the copper bowl against his hip as without conscious
thought he continued to fluff the eggs. "I was thinking that the reason
the Prophets made me
their Emissary is because I already knew about nonlinear
time."
Kasidy frowned, didn't understand.
Sisko's smile widened. "The kitchen!"
Kasidy nodded with sudden understanding. "Cooking does seem
to carry you away," she said with an answering smile.
Sisko leaned over to give her a kiss on the forehead. "But it
always brings me back to you." The light moment transformed when he did
not move away.
Kasidy put down her coffee, Sisko his bowl, as Kasidy reached up
to his face and kissed him as they had not kissed in weeks, in months, perhaps
ever.
"I... thought I had lost you," she whispered, her breath
soft against his cheek.
Sisko felt her body tremble, as if she were fighting back tears.
He knew why.
A week ago, they had been on the Defiant. Kasidy had
volunteered to be a convoy liaison officer for Starfleet escort duty to Vega.
So they could be together.
It had been a terrible mistake. And the mistake had been his.
In loving Kasidy, he had made her a part of his life that was
separate from Starfleet and the Dominion War. In tearing down the barriers
between his life and his duty, he had only succeeded in putting her in harm's
way—at his side.
Once before, he had done that to the woman he loved, and it had
cost her her life. Surviving the consequences of that mistake had taken him
twelve years and the intervention of beings beyond human comprehension.
And he had.
Yet even now he could still see Jennifer, motionless on the deck
of the Saratoga, her soul forever lost to him except in memory.
As protection from the cruel uncaring universe that might still
end the existence of Kasidy Yates, Sisko now took refuge behind a different
shield around his heart, a shield he had begun constructing the moment he and
Kasidy had found themselves in active service together on the Defiant.
If Kasidy died under his command, the only way he could be certain
he could still function to save his ship and his crew was to see her already
among the dead, to mourn her before the fact, to be prepared for the awful day
he might lose her. But even as he tried to reduce his vulnerability, Sisko knew
it was impossible. He was in love and he was loved.
He stroked her hair, knowing how wrong it all was. First to put
her at risk, and then to try to remove her from his heart.
"You can't lose me. Nothing will keep me from you," he
murmured. For whether it was a memory of a past dream or a memory of something
still to come, at the very end of whatever pain and whatever tragedy this
universe and this war held for him, Sisko knew— knew with a conviction
of faith and hope and love that would outlast the stars—he would always come
back to the arms of Kasidy Yates.
And somehow, through some living bond still to be formed between
them, he knew that Kasidy accepted his vow.
"Does this mean you're going to make me breakfast?" she
teased even as her eyes told him she knew what he felt.
"Eventually." Sisko leaned down to kiss her again.
And as their lips met, their eyes closed, and time became
nonlinear once again. Until—
A discreet throat-clearing cough.
Sisko opened his eyes at the same moment as Kasidy, brought back
to this moment by—.
"Hey, guys."
Sisko couldn't resist reaching out a hand to tousle his son's hair
as Jake, smiling sheepishly, skirted past them to the replicator. He remembered
when he had had to bend down to touch the top of his son's head. Now it seemed
he had to touch the stars to do the same.
"Hey, Jake-O," Sisko said as his son ordered and
retrieved and drank in one gulp a tall glass of orange juice.
"I heard you went on a treasure hunt," Kasidy said.
Sisko saw Jake's swift glance at him, but he had no recriminations
for his son. He and Jake had talked at length about Jake's actions—and his lack
of action— last night. And Sisko had been deeply gratified to learn that almost
everything he had to say to his son had already been in Jake's mind. Jake's and
Nog's omission, not telling anyone about the mysterious Cardassian holosuite,
was simply a leftover piece of business from when the two young men were little
more than children.
Jake knew he had been wrong, and Sisko knew that doing the wrong
thing and learning from it was what the process of maturing and growing was all
about. All life was about such learning. What was important to Sisko, and what
made him feel so proud of his son, was that for all the missteps the boy did
make—and some days their number was truly astounding—he seldom made the same
misstep twice.
As long as Jake kept that same spirit, Sisko could never really be
angry with him—or disappointed.
"Buried treasure," Sisko said, picking up the copper
bowl to give the eggs a final flourish. "Buried and forgotten." He
set the bowl on the counter, cut a square of Imolian butter, and turned away to
heat the empty omelette pan.
He could see that Jake heard and understood his tone of voice. The
past was the past. They had moved on. They must always move on.
Jake pulled up a chair to sit down beside Kasidy at the table.
"I was really surprised no one else had found that room by now."
Kasidy looked over at Sisko. "Do you think there could be
other sealed-off sections in the station?"
Sisko dropped the butter into the hot omelette pan, then swirled
it around to melt it evenly. "If there are, Chief O'Brien will know about
them in a week. He's going to use the Defiant's tactical sensors to
conduct a full survey scan of DS9, then correlate that scan with the Cardassian's
blueprints to look for deviations. He says he should have done it years
ago."
"Any reason why the holosuite was sealed off?" Kasidy
asked.
Sisko poured the beaten eggs from the copper bowl into the pan,
tilting the pan expertly to lightly coat the top of the egg mixture with the
melted butter. "We don't even know that it is a holosuite," he said.
"What else could it be?" Jake asked.
Sisko reached for a handful of grated jack cheese and trailed it
perfectly along one side of the gently bubbling mass of eggs. "Just
because we don't know the answer doesn't mean we have to settle for a
guess." Biting his bottom lip in concentration, he sprinkled in
chopped scallions, and then added a dusting of the secret
ingredient in all the great recipes of Sisko's Creole Kitchen—the Cajun spices
his father sent him on a more or less regular basis. "That would be too
easy."
The door announcer chimed.
Sisko prodded the edge of the cooking eggs and glanced at his son.
"I can't leave the pan now...."
He heard the door to his quarters slide open just as he judged
that the texture of his creation was perfect. With a rapid twist and a flip of
the pan, he held his breath as he slid the golden disk toward the forward edge
of the pan, then folded it expertly over on itself, achieving a half moon of
Creole perfection.
"Uh, Dad ..." Jake said.
Sisko looked up, saw Jadzia, was delighted. "Old Man! You're
just in time for breakfast."
But Jadzia didn't share Sisko's enthusiasm—not today. She frowned.
"Sorry, Benjamin, but... Quark's gone."
Sisko's sense of disbelief changed quickly to dismay, betrayal.
"He's left the station?"
"I can't be sure. If he did, he did it in disguise. There's a
chance he's simply hiding out here. But... well, maybe you should come down to
the bar and... see for yourself. I think the situation's more complicated than
we first thought."
Sisko's wrist jerked as he sharply snapped the pan again and the
omelette flipped over with Starfleet precision. The bottom was an elegant
combination of rich yellow and crispy brown. Sisko sighed. "Jake, it's up
to you to uphold the family honor. You know what your grandfather always
said." He slipped the omelette onto a plate already warmed by the inductor
oven.
His son stepped into the alcove as Sisko stepped out. "No one
leaves the table unsatisfied," Jake said.
"Do I have time to put on my uniform?" Sisko asked
Jadzia.
She nodded. "This is going to be a Starfleet matter."
Sisko had been afraid of that. Somehow, when Quark was involved,
situations always became more complicated.
Quark's bar looked normal for this early in the morning. The dabo
table was silent. A rambunctious group of young Starfleet fighter pilots from
the Thun-derchild who hadn't yet switched over to station local time
were ending their duty day around a large collection of bar tables they'd
pulled together. A handful of the station's Bajoran morning-shift personnel
were eating replicator breakfasts, a handful of night-shift personnel were
eating replicator suppers. And faithful Morn was on his stool—so much a part of
the place that he was sometimes easy to overlook, except for the nonstop
droning of his voice.
"So far so good," Sisko said to Jadzia.
She gestured to the bar. "Let me buy you a raktajino."
They chose stools as far away from the loquacious Morn as
possible. "When did you find out Quark was gone?" Sisko asked.
"Odo told me he finished questioning Quark early this
morning, around four. So I went to Quark's quarters at nine—I thought I'd let
him get some sleep."
"And?"
"He wasn't there. Isn't anywhere."
"Anything missing? Signs of a struggle?"
"Nothing I could see. Odo's people are going through it
now."
"That's not like Quark."
Jadzia almost laughed. "Not like Quark to run away from
trouble? Benjamin, that's exactly like him."
Sisko shook his head. That wasn't what he had meant. "He and
I had a deal. And... Quark usually keeps his deals. At least with me." He
saw Jadzia's look of amazement. "Oh, he'll look for and exploit
every loophole he can find. And just making the deal can be ... an
adventure in frustration. But when all is said and done, Quark, in his own
Ferengi way, is one of the most honorable people on this station. Not,"
Sisko added quickly, "that I would ever tell him that to his face. It
could undercut me in future negotiations."
"Let's hope there are future negotiations," Jadzia
muttered.
A sudden worrisome thought struck Sisko. "He didn't run into
trouble with the Andorian sisters, did he?"
Jadzia shook her head. "Odo has them under twenty-six-hour
surveillance. They've been keeping to themselves."
"Then what is it you suspect, Old Man?"
His old friend merely answered his question with another. "Do
you have your raktajino, yet?"
Sisko looked around. Though the establishment was open for
business—he recognized the usual servers managing the tables—no one was behind
the bar. Yet he had heard the rattle of glasses in the recycler trays, and the
hum of the replicator. That was why he hadn't noticed the absence of
anyone—because it still sounded as if someone was present.
"All right," Sisko said, "I'll admit it. I'm
confused. Care to enlighten me?"
Jadzia nodded. Tapped on the bartop. "Barkeep! We want to
order!"
Sisko blinked with surprise as a Ferengi jumped up into view from
behind the bar.
A very small Ferengi.
His skull and features were the size of any other adult of his
species, complete with an unusual black headskirt, but the rest of his body was
dramatically foreshortened. A meter tall at most.
"What do you want?" he snarled.
"Benjamin," Jadzia said, "meet Base. Base, meet
Captain Benjamin Sisko, commander of Deep Space 9."
"Yeah, yeah, right, whatever," Base snapped. "You
want to order? Or you want to stop bothering me?"
'Two raktajinos, please," Jadzia said.
"You actually drink that crap?" Base gargled in disgust,
then whirled around and dropped below the level of the bar again.
Sisko couldn't suppress his curiosity. He stood up and leaned over
the bar to see that a series of stools had been arranged behind it, presumably
so the small barkeep could jump up to serve—if that's what such an unwelcoming
manner could be called—the customers.
Sisko sat back down. "Base?" he asked Jadzia.
"Rom says he's an old friend of the family, helping look
after the family's interests during ... Quark's troubles."
"Does Rom know where Quark is?"
Jadzia rolled her eyes. "Here's where it gets interesting.
Rom claims that he didn't know Quark had been released. Odo, on the other hand,
says that Quark told him he was going directly here after he was released.
And all the servers say that Rom sent them home early last night."
"Ah," Sisko said, rubbing the fingers of one hand
against his temple to forestall the headache that Quark could so easily
provoke. "So Quark could have come here, and the only witness would have
been Rom."
"Exactly."
Sisko sat up straighter with a sigh. "All right. I see how
this might complicate matters. But why do you think it might be a Starfleet
matter?"
"Base isn't your ordinary Ferengi."
Sisko gave Jadzia a look of mock surprise. "No."
"Settle down, Benjamin. He's a smuggler."
"A Ferengi smuggler. That is unusual."
"Who operates in the Klingon Empire."
Sisko toned down his skepticism, recalling that the dismemberment
and vivisection penalties Klingons assessed on captured smugglers tended to
keep most Ferengi from becoming involved in illegal shipping in that region of
space. "That makes him either the bravest Ferengi I've ever heard of, or
the stupidest."
"Or," Jadzia added, "the most desperate. He has a
number of warrants outstanding among the Ferengi Alliance, so by law he can't
conduct business with any other Ferengi."
"Yet he's here," Sisko said, drumming his fingers on the
bartop. There was still no sign of the raktajinos. "Presumably
working for Quark."
" 'Helping Quark,' is what Rom said."
Sisko saw Jadzia staring at his fingers and forced himself to stop
fidgeting. "Helping him do what, is the question. Clearly, he's not
experienced in bartending. Is there any connection between Base and the
Andorians?"
"Odo's working on it," Jadzia said. "Though I think
he has other things on his mind." She nodded for Sisko to look down the
length of the bar.
Sisko did, and this time he did not have to pretend to be
surprised.
"Vash?!"
"The one and only."
The calculating archaeologist, known for her questionable ethics
as much as for her beauty, was seated at the last stool at the bar, leaning
forward and having an intense conversation with Quark's diminutive replacement.
"I bet she's not ordering raktajino," Sisko said.
"Shall we?" Jadzia asked as she rose to her feet.
Sisko followed Jadzia down to the end of the bar, until they both
stood behind Vash. At that same instant Base looked up and saw them. A fierce
scowl darkened his face. "Go away, go way. I'll get your stupid drinks
when it's your turn. I have other customers, y'know."
Her conversation interrupted, Vash turned around on her bar stool
to see the cause of Base's displeasure.
Sisko caught the naked look of shock that illuminated Vash's pale
face before she turned on her spectacular smile. "Captain Sisko,
what a pleasure. I heard you'd been promoted."
His return smile equalled hers in sincerity. "And I'd heard
the Siladians had put a price on your head for desecrating their burial
moons."
"A misunderstanding," Vash said airily. "All the
artifacts were returned."
"I'd heard that as well. Counterfeits, every one."
"They were counterfeits when I... retrieved them, Captain.
The Siladians have been looting their own burial moons for generations, and
replacing what they steal with replicas so they can keep the tourists coming.
It's a rather clever operation."
"Or a rather clever story," Sisko said. He knew bet-
ter than to trust a word she said. "Are you here on your own
this time? Or... ?"
"No Q, if that's who you mean. He did come back a few
times." For a moment, her face took on a strange expression, as if she
were remembering things that were inexpressible. "But... I haven't seen
him for... centuries, it feels like."
Sisko studied the wayward archaeologist thoughtfully. The way
Vash said it, it sounded as if she really did mean centuries. He wondered what
other types of adventures the superbeing known as Q had taken her on.
"Then what can we do for you?" he asked.
"I said, go away!" Base thumped the base of a glass
tumbler on the bartop for emphasis.
"Why don't you look after your other customers?" Jadzia
said with an easy smile.
"Why don't you and the captain take one of those barstools
and—"
"Base!" Vash interrupted. "Captain Sisko is in command
of this station. He can shut Quark's down anytime he feels like it."
"That barstool'd give them both something to feel," Base
muttered, his small dark deep-set eyes burning into Sisko's.
"Why don't we take a walk?" Vash slipped off her bar
stool and companionably took Sisko's arm in hers.
Jadzia locked eyes with the Ferengi barkeep. "Good idea,
Benjamin."
"I'm still going to charge you for the stinkin' rak-tacrappos!"
Base huffed as Jadzia and Vash walked out of the bar with him, one on each
side.
Once out onto the Promenade, Sisko tugged at the collar of his
duty jacket, puzzled by the Ferengi's
anger—and over nothing. "How can anyone stay in business with
an attitude like that?"
"He does business with Klingons," Jadzia reminded him.
"It's a bit more peculiar than that," Vash said as she
quickly scanned the Promenade, both levels, right and left. "Did you
notice Base's headskirt?"
Sisko thought back. "It was black. I don't often see that
color."
Vash shot him a glance. "It isn't a headskirt. It's
hair."
Sisko and Jadzia glanced at each other. "On a Ferengi?"
Sisko asked. They had hair enough in their ears, Sisko knew, especially as they
grew older. But he couldn't recall ever having seen a Ferengi that wasn't bald.
Vash's sharp eyes studied the customers at the gift shop.
"Obviously neither of you is aware that on Ferenginar, the civil standardization
authorities use Base as an example of what happens when pregnant Ferengi
females travel in space and are subjected to radiation: They give birth to
something like ... well, Base."
"His mother left the planet?" Sisko knew that Jadzia's
curiosity was warranted. Off-planet travel was still most unusual for a Ferengi
female. Only in the past two months had Grand Nagus Zek introduced any
gender-related reforms in Ferengi Society. Decades ago, when Base was born, it
would have been almost inconceivable for a female to leave her family compound,
let alone her homeworld.
Vash turned abruptly and began walking antispin-ward, leading
Sisko and Dax toward what used to be the school, away from the gift shop. Sisko
wasn't certain, but it was possible Vash had recognized someone
at the gift shop. "Oh, Ferengi females leave the planet all
the time," she said, in answer to Jadzia's question. "Always have.
Otherwise, how would they have colony worlds?"
"By transporting their females in stasis," Jadzia said.
"And sometimes things go wrong." Vash gave Sisko a sly
smile. "Stasis fields break down. A colony ship is raided on the outskirts
of the Klingon Empire and one lone Ferengi female sets off on her own. Or, a
lonely Ferengi businessman on a trip to Qo'noS decides to partake of the
local pleasures...."
"Are you suggesting Base is a Ferengi-Klingon hybrid?"
Vash innocently widened her eyes at him. "Captain Sisko, with
the enmity between those two species, and their physical differences,
that would be impossible. I'm surprised you'd even think such a thing."
"Then why go to such detail explaining Base's origins?"
"Just because something is impossible doesn't prevent people
from speculating. You mentioned Base's attitude. Well, imagine how'd you feel
if you were a Ferengi and everyone else thought you were half Klingon. You
might have a bad attitude, too. Don't you think?"
"I think you're avoiding the question I asked back in
the bar." Sisko looked at Jadzia and both of them stopped walking at the
same moment. "How can we help you?"
Vash paused and Sisko saw her look past him, back in the direction
they had come from. "Tell me, Captain, do you take such a personal
interest in all the visitors to this station?"
"Only when they're thieves and scoundrels."
Vash nodded appreciatively. "Flattery will get you
everywhere, Captain." She started forward again, turning toward the
entrance to Cavor's shop.
Sisko put out a hand to hold her back, outside Cavor's display
window. The featured floating antigrav balls were a popular attraction on the
Promenade, and several other visitors were standing enthralled in front of the
display. "I'm serious, Vash. We are in the middle of a war zone
here, and I have no time for games. Either convince me that you are on DS9 for
a legitimate reason, or you're on the next shuttle leaving for Bajor."
"Now who has an attitude?"
"You want to understand my attitude? Very well. Last
week, three Andorians came to this station— Andorians with troubled legal
histories involving smuggling. Then Base shows up in Quark's bar, and now you.
The last time we had so many smugglers onboard at one time was, coincidentally
enough, the last time you were here. When Quark was going to hold an auction of
your stolen Gamma Quadrant artifacts."
"They weren't stolen," Vash said virtuously.
"Excuse me? What about the energy creature's crystalline
offspring?"
"Well, not all of them .. ." she amended.
Sisko turned to Jadzia. "I think I see what's going on here.
Quark was going to hold another auction. Which means that either he came into
possession of something he thought would be of interest to the likes of Vash,
the Andorians, and Base—" He looked at Vash. "—And whoever else it is
who's on this station that you seem to be so concerned about. Or that you,
the Andorians, or Base, or whoever, have come into possession of
something you want Quark to sell."
Vash's studied silence told Sisko he was close.
"Ordinarily," he continued, "I really wouldn't care
about what you people are up to. I'd leave you all to Odo and the Bajoran authorities.
But in this case, I have one Andorian visitor dead, and one Ferengi inhabitant
of this station missing. And that makes what you're doing here my business."
Vash turned away from her contemplation of the window display.
"Who's missing?"
Sisko kept his expression carefully neutral. He didn't even risk
looking at Jadzia. "Rultan. One of Quark's servers."
Vash shrugged. "Don't know him."
"When are you and Quark supposed to meet?" Sisko asked,
as if he had just suddenly thought of the question.
"I had no plans to see Quark," Vash said.
"Not even for old times' sake?" Jadzia asked.
Vash looked at Jadzia, looked back at Sisko, and it was as if
Sisko could hear isolinear circuits at work in her mind. "Quark's the
Ferengi who's missing?"
Sisko didn't see the point in continuing the deception. He
nodded.
"How missing?"
Sisko didn't understand.
"Any sign of foul play?"
"Nothing apparent," Jadzia said. "But he disappeared
last night—which is when Base appeared."
Vash shook her head. "Base wouldn't hurt Quark. There'd be no
profit in it."
"Vash," Sisko said, "this is your last chance.
What's going on here?"
The way Vash looked at him, he could tell she knew at least part
of the answer. This woman was maddening in her infernal duplicity. What would
it take for her to share what she knew?
But, first, Vash had a question of her own. "The Andorian ...
Dal Nortron? How was he killed?"
"Lethal exposure to microwave radiation," Jadzia
answered. "Odo believes it was a weapon. I think there's a chance it might
have been accidental."
Vash nodded and turned back to Cavor's window display.
Though it was a struggle, Sisko succeeded in keeping his patience
because it appeared Vash was in the midst of thinking something through.
Finally, she turned and looked directly into his eyes. "Captain, do you
believe what they say about Quark? That he killed Nortron?"
Sisko met her sharp gaze directly. "No." Believing that
Vash was reaching her own moment of truth and would act on it momentarily, he
offered no further qualifications.
"Do exactly as I say," Vash suddenly said in a low
voice, confirming his supposition. "I'm going to walk away from you. I'm
going to look angry. You're going to grab me and say that you don't believe me,
and that you're taking me for questioning. Then do it, and make it look good.
Understand?"
Sisko signaled his understanding by making no move to look around
to see who might be watching. He felt certain that Vash knew who their charade
was going to play for. So, he gave her the reason she needed to walk away.
'That's not good enough, Vash," he said harshly. "I want
answers."
Vash threw up her hands. "What's wrong with you
people?! I've already told you everything I know! Now leave me
alone!"
She spun around and started to walk away.
Sisko took two quick steps and then took her arm.
"Let me go!" Vash shouted. "You have no right to
hold me!"
Jadzia took Vash's other arm. "Yes, he does."
Sisko hit his communicator badge. "Sisko to security. I need
a team on the Promenade, Main Floor South, now."
Vash tugged back and forth between Sisko and Jadzia. "You
can't be serious! I haven't done anything!"
All signs were good that they were putting on a convincing show.
By the time two Bajoran security officers hurried around the curve of the
Promenade, they were surrounded by an inquisitive crowd that was growing by the
minute.
"I want this woman held for questioning," Sisko said
loudly. He let go of Vash as the security officers took her. And just in that
brief instant, Vash slapped a hand to the side of her neck and staggered,
losing her balance.
Startled, Sisko caught her as she began to fall. On the side of
her slender neck, he saw a small bronze-metal dart, no larger than a fingertip.
He grabbed it, pulled, and a half-centimeter-long needle emerged from Vash's
neck, dripping a fluorescent blue fluid.
Vash shuddered uncontrollably as Jadzia called Worf for an
immediate transporter evacuation to the Infirmary. Sisko swiftly scanned the
crowd, but there was nothing to see except the concerned faces of onlookers.
Discovering whoever had fired the dart would have to wait until the station's
security recordings could be studied.
"Quark. . ." Vash whispered urgently, her voice slurred.
". . . the auction. ..."
Sisko bent nearer, cradling her as he waited for the transporter
lock. "They're on their way, Vash. You have to hold on."
"Must listen ... was going to sell...."
Sisko leaned closer, put his ear to her lips. "What, Vash?
What was he going to sell?"
Vash's eyes rolled up and her eyelids fluttered, and what she said
next made Sisko's blood run cold.
"... an ... Orb .. ." Vash gasped. ".. .
Jalba-dor...."
And then the transporter took them.
CHAPTER 12
jadzia smiled as she watched Julian Bashir hold the
neural dart up to a light and examine it closely by eye. It was so typical of
him, and also what made him so endearing.
Here he was in DS9's Infirmary, a state-of-the-art Cardassian medical
facility that had
been full upgraded with the
latest Starfleet innovations, sur- rounded by scanners and sensors that could
shuffle through the dart's composition molecule by molecule and more often than
not identify the planet of origin for every mineral compound used in its
manufacture. Yet Julian still had to look at the dart himself, using his
own hands and his own eyes to be certain no detail had been missed.
It was so ... well, Jadzia could find only one way to explain that
kind of self-absorbed conviction in the superiority of his abilities, and that
word was "cute."
Bashir glanced over at her and returned her smile, but seemed
confused about why he was doing so. "What?" he asked.
"Nothing," Jadzia shrugged, lips still pursed in a
smile. "Just remembering something Emony said. It was more than a hundred
years ago."
"Ah." Bashir nodded as if that explained everything, and
went back to peering at the dart.
That was one of the advantages to being a Trill,
Jadzia knew. In fact, except for Leia, the first, all of
Dax's previous hosts had known it too: A joined Trill
could get away with the most outrageous behavior
imaginable, and then simply explain it away by blam-
ing it on a previous host.
Since most unjoined species could never even imag-
ine what it must be like for two minds to share a single body
and several lifetimes of experiences, they would accept such
an explanation without question. What
would be the point? To be honest, Jadzia thought, most
people looked on joined Trills as some kind of zombie held in
thrall to a neural parasite.
But the truth was that she herself had found that
joining with Dax had been incredibly liberating. It was
exhilarating to be able to decide to do anything at all—
and that included indulging herself in harmless flirt-
ation with Julian right up to taking part in the most
radically charged physical challenge in the quad-
rant, euphemistically called 'wrestling' Galeo-Manada
style—and because she was joined, anything she chose to do was
all acceptable.
Of course, part of the trick of deciding which pas-
sions and pastimes to explore came from trying to think of
something that none of the other hosts had been familiar with—which usually
meant that the
more lifetimes a symbiont shared, the more idiosyncratic and
eccentric its hosts became.
Personally, before she was joined Jadzia had always had a
particular curiosity about Vulcans, and had hoped that sometime during her
career in Starfleet she'd have a chance to experience Pan farr on a more
personal level than the textbooks allowed. But after joining, when she had
instantly been able to look back on several Ponfarr encounters—from both
sides of the Teiresian veil, as it were—there was little there that remained
mysterious to her, and that lost mystery had been the key to her fascination.
Oh, someday, a century or two down the road, the right Vulcan
might come along at the right time for the Dax symbiont to decide it was time
to travel down that road again. But for now, Jadzia was more than happy,
deliriously happy in fact, with her sweet cuddly-bear of a Klingon mate.
Jadzia coughed to cover her sudden giggle, as she suddenly
recalled the look on Worf's face when she'd startled him with the endearment at
precisely the wrong moment—as if there were ever a right moment to call a
rough, tough Klingon a sweet cuddly-bear. But fortunately, she'd been able to
blame the transgression on her ever-useful past host Audrid.
Bashir gave her another perplexed smile. "Emony again?"
"Audrid. I'm sorry."
"No need." He placed the dart back in a small sample
dish, then entered notes on his padd.
Jadzia admired the dark curls of Julian's close-cropped hair. He
was close, she recalled with a sigh. If Worf had been unable to transcend
his insular Klingon heritage enough to fully admit a Trill into his life.
Jadzia had little doubt that her heart could have been won by
Julian Bashir. That was the other advantage to being a Trill. Life's choices
that could last a lifetime for others were not necessarily a limiting factor.
Other lifetimes and other choices waited to provide near infinite
possibilities.
Bashir stopped writing on the padd, then tapped the small device
against his hand.
"You've reached a conclusion?" Jadzia asked.
He had. "A linear-induction dart. Centuries-old technology.
So primitive the launch tube would never show up on the Promenade weapons
scanners. Cardassian design, of course, like most assassination implements,
but its manufacture, interesting enough, is Andorian, as is the neural
toxin inside: bicuprodya-nide."
Jadzia frowned. "That's fatal to Andorians."
"And Bolians," Bashir added. "In fact, it has near
one hundred percent lethality in any species with a bicupric-based
oxygen-transport metabolism. Which means almost anything with blue skin."
"But... it's not fatal in humans," Jadzia said, perplexed.
Bashir dropped his padd on his medical work station m a gesture of
finality. "In a high enough dose it can be, Jadzia. Just from ordinary
metal toxicity. But Vash, mind you, would have to have ingested a coffee
mug-roll of the stuff, and even then we'd have a good ten to twelve hours to
treat her. As it is, with the few milliliters that actually got into her
bloodstream, she'll only have a had headache for a day or two. Nothing more
serious."
"In other words," Jadzia said slowly as she worked :
out, "whoever used the dart against Vash either didn't know about human
biochemistry—"
"Or," Bashir interjected, "was equipped to kill an Andorian and
shooting Vash was an unexpected, spur-of-the-moment decision—"
"Which," Jadzia continued, getting into Bashir's rhythm, "could
indicate that the attacker was desperate to stop Vash from talking—"
"—so he struck as quickly as he could to render her
unconscious—"
"—and he—"
"—or she—"
"—plans on coming back to finish the job before Vash wakes
up—"
"—which should be in the next thirty minutes!" Bashir
grinned at her, quite obviously enjoying the chance to play detective. "I
must say, Jadzia, we make a wonderful team."
Being a Trill, Jadzia simply returned Julian's grin and said,
"I've always thought so. But for now," she went on, "maybe we
should have Odo post more guards?"
Bashir nodded, "Good idea. I'll call—"
"Where is she?!"
Major Kira burst into the Infirmary like an avenging Pah-wraith,
fury expressed in every line of her being.
Jadzia could guess what had caused Kira's reaction, and it seemed
Julian had also, because at once he took on the manner of someone outside the
jurisdiction of both Starfleet protocol and Bajoran laws. He faced Kira as a
physician with a patient in his care—a patient no one would be allowed to harm.
"If you mean Vash, she's still recovering," Bashir said
firmly.
Kira took a swift look around the Infirmary, saw the analysis bed
was empty in the treatment alcove and
started for the surgery. "I don't care. I'm talking to
her."
Bashir immediately stepped in front of Kira, to block her advance.
"Not until she's awake, Major."
They were centimeters apart, neither one willing to yield. Kira's
hands were balled into fists at her side. Restlessly, she shifted her weight
from foot to foot. Her voice was demanding, belligerent. "Then wake her,
Doctor. Use some of those magic potions of yours to bring her around now."
Bashir held his ground, unconvinced. "There is no medical
need to do so."
With that, Kira's military bluster gave way to a plea of personal
indignation. "Julian! She is involved in trying to sell an Orb of
the Prophets. That is an outrage! To me, my world, to ten thousand years
of Bajorans who have sought to follow the Prophets' teachings. I demand to
speak to her."
Bashir still didn't move, though Jadzia was pleased to see
Julian's attitude soften. "Major, first of all, Vash isn't going anywhere.
And second, any questioning you conduct might be more useful if you had a few
moments to... gather your thoughts, so it won't be ... as personal."
"How can it not be personal?"
Bashir sighed. "Listen, Nerys, whatever Vash said to Captain
Sisko, you have to remember she had just received a jolt of a disruptive neural
toxin, almost directly to her brain. Maybe what she said did make sense. Maybe
it didn't. But in any case, the captain said he couldn't understand everything
she said. The point is, we won't know for certain until she wakes up."
Kira stared hard at Bashir. "A 'disruptive' neural toxin? Not
a fatal one?"
"Fatal to Andorians, not humans. She'll be fine."
Jadzia saw the major's rigid posture relax as she stepped back
from Bashir, lowering the level of confrontation, but not ending it.
"You're surprised by that," Jadzia said to her.
Kira nodded, taking a deep breath to further compose herself.
"I thought... I didn't have much time. That I might lose her before. .. .
Why would someone try to kill Vash with an Andorian toxin?"
"To make it appear as if an Andorian is the attempted
murderer," Odo said, startling everyone as he suddenly entered the
Infirmary.
"Did you find something on the scanner records?" Jadzia
asked. She knew that was what Odo had been doing for the past ten minutes:
analyzing the security tapes taken of the crowds on the Promenade at the time
Vash was hit by the dart. Normally, she knew, visual scanners weren't used in
the public areas of the station on an ongoing basis. But there were few things
Odo hated more than an unsolved crime in his territory, and Jadzia was aware
DS9's security officer was determined to use every means he could to solve Dal
Nortron's death and erase what he would no doubt consider a personal affront
to his abilities as station constable.
"No, I did not," Odo said gruffly. "Whoever the
shooter was, he must have positioned himself just by the gym, under the
banners. Precisely where there is a gap in the scanner coverage."
Bashir shot a sideways glance at Jadzia, clearly intrigued by
Odo's reasoning. "That could indicate the shooter is someone with highly
detailed knowledge of station security."
Odo folded his arms. "Just what are trying to suggest,
Doctor?"
Odo's challenging tone seemed to unsettle Bashir. "I'm ...
suggesting nothing."
To divert Odo before he could directly accuse Julian of suspecting
him, Jadzia bestowed a winning smile on the constable. "Odo, Julian and I
were just trying to find a pattern to the ... the clues in this case. So far,
when you put them all together, they don't make a lot of sense, so any extra
piece of information should be considered carefully."
"Of course they don't make sense," Odo said darkly.
"Quark is involved."
Jadzia wasn't willing to let that stand. "Maybe," she
said.
Odo was silent, but the pained expression on his face conveyed his
thoughts well enough.
"Well," Kira said, "the one person who might be
able to make sense out of whatever is going on is still in there."
She pointed to the surgery.
But Vash's doctor still wasn't ready to yield. "And she'll be
waking up soon. Odo, just in case whoever attacked Vash tries to come back and
finish the job, could you—"
"I already have three officers stationed outside the
Infirmary, Doctor. And Worf has placed transporter-suppression shields around
this section of the Promenade to prevent anyone or anything being beamed in or
out."
"I certainly couldn't ask for more than that. Thank you,
Constable."
Odo's stiff response told Jadzia that the constable wasn't swayed
by Julian's attempt to create a more cooperative mood. "Don't mention it,
Doctor. However, in the interests of full security, I would appreciate being
in the room with Vash when she wakes up."
Before Bashir could answer, Kira added, "So would I."
"She's not going to be in the best of shape," Bashir
warned.
But Kira was in control of her emotions now. "Julian, an Orb
of the Prophets. Vash is no longer just a smuggler who can pay a fine and
move on to the next system. Even an attempt to interfere with an Orb
makes her liable to life imprisonment under Bajoran law. What she's done—or
even planned to do—is so serious, I've reported it to Kai Winn. Three Vedek
Inquisitors are already on their way."
"The Inquisitors function as a war crimes investigative
tribunal." Bashir's voice betrayed his alarm.
Kira's jaw tightened. "Up until now, all missing Orbs were
the result of Cardassian looting. We are talking war crimes."
Jadzia finally saw her chance to act as mediator. "Nerys,
let's say Vash is involved in... oh, I don't know ... some extralegal
transaction involving obtaining an Orb from one of the Cardassians who stole
it in the first place. If she were doing this so she could, say, return the
Orb to the Bajoran people—the way Grand Nagus Zek returned the Orb of
Wisdom—don't you think it possible that no charges would be brought? I mean,
the Inquisitors didn't file charges against Zek."
"Are you defending her, Jadzia?" Kira's voice was
incredulous.
"If she's done what you think she's done, not at all. But
what I am trying to do is to point out that we don't know everything yet, and
that there might be some alternate explanation. And if we keep that in mind,
then maybe we'll be able to talk to Vash, instead of interrogate her.
And maybe she can help us right now,
instead of deciding to say nothing until her legal defender spends
months negotiating an ... accommodation with the Inquisitors. If we keep open
minds, maybe we can get to the bottom of this much faster than if we jump to
conclusions. That's all." Jadzia held steady under Kira's measuring gaze.
The major made her decision. She nodded to Jadzia. "All
right, I won't threaten her with life in prison right away. And since you seem
to be open to more possibilities than the rest of us, why don't you start the
questioning—I mean, the conversation."
Odo cleared his throat. "In case any of you were
wondering," the changeling said heavily, reminding them all of his
presence, "I have no problem with Dax asking the questions. At
first."
Now everyone looked at Bashir.
"Too much stress will delay her full recovery. A conversation
will be much better than the third degree."
Kira blinked. "The third degree of what?"
"I'll explain later," Odo said.
But Kira wasn't willing to let it go. She frowned. "What are
the first two degrees?"
"I'm sure 'interrogation' is what Julian meant to say,"
Jadzia said smoothly, glaring at Julian to stop him from adding anything else
provocative. Jadzia could see that Kira was losing the fight to control her
impatience. "So, Doctor, keeping our minds open, promising not to be a
source of stress for her, is it possible you'll allow us to see your
patient?"
"Yes. But..."
"But what?" Kira snapped.
Bashir raised his eyebrows. "Doesn't anyone think we should
wait for Captain Sisko?"
"He's involved with Chief O'Brien," Odo said.
"He'll be expecting a report from me, and from you, Doctor, when we're
finished with the prisoner... that is, the patient."
"All right," Bashir shrugged. "Then just let me
check on her first."
Odo bowed his head as if giving his approval.
Bashir went into the surgery.
Jadzia looked at Kira and Odo. "Why does it feel that we're
on opposite sides all of a sudden?"
"We're not," Kira said testily as if offended even by
Jadzia's question.
"I hope you don't think that Julian and I are insensitive to
the Orbs, or to the Bajoran religion," Jadzia said.
Kira stared at a point over Jadzia's shoulder as she seemed to
think over many different possible replies before she said, "Not
intentionally."
Now Jadzia felt offense. "Then I apologize," she said
tersely.
"No need."
"Well, obviously, something is needed."
Kira's gaze shifted. Her eyes met Jadzia's. Again, it seemed she
struggled with finding the right answer before she muttered, "All right.
It couldn't hurt for you to spend some time in the temple."
Jadzia felt her spots prickle, never a good sign when it came to
her mood. "Major, since coming to this station six years ago, you know
very well I have made the Orbs one of my chief areas of study."
Kira's smile was condescending, almost one of pity. "Dax,
you've spent six years studying what you believe to be solidified energy
vortices. And you can spend the next six hundred years doing the same, and
you will learn absolutely nothing because they are not vortices,
they are the Tears of the Prophets. And until you understand that, you
won't—"
"She's awake," Bashir announced as he walked from the
surgery. "Doing fine as a matter of fact." He looked around
uncertainly, as if he sensed residual traces of the argument that had just
begun between Kira and Jadzia. "You can ... come in now ... if you still
want to, that is...."
Kira pushed straight past Jadzia into the surgery. A moment later,
Odo gave Jadzia a small shrug, and followed after Kira.
Bashir stared at Jadzia. "I was only gone a minute."
"Around here, that's all it takes," Jadzia said drily.
Then she followed the good doctor into the surgery, wondering what the next minute
would bring.
CHAPTER 13
O'BRIEN shifted uncomfortably
in the center chair of the Defiant. It wasn't that he had never taken
command of the ship before. But he had never done so when Captain Sisko was
standing at his side
"We're at 50 kilometers and holding," Commander Arla
said from her position at the flight operations console. Beyond her, on the Defiant's
main viewer, Deep Space 9 was a distant, sparkling smear of jeweled
radiance against the translucent lavender plasma wisps of the Denorios Belt.
There was no atmospheric distortion in space to account for the constant
flickering of the station's lights, O'Brien knew. Instead, it was DS9's slow
rotation that caused lights to flare erratically from viewports and disappear
behind defense sails and docked spacecraft, like the twinkling of stars.
"Um, what do I do now?" Arla asked.
It was obvious to O'Brien that the young Bajoran Starfleet officer
was about as at ease as he was with their new assignment—which was to say, not
at all. And for good reason. Apart from Captain Sisko, Arla and O'Brien were
the ship's only crew for this mission. Arla claimed she hadn't piloted
anything larger than a shuttle since she'd graduated the Academy, and now she
was at the conn of one of the most overpowered, hard-to-handle Starships in
the fleet.
"Activate automatic station keeping," O'Brien told her.
Reflexively, he looked up at Sisko to make sure he had said the right thing.
The captain's nod told him he had.
"Relax, Chief. Worf is standing by at Ops. If anything even looks
like it's about to go wrong, you can have a full crew beamed on board in
less than a minute."
But the cause of O'Brien's unease wasn't the prospect of disaster.
He couldn't resist the impulse any longer. He started to get out of the chair. The
chair. "You sure you wouldn't feel more comfortable doing this
yourself, sir?"
"The Defiant's in good hands, Chief. Now sit
down."
O'Brien sighed as he did. But it still didn't feel right.
"Are the tactical sensors reconfigured?" Sisko asked.
"As best they can be," O'Brien answered. "Though
they really were never designed for this kind of detail. I mean, I had to
modify the gravity generators to create an artificial inertial-matrix aperture
for the—"
"I don't need a lecture, Mr. O'Brien," Sisko said
gently. "Just your assurance that they're going to
work."
"Oh, they'll work, sir. Just not as fast as if she were the Enterprise."
"How long then?"
O'Brien had already done the duration calculations, but he worked
through them again just to be sure. "I'd say ten hours for the full sensor
sweep. Maybe another hour for the computer to finish the comparison between the
Cardassian schematics and the scan results."
"And then we'll have a complete interior map of the
station—"
"—with all deviations from the original designs called out by
the computer. If there are any more hidden rooms in there, we'll definitely
find them."
"Very good," Sisko said. "Now I'm wondering if
while you're conducting the station scan, you can look for something else
that's gone missing."
O'Brien sat forward in his chair, apprehensive. "I can try,
sir. What is it?"
"Quark."
O'Brien frowned at the viewer before him as he contemplated the
computational effort that would be required by what the captain was asking of
him. On the Enterprise, with her special-purpose science sensors and
multiband hyperspectral arrays, O'Brien would have felt confident he could do a
biosweep of Deep Space 9 and find an hour-old outbreak of mold on a single
slice of bread in a neutronium-lined food cooler inside of fifteen minutes.
Finding a full-grown Ferengi would have taken less than half that time.
But the Defiant wasn't built primarily for science.
Her scanners and sensors were designed to locate and analyze
targets first and further humanity's understanding of the universe second. To
tune and focus sensor emanations to ignore all living matter in approximately
two cubic kilometers of space, except for one Ferengi....
A sudden thought struck O'Brien. "Captain, are you sure
Quark's even on the station?"
"That's what I'm hoping you will tell me."
O'Brien's brow became deeply furrowed as he calculated his
chances of success. "Is there any chance you might get all the other
Ferengi to leave the station for the day?"
"As I said, I don't want anyone to know that any kind of a
scan or a search is under way. That's why you and Commander Arla got the job.
And only you two. Do you think you can do it, Chief?"
O'Brien nodded, his head already filling with a list of the
adjustments he'd have to make to the sensor scan rates, the density-overlap mapping
algorithms, even the power-output waveguides. The subspace resonance patterns
would have to be tuned to the exact salt content of Ferengi muscle tissue
and.... He suddenly realized he hadn't answered the captain's question because
he'd already become caught up in the how of his assignment. Not to
mention the why. "Yes, I can, sir. Is Quark in trouble,
Captain?"
Sisko nodded gravely. "He might be."
O'Brien found himself wondering if Quark had become the victim of
a kidnapping. If so, then his sympathy was with the kidnappers. "Then
should I scan the docked ships, as well? Just in case he's on one of
them?"
"Good idea, Chief. And keep scanning them as they
dock, just in case someone's going to try to slip him onto one
that's arriving later." Sisko tugged down on his jacket. "Anything
else before I go?"
O'Brien reviewed the assignment again. "Well, it would help
if I knew where Rom and Nog and all the other Ferengi staff from Quark's are,
so I can rule them out as the sensors find them."
"Very well. I'll have Odo put someone on it. But I think it's
a good bet that if Quark is on the station, he won't be on the Promenade. You'd
be safe ruling out any Ferengi contacts you make there. At least, at
first."
"Understood, sir."
"Carry on, Chief." Sisko touched his communicator.
"Sisko to Worf. One to beam out."
O'Brien watched as his captain dissolved into light, and then the Defiant
suddenly felt as if she were twice the size of any other Starship he had
ever been aboard.
But at least with no one around to tell him otherwise, O'Brien
could finally get out of the chair.
He headed over to his familiar engineering station, settling into
his own chair with a relieved sigh. He was home. "Computer," he said,
"transfer command functions to the engineering station."
"Command functions transferred," the computer promptly
acknowledged.
O'Brien took a few minutes to enter the standard biological assay
parameters that would have to be implemented to search for Ferengi life-forms,
then announced, "Activating sensor sweep," as if somehow the bridge
was staffed by a full crew. He touched his finger to the 'initiate programmed
sequence' control, and the display screen above his station changed its
subspace-frequency-response graph to show that the scanning had begun.
"So that's it." He looked over at Arla.
The young Bajoran officer looked back at him. "Ten
hours?"
O'Brien understood what she meant. "I'm afraid so."
"Afraid isn't the word for it. I mean, automatic station
keeping, automatic sensor sweep. What are we doing here, Chief?"
O'Brien got up from his chair to walk over to the empty science
station. He preferred to be on his feet anyway, rather than sit around waiting
for things to happen. "Well, the one thing you have to expect in space is
that nothing will ever go the way you expect it will. So, today we're the Defiant's
insurance and her last-ditch backup system."
As if restless also, Arla swung her tall form around in her chair
to watch the Chief cross the bridge. "I want to run a Starbase, not pilot
a Starship."
As if his hands had minds of their own, O'Brien leaned down to the
science workstation and entered the commands that would start a level-four
diagnostic running in the science subsystems. Just to be on the safe side.
Couldn't hurt. He smiled as the science displays came to life, running through
their paces. He glanced sideways at the young Bajoran officer, tried to
remember what it was she had just said ... Oh, yes. "It's good to know how
to do different things, Commander. So in an emergency, everyone can trade off
Watch each other's back. That sort of thing."
"Would you call this an emergency?"
"I don't know what the captain knows." O'Brien kept his
attention on the science displays.
"And that doesn't bother you?"
Arla's voice was serious. O'Brien sighed. "It's not my
position to be bothered by it, Commander. But I
can see that you are." He could see where this conversation
would be going. He straightened up, deciding he might as well head back to his
engineering station. If Arla was going to talk his ear off, at least he'd be
comfortable.
Arla, it seemed, had come to a decision of her own. "Can I
speak freely, Chief?"
Safe in his chair, O'Brien nodded, giving her a half-smile.
"You're the commander, Commander."
"Captain Sisko, he's not the most orthodox commanding
officer, is he?"
"Well, let me say that this isn't the most orthodox command.
Y'know, before I came here, I served on the Enterprise—"
"Under Picard?" Arla asked, with true admiration in the
way she said that famous name.
O'Brien appreciated that attitude. "The one and only,"
he said proudly. "And for a Starship captain on the cutting edge of the
frontier, out where no one's gone before, you need exceptional flexibility,
because the situation's always changing. Picard was brilliant at that kind of
give-and-take. Still is, from what I've heard. But, when I took this assignment
at DS9, I thought I'd be settling back into a more normal routine, like being
at a Starbase."
"From what I've heard, I didn't think anyone ever got
tired of serving on the Enterprise."
"Oh, I didn't get tired." O'Brien chuckled. "I got
married. Had a little girl. And all of a sudden, as much as I loved the Enterprise..
. ." He thought back to those agonizing days, when he'd debated
endlessly with himself about putting in for a transfer. And the terrible
nights, when he awoke from stomach-twisting nightmares in which the Enterprise
ran afoul of Borg
cubes, black holes, runaway warp cores ... a thousand and one
disasters that must never touch Keiko and Molly.
And how he'd felt when he read the reports of what happened at
Veridian III, the ship blown from space to a terrifying crashlanding, with all
its crew and its families and the children ... at the same time that he'd said
a prayer for the survivors he'd thanked the stars that he and his wife and
their daughter were safe and not with them.
"You were saying, Chief—as much as you loved the Enterprise...
?"
O'Brien, still distracted, made an effort to retrace his thoughts.
"What I meant to say was, Commander, as ... as complicated as I thought
commanding that ship was, I've found DS9 to be even more . . . challenging. I
suppose that's the word. I mean, Captain Picard could take us to a planet in
trouble, we'd show the flag, do what we could to resolve things, and then we'd
move on, knowing that three other ships and half the Federation's bureaucracy
would be in our wake to follow up on what we had done. But here," O'Brien
looked at the young Bajoran officer, wondering if she could understand what he
was trying to stay, with life experience so different from his own,
"staying in one sector, dealing with the same worlds over so many years,
there's no chance to move on. Captain Sisko has to live with the consequences
of his decisions. It calls for ... a very creative approach to command."
"Plus," Arla said carefully, "he's the
Emissary."
"Ah, now, I wouldn't know about that." O'Brien knew his
limitations, and this kind of discussion was not his strong suit.
"So you don't believe the wormhole aliens are gods?"
O'Brien knew the right way, for him, to answer this one.
"When I was at the Academy, one of the best lessons I learned didn't come
from a classroom, or an instructor. It came from Boothby."
Arla blinked. "The gardener?"
"Among other things. But he told me—Miles, when you find
yourself locked up on a ship hundreds of light-years from nowhere and no chance
of escape from your crewmates, there are three things you must never discuss:
Politics, religion, and another crew-mate's spouse." O'Brien stretched
back in his chair. "So, right about now is when I think it's a good time
for me to follow old Boothby's advice."
Arla tapped her fingers on the edge of her flight console.
"There are a lot of cautious people on Deep Space 9."
"Goes with the territory."
Arla nodded. "I had a long talk with Dax about Captain
Sisko."
That didn't surprise O'Brien. Dax was the most experienced member
of the DS9 crew, and she was never reluctant to pass on whatever help or advice
she could. All anyone ever had to do was ask. "They've been friends for a
long time, those two."
"She wouldn't answer my question, either. About the wormhole
aliens being gods."
O'Brien felt he was going to regret being sucked into this debate,
but he didn't see as how the young commander was giving him any choice. If
Julian were here, O'Brien knew, the doctor would view the situation entirely
differently. Julian would relish the argument. O'Brien didn't. But it was
either join the
discussion or spend the next ten hours watching level-four
diagnostics run. "I take it, then, that you don't believe the entities in
the wormhole are gods."
Arla shook her head, and O'Brien thought he could detect a hint of
unhappiness. "That's why I'm trying to understand how it is that Captain
Sisko, an educated, intelligent man, an alien, brought up without any
cultural influence from Bajor—how could he accept that they're gods? I
mean, someone born on Bajor—fine, I can understand that. I don't agree with it,
but I understand. They don't really have a choice. The whole primitive Prophet
belief system permeates every aspect of our culture. There's no escape."
"You escaped."
"I wasn't born on Bajor."
That explains a lot, O'Brien thought.
After a few moments of silence, Arla leaned forward. "You're
not saying anything."
O'Brien shrugged, looked around the unnaturally empty and quiet
bridge. "I don't see that there's a lot I can say. Obviously, the type of
environment someone's born into has a lot to do with what they end up believing
in life. Vulcans embrace logic. Klingons find honor in battle.
"So what do you believe, Chief? Not about the Prophets. But
about. .. whatever faith you were raised in."
O'Brien relaxed. This was one of the questions he could answer,
one that rarely caused offense. "Oh, I'm a great believer in EDIC,
Commander. Infinite diversity in infinite combination. The beauty of it is that
nobody's wrong. Logic. Battle. They're all facets of the same thing. As if the
true reality of the universe, whatever final answers there are to be
discovered—if
they can be discovered—is like a hyperdimensional string. Look at
it one way it's an electron. Another way and it's a proton. Yet another one,
you see a verteron. But it's all the same thing, just different ways of looking
is all."
As pleased as O'Brien was with his answer, he didn't like the way
Arla was staring at him, as if she had heard those exact words too many times
before.
"Well, I'm not afraid to say when something's wrong."
Oh, oh, O'Brien
thought. This is where it can get ugly.
"I think," Arla proclaimed, "that my people's delusional
worship of the Prophets turned them into the galaxy's biggest victims."
"Now, that's harsh, don't you think?" O'Brien asked.
"No, I don't. Do you know how old Bajoran culture is?"
O'Brien wasn't sure. He thought back to that lost city the captain
had rediscovered. "Twenty thousand years, I believe."
'Try five hundred thousand years," Arla said.
"Think of that, Chief. Half a million years of almost unbroken continuity
of culture. No notable worldwide disasters. No great empires fell. No dark
ages. And no natural ebb and flow to history like on so many other worlds. But
one, unbroken strand of culture that has lasted since before your species ever
evolved."
"Quite impressive," O'Brien said.
Now Arla's sadness abruptly became disgust. "Quite a waste."
She stood up, started to pace. "Half a million years of utter,
contemptible passivity! That whole time, we did nothing but pray and wait for
the gods to guide us. And ten thousand years ago, when it finally looked as if
some forward-thinking communities were at last going to throw off the yoke of
stagnant religious belief, what happens?"
"I wouldn't know," O'Brien said nervously, though he
could guess. He had heard the number ten thousand before. But somehow, he
didn't think Arla was really interested in what he knew. She was working her
way through some argument that had nothing to do with him. And one he wished
that he knew how to deflect.
"The first Orb lands on Bajor." Arla's face twisted with
loathing. "It was the worst thing that could have happened to my
people."
O'Brien didn't like the hostility Arla was expressing. He
wondered how anyone could get through the Academy with such negative views of
an alien culture. Since Arla wasn't born on Bajor, he felt justified in
thinking of the Bajoran culture as an alien one from Arla's perspective.
"To be fair, Commander, I don't think you'll find a lot of Bajorans
agreeing with you on that."
"Of course not," Arla said. "Because for the past
ten thousand years, the wormhole aliens have been manipulating our culture,
breeding us, in fact, to develop even greater passivity."
O'Brien couldn't believe what she had said. Even at the risk of
provoking her further, he felt he had to object. "You're going to have to
explain that, Commander. I've known too many Bajorans from the Resistance to
think of you as a passive bunch."
"The facts are simple, Chief. Ten thousand years ago, humans
were just getting ready to invent the wheel and the roads that go with it.
Vulcans were bloodthirsty savages. Klingons were less than Vulcans.
And Cardassians? Ha! They were still swimming in swamps catching
fish in their mouths. But we Bajorans were peaceful, advanced, and shared a
world government."
"What's your point, Commander?" O'Brien wondered if it
were too late to make a call to Worf. Just to check in. That sort of thing.
"My point is, ten thousand years later, every other race in
the quadrant is busy carving up the galaxy— except Bajor. Instead, we've
been brutalized, terrorized, occupied, and looted. And do you know why?"
"No," O'Brien said, his hand on his communicator,
"but somehow I know you're going to tell me."
"Because for the past ten thousand years, the wormhole
aliens have dropped their Orbs on us, deluding us into thinking that there are
gods above managing our fates. And since the gods are taking care of us, why
should we bother taking care of ourselves?" Arla now stood in the
center of the bridge, arms spread wide in frustrated anger. "Honestly, can
you think of a better way to cripple a species than by telling them that if
they just wait peacefully, everything will be given to them? There's no
need to study, to learn, to explore. Or even to dream. Just sit down, make
yourself comfortable, and wait for the next dispatch from heaven." She
shook her head, oblivious to O'Brien now, caught up in her own speechmaking.
"You humans, and the Vulcans, and Klingons, and Cardassians ... you
reached out to the universe. You built Starships and went looking for
your gods. But on Bajor, with those hideous Orbs, the gods kept coming down to
us, telling us not to worry, and not to try to better ourselves."
Arla flung herself down in her chair as if exhausted. O'Brien
regarded her warily, wondering if she would
settle down soon. "The Prophets occupied our world long
before the Cardassians ever did," she concluded bitterly. "And that
makes them the biggest enemy of the Bajoran people."
"Commander Arla, I don't mean any disrespect. But I certainly
hope you know better than to go spouting off like that in public."
Her frown wrinkled her epinasal ridges. "I do know. But I
asked if I could speak freely. . . ."
"You did that all right."
"Sorry, Chief," Arla said. "It's just that, coming
to Bajor, seeing the shape my people are in, when I know how much more we could
be capable of...."
O'Brien nodded, relieved that her outburst was over, and that he
hadn't had to alert anyone else. That he'd been able to handle the situation
himself. Even Julian could not have done better. "That's all right. It's
all off the record."
Arla nodded and turned her chair back to the board and the distant
view of Deep Space 9.
"Someday, the Prophets are going to destroy us," she
said quietly. "And the horrible thing is, sometimes I think I'm the only
Bajoran who realizes it."
O'Brien didn't begrudge her having the last word, though he suspected
there was something else the young commander wasn't telling him—whether about
the Prophets, about her past, he couldn't be sure. But now was perhaps not the
time to probe for it, not when the topic was so disturbing to her. There'd been
enough emotional venting for now.
The Chief contemplated the next ten hours of silence with more
equanimity than he had before.
It wasn't as if they had to be unproductive hours.
With his spirits already rising in pleasant anticipa-
tion, he asked the computer to run a level-five diagnostic
on the engineering subsystems.
In all the confusing diversity of the universe, O'Brien knew he
could always find his peace in the beauty of a well-constructed machine,
operating according to the inalterable laws of physics.
He wondered where Arla and others who felt as she did would find
their answers—their peace. And what might happen if they didn't find it soon.
CHAPTER 14
in the surgery, Vash was sitting up in the angled
examination bed. She had shadowed circles under her large, expressive eyes and
her lustrous skin was pale, but Jadzia could see no signs of trembling or weakness.
Vash's query was unspoken but obvious to all who observed her.
Kira started to speak but Odo coughed and she reluctantly turned
to Jadzia.
"You're safe for now, Vash. Odo's using suppression screens
to protect against unauthorized transportation." Jadzia moved to block
Kira and Odo from Vash's line of sight. Julian was standing on the other side
of the examination table with his hands behind his back, keeping watch on the
Cardassian diagnostic displays above his patient. "And there are security
officers standing guard outside the Infirmary."
Vash wasn't impressed. "Oh, I see. Being safe must be some
new Starfleet term for being a prisoner."
Jadzia smiled. Sweetly. "You're not under arrest. Yet."
Vash's answering smile was just as sweet. "Why would I be
under arrest? Is it against some Bajoran law to be the target of an assassin?
Or did I obstruct traffic on the Promenade when I collapsed?"
Interesting, Jadzia thought. Of all the experiences of all Dax's previous hosts she
had to draw on, the ones she usually found herself returning to least were
those of Joran, her sixth. He'd been a mistake, his existence still suppressed
by the Symbiosis Commission to avoid alarming the Trill public with the
revelation that the selection process was not perfect. Joran had been
unbalanced. He'd committed murder.
Jadzia now took the rare step of brushing lightly against the
disturbing memories of that perverted mind and its hideous act. Because she
sensed a similar lack of equilibrium in Vash.
But could Vash kill? Jadzia wondered. Not in self-defense, because almost anyone was
capable of that. Could she kill in the way that Joran had, merely for sport,
or lust, or greed?
"On Bajor," Jadzia said severely, "even the attempt
to traffic in Orbs is one of the most serious crimes in their system."
Vash stretched and moved her shoulders as if verifying the health
of her body. "I told him that, huh? The captain? About Quark being involved
in selling the Orbs?"
Jadzia nodded, looking beyond Vash to see Kira now caught in an
impressive struggle to remain silent.
The archaeologist bent forward, rubbed gingerly at
the side of her head. "On the Promenade, when I got hit... I
thought I was dying, you know? I remember wanting to tell someone ...
the captain ... something that might make it easier for him to find who killed
me." She gave a sudden, rueful laugh. "My bad luck I didn't
die." She twisted around to look over her shoulder at Bashir. "Why
is that, Doc?"
Bashir looked away from the Cardassian readouts. "The dart
contained an Andorian toxin."
Vash suddenly laid back against the angled table, as if all the
strength had left her. "Satr and Leen. They've been after me for a long
time. Ever since the Mandylion retrieval."
Jadzia saw Odo shake his head 'No' at the possibility that the
two Andorian sisters were involved in the attack on Vash. But Jadzia had
already deduced the improbability of that for herself. Even if Odo did not have
visual records of whoever had fired the dart at Vash, Jadzia was aware the
Andorian sisters were under constant surveillance. If they had been anywhere
near Vash at the time of the attack, Odo's officers would have known it.
Right now there was no advantage to be gained in sharing that news
with Vash. But if her cooperation were needed later, such information would be
as valuable as latinum. So Jadzia did not contradict Vash's supposition. She
merely said, "Odo's working on tracking the sisters' movements."
Then Jadzia added, as if the question were unimportant,
"Anyone else who might be after you? Captain Sisko said he thought you saw
someone you knew on the Promenade, just before the attack."
Vash stared up at the ceiling, frowning. "This'll sound
crazy, but..."
"I know all about crazy," Jadzia murmured comfortingly.
"Believe me."
"Yeah? Well, I thought I saw Dal Nortron following us. How's
that for crazy?"
With that, Odo reached his breaking point. "Excuse me,
ladies, but there are only two Andorians on the station, and had one of them
been on the Promenade at any time close to the instant you were attacked,
they'd stand out on the surveillance tapes like... well, like Andorians."
Odo stepped back, a hand held up in apology. "I apologize for breaking
in."
But the damage was done. Jadzia had seen a worrisome little flash
of calculation in Vash, as if the archaeologist had just learned something of
importance from Odo's outburst—such as the fact that the Andorian sisters had not
been on the Promenade and thus could hardly be considered suspects.
"What I meant was, he was in disguise," Vash said,
recovering smoothly, but not smoothly enough for Jadzia, who was on full alert,
now. "Or altered or something. I mean, no antennae, sort of brown skin. He
might even have had Bajoran epinasal ridges. Like I said, I couldn't be
sure."
"We'll study the visual scans again," Jadzia said
evenly, more and more determined not to let Vash control this interrogation.
"But in the meantime—Quark and the Orbs. Let's talk about that."
"What's the point?" All sense of hesitation or unease
gone, Vash sat up again and ruffled her hair into place. "If I do, I go to
prison. If I don't, it's just something I said when I had a shot of
bicuprodyanide bubbling in my brain. I think what I meant to say to Captain
Sisko is, Damn, I'm sorry I'm dying before I ever got a chance to have Quark
show me an Orb like
he promised he would the last time I was on the station. There's
one in the Temple on the Promenade, isn't there? Yeah," the archaeologist
continued, staring brazenly right into Jadzia's eyes, betraying no guilt
whatsoever, "I'm sure that's the one Quark said he'd show me. Did you
actually think I'd deal in a stolen Orb when I know what they mean to the
Bajoran people?"
Now it was Kira who was close to the breaking point. Jadzia heard
her give a muffled exclamation, but the major said nothing more, keeping to her
promise not to interfere.
Julian, on the other hand, was suddenly looking ridiculously
pleased with himself. But all he did in reply to Jadzia's questioning look was
grin foolishly, once again appearing much too cute for his own good. A good
Galeo-Manada workout would cure that in a hurry, Jadzia thought.
"I can certainly see how your explanation of what you said to
Captain Sisko might make sense," Jadzia told Vash. "Of course,
part of the problem is that the captain didn't understand every word."
"I guess I was lucky to be able to say anything at all."
"One of the more interesting things he said you told him was
that Quark was going to have an auction to sell an Orb."
"Did I say auction or action?" Vash suddenly seemed busy
rearranging her tunic. "Sell an Orb, or see an Orb? I bet I wasn't too
clear." She looked up and smiled brightly at her interrogator.
"And then there was a word you used, one he didn't quite get,
maybe something ... Bajoran?"
Vash stopped fussing
with her clothing
for a
moment, looked thoughtful for a moment, then shook her head.
"Let's try it this way, then," Jadzia suggested helpfully.
"What Orb was Quark going to show you at the temple?"
"Oh," Vash said. She swung her legs off the side of the
examination table. "Sure, that was it. The Orb of Jalbador."
"What?" Kira sputtered. She moved so quickly to Vash's side that she was
between Jadzia and the archaeologist before Jadzia had even realized what she
was doing. Odo moved forward but Jadzia quietly signaled him to hold back.
Perhaps Kira could shake something out of Vash. It was worth a try.
" 'Jalbador'?" Kira said to Vash. "Is that what you
said?"
Vash shrugged, unintimidated. "Yeah, so?"
"Not one Orb, but the Lost Orbs? The Lost Red Orbs of
Jalbador? Is that what this is about?"
"You should talk to Quark," Vash said. "But, yeah,
that's what he said he'd show me. A Red Orb of Jalbador."
Kira hung her head and shook it, as if berating herself for being
a fool. "That's it, we're done here." She turned away from Vash, as
if she had lost all interest in the archaeologist.
"I beg your pardon?" Jadzia asked.
"This is ... more than ridiculous. I have to contact the Kai
at once."
"Major, why?"
"Because, Dax, the Red Orbs of Jalbador don't exist. They are
... I don't know a non-Bajoran example. But, they're not part of any of the
legitimate teachings of our religion."
"Apocryphal?" Bashir suggested.
"That's as good a word as any," Kira said. "But
more than that, they're something that... fringe people and fortune seekers
and..." She waved a dismissive hand at Vash, who made a face back at her.
"... and petty thieves go after all the time. I mean, at least once or
twice a year there's some unbelievable story about the Lost Orbs being found,
hidden in the ice on Mount Ba'Lavael. Or deep in the Tracian Sea in the sunken
ruins of B'hala."
"But Major," Bashir objected, "B'hala didn't sink
in the Tracian Sea. Captain Sisko found it under the Ir'Abehr Shield."
"Exactly, Doctor. But until the Emissary found it, B'hala had
been lost for twenty thousand years! That's twenty thousand years of legends
and lies and outright fraud. Do you know how many people on Bajor—and on a
dozen other worlds, I'm sure—have been bilked by swindlers who claim to have an
ancient map that shows the location of B'hala or the resting places of the Red
Orbs?"
"The Brooklyn Bridge," Bashir suddenly blurted out. It
made so little sense to Jadzia and everyone else in the surgery that they all
turned to look at him.
"On old Earth," he continued, his expression somehow
conveying the impression that he expected everyone else to know exactly what
he meant. "The late 1800s. People newly arrived in what used to be called
New York City were offered deeds to the Brooklyn Bridge—a spectacular public
works built and owned by the local government. To buy the Brooklyn Bridge
became a colloquialism for gullibility." Jadzia winced as Julian
enthusiastically adopted a broad dialect as he quoted, " 'Well, if you
believe dat, buddy, then I have a bridge in Brooklyn I wanna sell ya.' "
No one said anything right away. But Odo finally broke the
silence. "Excuse me, Doctor, but is this the same Brooklyn Bridge that's
installed at the big amusement park on Earth's moon?"
"Why, yes," Bashir said eagerly. "Taking it apart,
moving it in sections, rebuilding it—it was one of the most phenomenal
engineering feats of the twenty-third century."
"In other words, eventually, someone really did buy
the Brooklyn Bridge?"
Jadzia tried not to laugh as Julian's face fell.
"Well, yes, Odo, but the point is...." He looked
plaintively around the surgery, loath as always to accept that no one was
really up to appreciating whatever his point was. "Never mind."
"I really have to go," Kira said abruptly. "Odo,
forget everything I sent you on Orb law. As far as I'm concerned, you can
charge this woman with being a public nuisance, or you can ... ship her out to
wherever she's planning on selling her 'Orbs' next. Jadzia. Doctor." Kira
left.
"That's it?" Vash asked, slipping off the examination
table to stand upright, without any signs of ever having been affected by
anything.
"Apparently so," Jadzia said.
Odo stepped around so that Vash could see him without straining.
"Tell me, Vash, what are your plans now?"
"Staying alive is always high on my list of things to
do."
"Then obviously, staying safely behind transporter-proof
shields and being guarded by my officers is agreeable to you?"
"That depends on what the price is."
"Quark," Odo said. "Where is he?"
"Frankly, constable, I don't know. I was surprised to hear he
had disappeared."
"Where were you going to meet him?"
Vash cocked her head at the constable. "I already had this
conversation with the captain and Commander Dax."
"That's not an answer."
"At the bar, Odo. Where else would I meet him?"
"And what were you meeting him about?"
"According to the major there, not much." Vash sighed at
Odo's poorly concealed look of exasperation. "All right. This is
everything I know. Quark put the word out that he had been asked to be the
broker for a transaction involving... the Red Orbs of Jalbador." Jadzia
was impressed by Vash's attempt to make it seem she was embarrassed to even say
the name of the Orbs. Vash was really good.
"The broker," Odo repeated gruffly. "So, presumably
someone else had possession of the Orbs—"
"And Quark asked me if I knew of any prospective
buyers."
"And did you?"
"Are you kidding? Half the antiquarian collectors in the
Alpha Quadrant would bankrupt themselves for a chance to own a Bajoran Orb.
Odo, seriously, this was shaping up to be the biggest transaction since the
Fajo collection went on the block. I'm talking big."
"Did you put those interested collectors in touch with Quark?"
Vash drew back in surprise that seemed genuine even to Jadzia, who
was increasingly fascinated by the archaeologist's behavior. Her performance,
filtered as it was through poor Joran, seemed to Jadzia as if it
were being dictated by an already written script. Somehow, the
archaeologist had manipulated the situation so that Odo was asking all the
questions Vash wanted him to ask. The performance was brilliant.
"Did you?" Odo repeated.
"Be serious," Vash said. "If I brought in my ...
clients, the bidding would ... well, you could buy and sell planets for what
some people would be willing to spend. And my cut would only be ten percent of
Quark's commission." Vash sat forward, as if suddenly excited by the
prospect of such a deal. "But, if I kept my people out of it, well, Quark
doesn't have the connections I do. The bidding wouldn't go anywhere as high,
and...."
"You planned to buy it for yourself," Odo said,
"and then hold your own auction for the people who could really pay."
Vash held up her hands as if surrendering. "Guilty."
"My sentiments exactly," Odo told her. "You know,
of course, what the penalties are for trading in Orbs. Not just in Bajoran law,
but under the Federation's own protection-of-antiquities statutes."
Vash curled a finger at Odo, asking him to move closer. "Odo,
remember what the major said? There are no Red Orbs of Jalbador. If
someone wants to buy something he only thinks is illegal, that's not a
crime."
Odo rocked back and crossed his arms. "Oh, you are a piece of
work."
"I'll take that as a compliment."
For a moment, Jadzia's Trill-constant swirl of consciousness
paused and then coalesced into the pattern she'd been seeking as she realized
what Vash was trying to do. There was now only one last question for Odo to
ask.
As if on cue, she heard the constable say, "One last thing.
If all of this ... confusion was brought about by the potential sale of an
artifact that you and whoever else was involved knew was a fraud, why would
someone want to kill you?"
Jadzia caught her breath as Vash delivered her answer: "I'm
not the only one who deals in rare antiquities. My clients buy from several
different sources, so ... any one of them could have decided that the potential
payoff was worth taking me out of the picture."
Odo gazed down at the floor and Jadzia knew exactly what he was
going to say next. The only thing a man like Odo could say after the story he
had just been told.
"Vash, I have far better things to do with my time than try
to stop criminals from killing other criminals. I'll keep all the security
precautions in place while you're in the Infirmary, but as soon as Doctor
Bashir says you can be released, I want you off this station. Is that
understood?"
For once, Vash seemed truly serious. "Yeah, I understand.
And... it may not mean much coming from someone like me, Odo, but thank you for
... the transporter shields and the guards. I'll be on my way as soon as the
doctor says."
Odo nodded his head once, said his good-byes to Jadzia and Bashir,
then left.
Vash turned to Bashir. "So Doc? How long have I got?"
Bashir studied the Cardassian readouts. "How's your
head?"
"Like I've got Gorns playing ten-pin behind my
eyeballs."
Bashir nodded as if he knew exactly what that felt like. "I
thought so. At least another twenty-six hours of observation, then I'll make a
decision." He reached into a tray by the table and brought up a hypospray.
"In the meantime, this should take the Gorns down to five-pin, at
least."
Vash smiled as Bashir touched the hypospray to the side of her
neck opposite to where the dart had struck. She still had a small dressing on
that wound. Bashir had not wanted to use a protoplaser to speed the healing of
the puncture because any residual toxin might have been trapped in the new
tissue growth.
"Are you a bowler?" Vash asked.
"I'm afraid darts are more my game."
Vash laughed softly, seductively, and being a young attractive
woman herself, Jadzia did not need to call upon the experiences of any of Dax's
previous hosts to know exactly what Vash was trying to do.
"Maybe we should play sometime," Vash said.
"Darts or bowling?"
"Or... something else?" Vash's smile was sly, knowing.
"You can choose. I'm open to just about anything."
Jadzia rolled her eyes as she saw the sudden flush that came to
Bashir's cheeks as he finally realized Vash was no longer talking about
the same indoor sports he was. "You get some sleep," he said.
Vash reached out to touch his hand. "Thank you, Doctor."
Jadzia had to admire Vash's technique. The touch had clinched it.
Bashir was definitely on the hook, though she knew him well enough that he
would do nothing to pursue this new opportunity until after Vash was no longer
in his care.
Bashir eased away from her hand. "Uh, you're quite welcome.
I'll... check in on you later, then."
"I'll be here."
/ don't believe it, Jadzia thought as she started for the
door. The silly creature actually batted her eyelashes at him.
Then Jadzia hooked her arm around Julian's and guided him to the
door at her side. "Come along, Doctor. You have other patients."
"I do?"
The surgery door slid shut behind them, and they were in the main
work area. Without Vash.
Immediately, Jadzia said, "Julian, I'm surprised at
you."
"Why me? On the contrary, I'm surprised at you and at
Odo."
"That woman was ... wait a minute. Why are you surprised
at me ?"
Bashir headed over to the workstation where he had left the neural
dart. "Because you—and Odo—were falling for everything Vash
said."
Now Jadzia was doubly surprised. "I wasn't falling for
everything she said. You were." She batted her eyelashes at
Bashir. "Oh, Doctor, I'm open to anything. Really, Julian."
Bashir gave her a look of amusement. "Could it be you're
jealous?"
"I am a happily married woman, thank you. I just happen to be
concerned for my friend."
Bashir rolled the dart in his fingers, as if looking for something
he and the most sophisticated collection of medical scanners and analyzers this
side of Starbase 375 had missed the first time. "Well, your friend is
equally concerned about you." He brought up his other hand
and adjusted the position of the dart. "So you should know that everything
Vash was saying in there was a lie." He began rolling the dart again, as
if trying to feel for some slight imperfection.
Jadzia sighed with relief. There was hope for Julian yet.
"Thank goodness you were able to sense it, too. I really was getting
worried about you."
Bashir looked as if he hadn't quite understood what Jadzia had
said. He continued to roll the dart in his fingers. Jadzia eyed him with
renewed concern. She didn't like the way he was handling the dart, and she
trusted he wasn't going to do something stupid, like accidentally prick himself
with the dart's small needle. "I didn't have to sense anything,
Jadzia. I knew what was going on the instant she made her mistake."
"What mistake?"
"Dax! You musn't have been paying attention. Now I'm even
more surprised."
Jadzia put her hands on her hips. "Julian, unlike Miss
Batty-Eyes in there, I am not fond of this kind of game. What mistake did she
make?"
"Bicuprodyanide," Bashir said happily, entirely too
happily in Jadzia's estimation. "She said she had it bubbling in her
brain, if you recall."
Jadzia thought back. Yes, she could remember Vash saying exactly
that. "But what about it? She did have bicuprodyanide in her system,
didn't she?"
"Absolutely. Except... I never told her that's what it was.
All I said was she had been exposed to an Andorian neural toxin."
Jadzia tapped her forehead with her fingers. It had slipped right
by her. But then she thought she detected a flaw. "Just a minute, Julian.
Maybe it was a lucky
guess. I mean, how many Andorian neural toxins can there be?"
Bashir held up the medical padd he had been working with earlier.
"In common use or easily replicated with nonspecialized equipment, one
hundred ninety seven. I have no doubt that Vash knew exactly what was in this
dart, and because of that, there was no possible way she thought she was dying
when she told Captain Sisko about the Red Orbs."
Jadzia was struggling now to deal not only with what Bashir was
suggesting, but with the fact that he had jumped so far ahead of her own
assumptions. "But Julian, how could she take the chance that her accomplice
would be able to shoot her at the right time, with the right toxin, without
being seen?"
Then Jadzia felt Dax lurch within her abdominal pocket as Bashir
suddenly slapped his hand to the side of his neck, driving the neural dart
needle into his flesh. "Julian!"
But Bashir's only response was to seem to pluck the dart from his
neck and then roll it forward in his fingers so that Jadzia could see the
needle had been removed. It was in his other hand.
"What better way to make us believe she's telling us the
truth, than by making us think that someone would rather kill her than have us
hear what she had to say?"
To Jadzia, that moment of revelation was as powerful as if an
Altonian sphere had just turned monochromatic. She had become so caught up in
the idea that Vash was manipulating the truth in the surgery that she hadn't
stopped to consider that that manipulation might have started much earlier.
"She's been lying from the beginning," Jadzia said
wonderingly.
"I think that's likely," Bashir agreed.
"Which could mean... she does know where Quark is—"
"—and she knows who claims to have the Red Orbs—"
Then Jadzia and Bashir hesitated as they drew the ultimate
conclusion from what they had discovered.
"And the Red Orbs themselves..." Jadzia said slowly.
Bashir nodded. "... could very well be real." He smiled
at Jadzia's look of concentration. "As I said, we could be a great
team."
Even his persistence struck her as endearing. But she deflected
him by saying, "Julian, we already are a great team."
He stepped closer to her. "So what does the team do
now?"
"Now ...
we go see Benjamin."
She could see it in his eyes: It wasn't what he had wanted to hear
her say, but he knew it was the right thing for her to have said.
What a sweet hopeless romantic Julian is, Jadzia thought with real affection as they
left the Infirmary together. Someday, the woman who gets Julian is going to be
the luckiest woman in the quadrant.
She wondered who that lucky woman would be.
CHAPTER 15
"You'RE crazy," Nog
said.
Jake shrugged. "My granddad says that's not so bad in a
writer."
"Then may I say your grandfather is crazy, too."
Jake straightened up from the safety railing on the second level
of the Promenade. Years ago, when he and Nog had first met and made the first
tentative steps in forging a friendship that would transcend the traditional
boundaries of their respective species, they would sit on the deck here,
letting their legs swing over the side until Odo or one of his officers told
them they should have something better to do and it was time to move along.
But now, Jake realized there had been nothing better for
the two of them to be doing than watching the parade of life that had passed by
beneath them. Because those long hours of observation, speculation,
and just plain talking had helped them become the young men they
were today—the writer and the Starfleet officer.
It was from this vantage point by the safety railing that Jake
first began noticing the intricate details of people's behavior: how some
couples walked close together, some apart; how some people smiled secretly to
themselves, while others fought back hidden tears. He'd seen the confidence of
the newly arrived visitor, fresh from the shuttle, striding in to face the
challenge of Quark's dabo table. Hours later, he'd watched the defeated shuffle
of that same person as he crept away with only the clothes he wore.
Nog had learned no less than Jake. He had explained the Great
Material River to his hew-mon friend, and how the Promenade was a
perfect tributary of that mighty cascade that shaped the universe. On the
shores of the Promenade—that is, its shops and kiosks—were pockets of accumulation,
areas that had too much of one thing or another. Flowing between those shores
were the rushing waters of customers— that is, those who had too little of what
the shops had too much of.
On the other side of the equation, the shopkeepers had far too
little latinum, and so an endless rebalancing of accounts ensued as the waters
lapped at the shores, eroding a little here, building up a little there, always
working to achieve a balance that forever remained out of reach.
Jake had been brought up in a Starfleet home and was fascinated by
the Ferengi outlook on the universe. Nog, who had been brought up to accept the
Great Material River as the only reasonable way to see the universe, had been
equally fascinated to learn about
Jake's alien perspective. The idea that it was acceptable—even
desirable—to accumulate knowledge for no other purpose than to increase
understanding, and the entire concept of helping others without any prospect
of profit, were staggering to the young Ferengi.
But once both boys got over their initial dismissal of each
others' viewpoints and began to truly try to see what the other meant, whole
new vistas opened before them.
In Jake was born the need to see how other minds— not just human
and Ferengi—viewed the universe, and then to illuminate those views for others
through the written word. In Nog, a mad dream was born in which the precision
of Ferengi thought could be applied to the romantic altruism of the Federation
in order to create a new paradigm of galactic organization, one in which the
most extreme imbalances in the Great Material River—meaning those that
invariably led to conflict—would be forever eliminated, while still leaving
ample opportunity for individuals to profit.
Thus Jake and Nog had set their lives' goals and directions, all
in the idle pastimes of children, and all from this one corner of the
Promenade.
Not that any of that made it easier for them to reconcile their
differences today.
"You know what your problem is?" Nog asked.
"I don't get out enough?" Jake answered.
The Ferengi frowned. "No. It is that you are always trying to
understand life in terms of a made-up novel."
"Nog, that's my job."
"How can it be a job if you make no money from it? Writing
news articles is your job. Writing novels for no money, that is ... an
affliction."
Jake put an elbow on the safety railing and rested his head on his
hand. "Nog, when you were at the Academy, did you make any profit?"
Nog reacted suspiciously to Jake's abrupt change of topic.
"No...."
"But someday you expect to profit from your Starfleet
experience, don't you?"
Nog appeared to be selecting his words with extreme care. "I
would hope that... many individuals, commercial concerns, and government
agencies will profit from... what I will learn during my career in
Starfleet."
Jake pounced as soon as Nog had cornered himself. "So you
admit that—"
Nog realized the trap he'd been caught in and wouldn't let Jake
finish. He did it himself. "Yes, yes, that I performed certain activities
with no chance of immediate profit, but with the expectation of earning profit
at a later time."
Jake's smirk let Nog know who had won this particular argument.
"So, as I was saying, from the perspective of a made-up novel, there's
something going on here on Deep Space 9. Something that your uncle's involved
with. And something that's brought smugglers in from across the quadrant. And
it's not what Vash told Dax and Odo."
"And as / was saying, you're crazy. You're drawing
connections where none exist. You're trying to make my uncle into that Fermion
character—"
"Higgs. Higgs is based on Quark. Fermion is based on
Morn."
"—that unbelievable character in your novel. And he's
not."
Jake stretched and straightened up again. A wave of
new visitors was arriving on the Promenade from the turbolifts and
airlocks. Not too many were Bajoran, so Jake decided the commercial cruiser
from Sagittarius HI had finally arrived. The Sagittarians were neutral in the
Dominion War, and as a result their cruisers carried cargo and passengers from
most of the nonaligned worlds. Whenever a Sagittarian ship docked at the station,
there was always a good chance a rarely seen alien might be on board, and Jake
found himself watching the crowd closely, hoping he might catch his first
glimpse of a Nanth.
But he hadn't forgotten his friend, and even as his gaze remained
on the lower Promenade level he said, "Nog, if I gave you ten crates of
stem bolts, self-sealing or not, your imagination would run wild thinking up
new schemes for selling them, or trading them, or... somehow turning them into
latinum. When it comes to business, you won't accept any limits."
"Of course not."
"Then why is it you have no imagination when it comes to how people
behave?"
After a few moments of silence, Jake glanced sideways to see that
Nog was just staring at him, as if he could think of nothing more to say.
Jake sighed. "Let's try it again." He held up a finger.
"First of all, Quark called in a group of smugglers to take part in the
sale of a counterfeit Bajoran artifact." He held up a second finger.
"Then, one of the Andorian smugglers was murdered." He held up a
third finger. "And then, someone tried to murder Vash." He held up a
fourth finger. "And despite Vash explaining the whole thing to Dax and
Odo, mere are still at least four smugglers on the station—Vash, the Andorian
sisters, and that guy, Base." Jake waved his hand back
and forth, trying to emphasize the importance of those facts.
"So put all that together, and what do you have?"
"Four fingers."
Jake closed his eyes. "Nog, use your imagination."
"All right. I will now imagine the impossible." Nog put
his hand over his eyes, a thumb on one temple, a forefinger on the other.
"I am imagining that you are giving up this stupid line of reasoning. I am
imagining that. .. that you are buying me lunch at the Replimat. I am imagining
that—"
But by then, Jake's laughter had become contagious and Nog began
laughing, too.
"I am not buying you lunch," Jake laughed.
"It's your turn."
"That is why I was using my imagination," Nog said.
They both began walking toward the closest spiral stairway.
"Anyway," Jake said, undeterred by his friend's
resistance. "I still think I'm right."
"That the counterfeit Bajoran artifact isn't counterfeit?"
They came to the staircase, and Jake waited for Nog to go first.
"If it were all a scam like Vash said, the smugglers would have left by
now, right? After all, Odo knows all about it, so what's the point of sticking
around?"
"To obtain the counterfeit artifact and take it someplace
where potential customers don't know it's counterfeit," Nog said.
They arrived on the Promenade's main level, and Jake was surprised
by the noise and bustle of the new arrivals. Many of them were looking around
as if they had never seen a space station before.
"That still doesn't answer the big mystery," Jake said
as he and Nog started for the Replimat. "Why would professional smugglers
get involved with murder for a counterfeit artifact? I mean, I understand the
idea of trying to make a profit for low risk—"
"I would certainly hope so."
"—but to commit murder?" Jake said. 'That's a high-risk
crime. Which means the potential profits have to be equally high. Isn't that
one of your rules? The riskier the road, the greater the profit?"
This time when Jake looked at Nog, he could see the Ferengi
looking thoughtful.
"All right," Nog said. "You have a point. A small
one. And it probably has nothing at all to do with what's really going on here.
But...."
Jake grinned. "But what?"
"It is probably good enough for The Ferengi Correction."
"Connection. The title is, The Ferengi Connection."
"Whatever."
Jake stopped Nog by the directory monolith. "Okay. I'm being
serious now."
"When aren't you serious?"
"I mean it, Nog. How am I ever going to be able to convince a
reader that a story I write might be true, if I can't even convince you that
what we're really seeing go on all around us is a story?"
Now Nog looked worried. "I do not have the slightest idea
what you're talking about."
Jake took a breath, oblivious to the crowds of people passing by.
"Given everything that's happened here over the past three days, what do you
think is going on?"
"Anything other than what you think is going on."
"You're doing this on purpose."
"Jake, be reasonable. Let us say you are right. Let us say
that Uncle Fermion—"
"Quark."
"—Quark is selling a real Bajoran artifact with a value worth
killing for. First of all, what kind of an artifact is that valuable? I mean,
the rarest Bajoran artifact that I have ever heard of was that icon of the city
of B'hala. And nobody was trying to kill to get that. The Cardassians just...
gave it back to Bajor."
Jake glanced up at the Promenade's high ceiling. Nog had a point.
Even Jake had never heard of an artifact so valuable that—he had it! "Nog!
It's an Orb!"
Nog reacted with outraged shock. "An Orb is not an
'artifact.' It is ... an Orb. And my uncle would not be stupid enough to risk
buying or selling an Orb, no matter how great the profit."
"But there would be incredible profit for someone not as...
law-abiding as Quark? Like a real criminal?"
Nog clearly did not want to be having this conversation. "I
suppose."
"All right. Then that's what it is. Thank you, Nog. You've
solved an important story point. Quark— Higgs—is trying to sell an Orb. And
since we haven't heard any news about an Orb being stolen, it's got to be one
of the Orbs that went missing during the Occupation that the Cardassians
haven't returned yet."
Nog looked disappointed. "So now you are suggesting that
either a Cardassian is selling a stolen Orb or that someone with more
lobes than brains stole an Orb from the Cardassians."
"Isn't there some Rule of Acquisition to cover this?"
Jake asked. "You know, Profit plus more profit equals
temporary insanity for a desperate criminal?"
Nog screwed up his face in concentration. "Perhaps in one of
the reform editions. But not in the . .." He frowned. "You are not
being serious. There is no such law."
"All I'm looking for is a possibility. A willing suspension
of disbelief. What's it going to take to convince you?"
"Really?"
"Nog, if I can convince you, I can convince anyone. Now, let
me have it. What do you need to believe the story?"
Nog looked around at the milling crowd. "More smugglers. If
someone's trying to sell an Orb, there should be a great many more than four
smugglers on board DS9. There should be dozens, if not hundreds."
"Okay, I can live with that. Quark put out the word a few
days ago. The closest smugglers arrive in a day or two. With more continuing to
arrive. So there will be more by now, we just don't know about them. What
else?"
Nog shrugged. "Cardassians."
"Why Cardassians?"
"They're trying to recover their stolen property."
That was going too far for Jake. "Nog, there won't be any
Cardassians coming to DS9. We're at war with them."
Nog shook his head. "The Federation is at war with
Cardassia. Bajor is not a member of the Federation. Technically, it has been
given neutral status by the Dominion. And technically, this station is Bajoran
territory."
"But it's in Federation space."
Nog held his hands out as if he had nothing more to offer.
"You asked what it would take. I answered. Now you really do have to buy
me lunch."
Jake started walking again, with Nog hurrying to keep up. "I
don't have to buy you anything. I asked for help. You set up impossible conditions."
The Replimat was full, every table taken. There was even a line
outside. The Sagittarians did not have a reputation for palatable food. Too
many of their flavorings were self-organizing slime molds, which often tried
to reconstitute themselves and then escape from whatever dish they had been
mixed into.
"Not impossible," Nog insisted. "Necessary. As in
necessary for me to accept your premise. Should we try the Klingon Cafe?"
"Impossible, because there's no way anyone will believe that
Cardassians will come to DS9. Why don't we try Quark's?"
Nog looked uncomfortable. "That little Base ... he makes me
nervous. Did you know he has hair? On his ... scalp? Uh, no offense."
"We'll eat upstairs."
"All right." Nog suddenly brightened. "Maybe Leeta
will be on duty. Then we can negotiate a family discount!"
The young men left the Replimat and started back toward Quark's.
"You have to pay to eat at your uncle's?" Jake asked.
"Exploitation begins at home," Nog said, as if quoting
another of the Ferengi Rules. "And if the Orb is really an Orb and you
want your story to be believed, then you have to do something dramatic so the
reader will understand the stakes have been raised."
"What are you talking about?"
"Cardassians on DS9."
"Forget it. I'm not writing a fantasy. I'm writing a heist
novel and there are rules I have to follow. And one of them is...." Jake
hesitated. Couldn't quite believe what he saw—who he saw—stepping through the
airlock across from Quark's, beyond the Infirmary.
"Is what?" Nog prompted.
"Cardassians," Jake said.
Nog sounded as confused as Jake felt. "That's a rule?"
Jake reached out, took Nog's shoulder, and pointed him in the same
direction he was looking. "No," Jake said. "That's your
proof."
Cardassians.
Three of them. Just outside the circular door of the airlock. One
was female, the other two male. And one of them was unlike any Cardassian Jake
had ever seen before: He was bald.
Jake felt Nog tense, and instantly the Ferengi tapped his
communicator badge.
"Nog to Commander Worf. Security breach on the Promenade.
Airlock Alpha. Three enemy personnel."
Jake wheeled to Nog. "Nog, they're not enemy personnel. Look
at them—they're civilians. No weapons. No—"
Jake stopped talking as the crowd reacted to five columns of
shimmering light that formed around the airlock stairs.
Jake stared in fascination as four Starfleet security officers
beamed in with Worf and scattered the crowd. Each of the five had a phaser.
Each phaser was aimed at the Cardassians.
"Isn't that a bit of an overreaction?" Jake asked.
"We are at war," Nog said.
Jake had tried, but he still didn't understand the military
mind-set that had become so much a part of Starfleet in the past year. But the
one thing he felt he did know was motivation, both in the characters he wrote
about and in real life. And he understood the motivation that had led to the
scene being played out before him right now.
"Okay, Nog—this proves my point," Jake said as Worf and
his team took the Cardassians into custody. "What possible reason could
three Cardassians have for risking a trip into Federation space to set
foot on a Starfleet-controlled space station?"
Nog looked up at Jake, and Jake could see that this time his
friend knew exactly what he was talking about.
"You said it yourself," Jake continued. "They want
their Orb back. It's the only possible reason they could have for coming
here."
Nog looked grim. "We shall see." Then he went to offer
his assistance to Worf.
Jake remained behind. But as he watched the Cardassians being led
away, he was filled with an overpowering sense of just being right.
He was the only person on Deep Space 9 who truly knew what was
going on, and it was time to start letting people know it.
CHAPTER 16
"I am leej
terrell," the leader of the Cardassian mission said in the relative
calm of the Wardroom. "And these are our credentials."
Sisko accepted the articulated Cardassian padd she gave him. The
excitement of the unannounced arrival of three Cardassians on a neutral cruiser
had finally lessened throughout the station. But the security concerns
remained.
As he took his seat across from his visitors at the conference
table, Sisko studied the padd, comparing the identity dossiers it displayed as
the station's computer automatically tested the authentication codes in the padd's
memory.
According to the padd, Leej Terrell was the widow of a minor trade
diplomat from Cardassia Prime. Her technical specialist, Dr. Phraim Betan, was
a physician retired from the Cardassian Home Battalions. And her
associate, Atrig, of no specified job function, was a businessman
who ran an import-export company among the Cardassian colony worlds. The three
Cardassians were, each dossier proclaimed, volunteers working for the Amber
Star, with no official connection to the Cardassian government.
Sisko, however, didn't believe a word of the dossiers. For a
diplomat's wife, Terrell was too clearly used to giving orders, not practicing
diplomacy. Dr. Betan was too young to have retired from anything. And
Atrig—perhaps the most striking Cardassian Sisko had ever seen—had not lost his
hair nor been so badly scarred at the base of his neck and across one of his
wide shoulder membranes ferrying goods from one world to another. Atrig had
been in battle.
Decked out though they were with false identities, innocuous
civilian outfits, and singularly hollow smiles, Sisko had no doubt he was
seated across the table from three Cardassian soldiers. Three very active, and
dangerous, Cardassian soldiers.
A Federation authorization window opened on the padd's display—the
authentication codes had been confirmed. Terrell, Betan, and Atrig had been
cleared for travel within the Bajoran sector.
But Sisko didn't really care. He placed the padd on the table as
if it held nothing of interest or of value for him.
"So, you are traveling under the guise of a humanitarian
mission," Sisko began.
"Not under the guise," Terrell replied easily. "We are
a humanitarian mission, accepted by both the Federation and the Dominion
during this terrible conflict."
Sisko folded his hands. "Then why didn't you make travel
arrangements directly with this station? If you
are permitted to travel through Federation space, why arrive
unannounced?"
Seated directly across the table from him, Terrell matched Sisko's
gesture, folding her own hands in a mirror image of his. "In times such as
these," she said, "I often find it is more expedient to beg
forgiveness than ask permission. If I had requested your approval to travel
here, would you have given it to me?"
"No," Sisko said, registering Terrell's surprise at his
decision not to hide the truth through the more standard practice of
equivocation and diversion.
'Then I was right to do as I did," she said with a smile.
"Again, no," Sisko said, keeping his tone deliberately
impassive and uninformative. "You have disrupted my station. You have
raised many questions in the mind of my strategic operations officer. Whatever
delay you might have expected if you had contacted me ahead of time you can be
sure will now be even longer, as Commander Worf tries to uncover what you're
hiding."
Sisko saw Terrell shoot a swift glance at Dr. Betan. And then as
if the glance had been a signal for his action, the doctor spoke next.
"Captain Sisko, I assure you we have nothing to hide. We are
volunteer workers of the Amber Star, private citizens aligned with no
political group. We are merely here to repatriate the remains of the unfortunate
Cardassians you discovered fused within the hull of this station. I'm sure
you'll understand how this humanitarian act will at last bring closure to their
families, as their fates are now known and the two unfortunates can be laid
to rest according to their own customs."
"Ah, but I understand completely, Doctor," Sisko said.
"And I am very pleased that the genetic profiles of the soldiers have
allowed you to identify them." Hastily suppressed reactions from all three
Cardassians informed Sisko that his statement had startled them, a suspicion
Terrell quickly confirmed.
"I believe you have reached an incorrect conclusion, Captain
Sisko. The dead whose remains we are recovering are not—were not—soldiers.
Their identification files are in the padd, as well. You will see that they
were civilian support staff for the Terok Nor mining operation. Low-level. Of
course, they worked for the military in trying to restore order to
Bajor—"
"Excuse me?" Sisko said, not sure he had heard Terrell
correctly.
Undeterred by his interruption, Terrell proceeded silkily.
"Captain, you know what a troubled world Bajor is today. Believe me when I
say that in the past, it was even more so. Remember that the Bajorans endured
centuries of petty political and religious squabbling. And almost sixty years
ago, when we could see these poor people were about to allow those conflicts to
erupt into the horrors of all-out world war, well, we had to act, didn't we?
We're a compassionate people, Captain. If we had not brought order to these
people—our closest neighbors in space, after all— when we did, Bajor would be a
wasteland today."
Sisko clenched and unclenched his hands so vigorously during
Terrell's vile tirade that the popping of his knuckles rang out in the
Wardroom. "Parts of Bajor are a wasteland today, because of what you
and your Occupation forces did to it."
"And we regret that," Terrell said. "If you could
only
know how it pained us whenever we had to discipline these
people."
Terrell paused as if to let him take part in the conversation.
But Sisko remained silent because he knew if he opened his mouth to say a
single word, he'd end up screaming at these sanctimonious monsters.
"I understand what you're feeling," Terrell said with
infuriating condescension. "I know how attached one can get to Bajorans.
In a way, they're so much like children. In fact, our research has proven
without doubt that the reason they remain so backward, and so dangerously
unable to consider the consequences of their actions, is that their brains are
not as developed is most other sentient creatures. Those parts of the neural
structure responsible for higher-order thought are stunted, more like those
found in less evolved animals such as—"
'That is quite enough," Sisko said through clenched teeth.
Terrell waved her hand as if what she had to say was of no real
importance. "I know, I know."
Sisko could hear his heart thundering in his ears. He wanted
nothing more than to end this meeting and escape from Terrell's presence. He
put his hands on the table, prepared to stand, to ... he saw the padd.
He forced himself to relax back into his chair.
Terrell had almost succeeded in perfectly deflecting him off the
topic they'd been discussing.
He looked at her with new respect—as an adversary.
He decided it was time to deflect her. "To return to
the topic at hand, your identification of the bodies as those of 'civilians'
does not match other details we've obtained from our investigation." Now
Sisko stood to end the meeting. "I can only surmise that the Amber
Star has made some error, and so we will not be able to release
the bodies until a more detailed analysis is completed."
Terrell was on her feet at once. "Captain Sisko, there is no
error."
Sisko smiled. "I know an error would be unlikely coming from
your military's Central Records. But as you said yourself, the Amber Star is a
civilian organization. I'd prefer my medical staff continuing with—"
"I would be happy to be of assistance," Dr. Betan
interjected. "There are subtleties to Cardassian biochemistry and
physiology with which an alien doctor might not be familiar."
"Thank you, but it won't be necessary," Sisko said.
"Our Doctor Bashir is one of the finest in Starfleet. And he has the
advantage of working in a Cardassian medical facility." He gestured to the
door. "I'm sure we'll clear this up in oh ... a week or two."
Terrell gave no sign of leaving. Her voice turned harsh and her
manner seemed more threatening. "Captain, do not turn this into a
diplomatic incident. Whatever slim chance for peace exists now will be lost
forever if the population of Cardassia believes the Federation would play
politics with the bodies of Cardassian citizens. That they will not
forgive."
"I don't understand," Sisko said.
Terrell's eyes narrowed. "That we care for and respect our
honored dead?"
"No," Sisko said. "That you think Cardassia has
anything to do with the disposition of this war." Sisko made no effort to
disguise his pleasure at his Terrell's displeasure. "Admit it, Terrell,
your world is as controlled by the Dominion as Bajor was controlled by you
during the Occupation. In fact, I wonder how far
down the evolutionary scale the Founders rank Cardassian neural
structures."
"You are making a mistake," Terrell hissed.
Sisko actually laughed. "I'm not the one who's stepped into
the middle of enemy territory." He turned his back on the Cardassians and
walked to the doors. "The Sagittarian cruiser is departing tomorrow at fifteen
hundred hours. You will be leaving with it. In the meantime, I'll have you
escorted to guest quarters."
"Captain Sisko," Dr. Betan fluttered as he looked
nervously at Terrell, "for the sake of galactic peace, please reconsider this
deadly insult."
The doors slid open and Sisko looked up to see Major Kira
approaching. He allowed himself a moment to contemplate what this meeting might
have been like with Kira involved. The Cardassians would be badly injured or
dead by now. Neither of which states would have been desirable.
"Captain," Kira said urgently, "we have a
problem." Sisko was relieved to see that her attention was solely focused
on him and not on his visitors.
"It's take care of, Major. I've dealt with the Cardassian
delegation." It was safer not allowing the fiery Bajoran any contact with
Terrell and her companions. If she did, a second front could open up right
here on DS9.
But Kira was not interested in Sisko's visitors. She glanced back
over her shoulder. "Not a Cardassian problem. A Bajoran one."
Sisko stepped out of the Wardroom to look down the corridor in the
same direction Kira did. Past Worf's security detail. Where, surprisingly, four
Bajoran monks were striding toward him in great haste.
"Didn't you say you contacted the Kai and the
Inquisitors?" Sisko asked Kira. "That they were no
longer needed because the Red Orbs of Jalbador don't exist?"
"These aren't Inquisitors," Kira replied. "And they
aren't here about Quark's Orbs." She frowned at Sisko, lowered her voice.
"Word got out about the Cardassians arriving for the bodies."
"Captain Sisko," the lead monk called out in a booming
voice. "I am Prylar Obanak. It is most urgent we speak."
Sisko was doubly taken aback. First, by the fact that a Bajoran
monk had addressed him without calling him 'Emissary.' And second, by the
narrow band of red cloth the prylar wore tied around his forehead under his
hood. Recent events had compelled Sisko to study a wide range of ancient
Bajoran texts dealing with the fallen Prophets known as the Pah-wraiths and he
had learned that a strip of red fabric was often worn by those who worshiped
them. When the red cloth was worn about the arm, Sisko knew, it was a symbol of
a Pah-wraith cult which had been around for years, but which most Bajorans
treated as a joke. What the fabric meant when tied around a monk's head—well
Sisko wasn't actually sure, now that he thought about it—but each of the three
monks accompanying Obanak was also wearing one in that position.
Sisko was not anxious to become involved in a new distraction. He
still had O'Brien's search to contend with, along with the mysteries of the
murdered Andorian and the dead Cardassians. He tried to deflect Obanak into
Kira's care. "You can discuss anything you'd like with Major Kira
and—"
"This does not involve Nerys," the prylar rumbled. Even
though he pitched his voice at normal speaking
level now, its timbre was still remarkably deep and resonant.
And once again he had surprised Sisko. For a monk, it seemed to
Sisko that the prylar was unduly familiar with Major Kira, addressing her as he
had by her given name. But then, even before he had uttered a word it was clear
to the most casual observer that Obanak was
not a typical prylar. He was a full head taller than Sisko, and
despite the loosely fitted robes he wore, it
-- as clear the monk had the musculature of a plus-grav
powerlifter. Whatever kind of religious he was, Obanak did not appear to be
living a life of quiet con-templation.
Kira offered her own explanation to Sisko. "We were in the
Resistance together."
Obanak bared his teeth in a fierce smile, revealing ess than a
full set. Sisko wondered if the missing ones
had been knocked out in battle and if so, in the past or
more recently. "And my followers and I consider our-selves to
be in the Resistance today."
Now Sisko was thoroughly confused. "Resistance to—" But
that was all he was able to say before being cut off by a deafening roar.
"Murderer!" Obanak raised his arm and pointed accusingly past Sisko and into
the Wardroom.
To Sisko, there was no doubt that Obanak meant one of the three
Cardassians behind him and, as cap-tain of DS9, he acted swiftly to prevent
escalation of a potential incident that could involve the entire station.
Setting aside any consideration of how deserving his visitors
might be of Bajoran wrath, Sisko twisted the enraged prylar's arm down and
pushed Obanak back against the far bulkhead of the corridor. At the same time,
Worf's two security officers held back the other
three monks. Meanwhile, Kira stepped in to keep the Cardassians
safely in the Wardroom.
As he held Obanak in position, Sisko became aware of the monk's
improbably massive biceps. The only reason Obanak wasn't moving was clearly
because he chose not to—it was doubtful even Worf would have been able to stop
the Bajoran prylar.
With order restored, Sisko spoke sternly to the four Bajoran and
the three Cardassians that he and his staff now held apart from each other.
"You are all guests on this station. Do I have your word you will not
disturb the peace again?"
"Of course, Captain," Obanak said thickly. "I apologize.
I was unprepared for the sight of such kheet'agh in this place."
Sisko frowned, but he released his grip on the prylar, whose only
response, fortunately, was to adjust the position of his robes. Though the term
Obanak had hurled at the Cardassians was unfamiliar to Sisko, he could guess it
was not a flattering one. His own attention, moreover, had been caught by the
prylar's omission of a term that he was accustomed to hearing from Bajoran
religious figures. It now seemed somehow wrong not to be addressed as
'Emissary.' But that was the least of his concerns at the moment.
Sisko turned back to Terrell, Dr. Betan, and Atrig, who had yet to
give their word that they would not cause trouble.
Atrig had moved into position directly in front of Terrell, as if
to shield her from attack. His legs and arms were in an unmistakable fighting
rest-stance. Now Sisko was positive that the bald Cardassian was no more a
civilian than the two dead Cardassians in the Infirmary had been.
"I assure you, you are in no danger," Sisko informed his
visitors.
Terrell stepped out from behind Atrig, though Atrig was still
poised to defend her. "So you say, Captain," she said. "Of
course, we've come to expect this sort of overwrought emotional outburst from
Bajorans. It's not their fault, you know, any more than a beaten dog is
responsible for snapping at its rescuer. It's that the Bajoran neural—"
A powerful voice drowned hers out as Prylar Obanak intoned dramatically:
"Leej Terrell. Prefect of the Applied Science Directorate, Bajor Division.
Personally responsible for the deaths of over two thousand Bajoran citizens
during the conduct of medical implant experiments. It was said that even the
Obsidian Order feared her for her ability to make opponents simply
disappear."
The silence in the corridor lasted only a moment.
"Is that all?" Terrell said, unperturbed and now in
command of herself again. "Surely you're not finished. There are so many
more crimes I'm supposed to have been responsible for. Prefect of medical
research. Commandant of a work camp on a colony world. In charge of mining
operations here on Terok Nor. I think once someone claimed I was even
responsible for the assassination of Kai Opaka."
"Kai Opaka wasn't assassinated," Kira said grimly.
"Of course she wasn't," Terrell agreed soothingly. 'And
neither was I responsible for any of the other crimes I supposedly committed.
It's just that your people have a great deal of displaced anger, and
you—"
"I think you should leave it at that," Sisko warned.
"Good idea," Kira added.
Terrell looked past Kira as if she didn't exist. "Cap-
tain Sisko, again I appeal to your humanity. Given the unwarranted
hostility you can see we're facing here, and the unfortunate consequences that
might ensue if it's allowed to continue, would it not be to everyone's
advantage if you simply let us receive the bodies of our fellow citizens with
dignity and—"
"They cannot take the bodies," Obanak thundered.
Terrell's cold glance flicked off the prylar. "Sir, be
reasonable. No matter how your mind's been twisted against us, you can only
kill a Cardassian once."
"Unfortunately," Kira muttered.
"That's enough, Major," Sisko said firmly. He turned to
the Bajoran prylar. "Why is it any concern of yours what happens to those
bodies?"
Obanak nodded his head in the direction of the corridor.
"May we talk in private?"
Sisko gestured to Worf and Kira to maintain the separation of the
remaining Bajorans and Cardassians. Then, together with the prylar, he walked
away from the Wardroom and down the corridor, until not even Obanak's deep
voice could be overheard. And it was then that the prylar dropped his posturing
and made the case for his position.
"Captain, I don't know how much you know about what happened
on this station during Withdrawal, but there were many deaths."
Sisko knew that wasn't the case. He braced himself for other
untruths. "The official death toll was four."
"Four Bajorans," Obanak said. "Among the Cardassians
... well, certain Resistance members undercover on Terok Nor saw the confusion
of Withdrawal as their chance to strike a final blow against the enemy. At
least one hundred Cardassians were killed on that last day."
"That's never been part of any account I've heard." Sisko
could not recall Major Kira ever alluding to such an event. But then she did
not readily discuss the dark days before the Federation had taken over Deep
Space 9.
"Why would it be? If the Cardassian people ever learned that
their troops were slaughtered during a retreat, don't you think they would
demand retribution? Either against the Bajoran people or against the
Cardassian leaders who accepted the slaughter without retaliation?"
Sisko could see the logic in that, though it was still not a full
explanation. "But then why didn't the Bajoran Resistance publicize their
great victory against the oppressors?"
"Captain, think of the consequences." Sisko couldn't
help noticing that the Bajoran prylar out of the presence of the Cardassians
was a most persuasive fellow who presented his arguments in a reasonable, not a
rigid manner. "In the past," Obanak continued, "it would be
quite one thing for the Resistance to take credit for wiping out one hundred
Cardassians on patrol in some desolate mountain region. Under conditions such
as those, it was next to impossible for the Cardassians to be sure which cell
was responsible. But up here, as I'm sure you know, the situation was more
tightly defined. Consider this: The names of every Bajoran on the station at the
time of the Withdrawal exist in Cardassia's Central Records. Among them,
inevitably, are the Resistance members responsible for those last acts of
righteous revenge. So my point is this: If the Cardassians show no signs of
making an issue over what happened, then why would any Bajoran risk calling
attention to it?"
"All right," Sisko conceded. "I agree that both
sides have something to gain from hiding the truth. But what does that have to
do with Terrell and the bodies we found?"
Obanak paused and took a particularly long, deep breath. The
action reminded Sisko of a stress-reducing Bajoran meditation technique Kira
had once recommended he try. "As of now, Captain, those actions, those
deaths .,. they belong in the past. The two bodies you found, chances are they
are two of the hundred from the Day of Withdrawal."
Sisko saw a shadow pass over the prylar's face as he gave name to
the terrible last day of the Cardassian occupation of the station. "Now,
what happens when those bodies return to Cardassia and an investigation begins?
We on Bajor believe that witnesses will be tracked down, events reconstructed,
someone will remember that a certain Bajoran was the last to see a certain dead
Cardassian. A few days later, that Bajoran will be murdered in his home by
assassins hired by the grieving family.
"And we can't forget the possibility of physical evidence as
well," Obanak added. "A physical altercation during Withdrawal might
have produced a fleck of Bajoran blood, a scraping of Bajoran skin under a fingernail,
or a single strand of Bajoran hair caught in the fabric of a dead man's suit.
Each body could provide hundreds of different ways for Cardassian investigators
to identify a member of the resistance who may or may not have been responsible
for a Cardassian's death." Coming to the end of his argument for Sisko's
help, Obanak folded his arms within his robes. "If you allow that to
happen, Captain, then the cycle of violence will continue."
Sisko studied the prylar. He still hadn't decided on a course of
action. But he now understood Obanak's position. "What would you suggest I
do?" he asked, truly interested in the Bajoran monk's answer.
"My followers and I will take the bodies and, in accordance
with Cardassian rituals, we shall cleanse them, prepare them for their journey
through their Divine Labyrinth, and then cremate them."
"Evidence and all?" Sisko asked.
Obanak nodded. "To keep the past in the past, where it
belongs."
Sisko considered his options. Obanak seemed sincere but
hopelessly naive. "Prylar Obanak, do you honestly believe I can convince
Terrell and her people that you—a Bajoran monk—will perform any sort of
Cardassian funeral rite with the proper respect?"
"We are incapable of doing anything except show the proper
respect. Captain, my followers and I are not the type of religious with which
you are familiar. I refer to the misguided ones who adhere to flawed texts
imperfectly chosen from the long legacy of our world's relationships with the
True Gods of Creation. Such misguided ones as might call you Emissary."
That explains his reluctance to call me by that title, Sisko thought. "You're right,"
he said. "I'm not familiar with your approach—"
"More than an approach, Captain. We follow the One True
Way."
This encounter with Obanak was causing Sisko to feel both
intrigued and uncomfortable. He was well aware that there were many sects on
Bajor. Many different ways of interpreting holy texts, the Prophets, and their
actions. But for all those different approaches, Bajoran religion was rarely, if
ever, con-
frontational. All but a few Bajoran religions were based on the
one central tenet of the Prophets' undeniable existence. But past that point,
any group was free to go its own way. Most accepted the guidance and leadership
of Kai Winn. Some did not. And, at least in Sisko's experience, Bajor was
unique among most worlds of the Federation in that in the face of such
diversity, religious intolerance did not appear to exist. Of course, he had
also thought that given that the proof of their gods' existence was so
tangible—in the form of the Orbs—there wasn't room for much argument.
"You will forgive me," Sisko began as diplomatically as
he could, "but I have seen on Bajor that there appear to be many ways to
worship the Prophets."
"Many ways," Obanak agreed. "But only one way that
is correct above all others."
Sisko looked back down the corridor toward the door to the
Wardroom. Obanak's three companions were still waiting there with Worf's
security officers. Kira was standing with them, apparently having no desire to
remain in the Wardroom with Terrell and the other two Cardassians.
Cardassians, Sisko
thought. Cardassians back on DS9. A Bajoran monk from a sect he had never heard
of. Two murdered Cardassians from six years ago— perhaps from the very same day
Quark, Odo, and Garak could not remember. One murdered Andorian from four days
ago. Quark missing. Smugglers everywhere. Counterfeit Orbs and ...
Where is the pattern? Sisko asked himself. He could envision all the separate pieces
swirling around like flotsam on the steep sides of a whirlpool or like tiny
runabouts tossed by the negative energy flux of the wormhole. Yet he couldn't
help but feel mat somehow,
in some way, all those pieces should fit together—if not among
themselves, then around some missing final piece.
"Captain?" Obanak asked.
Sisko returned his attention to the Bajoran monk, not quite sure
how long he had been staring blankly down the hall in search of answers.
"Were you with them?"
"You mean, with the Prophets?"
Obanak nodded.
"No," Sisko said. "But I thought you didn't believe
I was the Emissary."
"Clearly, you are not," Obanak said. His thick brow
suddenly deepened over his large, dark eyes. "Do you believe you
are?"
Sisko paused before answering. It was ironic, but that was exactly
what Commander Arla—a Bajoran of no religious beliefs—had asked him. And now he
was being asked the same question by someone on the exact opposite end of the
curve of religious possibilities—a Bajoran who seemed to believe that all
other Bajoran beliefs were wrong.
"That is what the Prophets call me," Sisko said.
"And that is what many Bajorans call me. So I accept that that is what I
am—to them. What it means, though, I really cannot say."
Obanak regarded Sisko gravely. Almost, it seemed to Sisko, with
respect. "I must say I hadn't expected you to be so open-minded, Captain.
Usually, when the False Prophets cloud an innocent mind, that mind remains
closed."
"False Prophets?" Sisko was certain he had never heard a
Bajoran use the word 'false' in the same breath as 'prophets.'
"Those that dwell in the Jalkaree. The Sundered
Temple. What the unenlightened call the wormhole."
It was then that Sisko realized why the prylar wore the sign of
the Pah-wraiths. "I see: you consider the Pah-wraiths to be the true Prophets."
Obanak touched the thin red cloth strip on his forehead.
"Oh, no, Captain. Open your mind even more. This compulsion that exists
for people to choose only one path or the other—that of the Prophets of the Jalkaree
or of the Pah-wraiths in their prison of fire—it is a deliberate
obstruction of the One True Way."
"And what way would that be?" Sisko asked, wondering if
he would ever truly understand Bajorans and Bajoran belief systems.
Obanak held the edge of his robe like an ancient orator about to
deliver a speech. "Not so long ago, the misguided believed that a
long-prophesied confrontation took place on this very station—the Gateway to
the Temple. Is that not right?"
"The Reckoning," Sisko said. He still had nightmares
about that horrifying event, when a Prophet had inhabited the body of Major
Kira and a Pah-wraith— Kosst Amojan, the Evil One—had taken over the body of
his own son Jake in order to fight an apocalyptic battle between good and evil.
"The Reckoning," Obanak repeated. "First prophesied
twenty-five thousand years ago. Yet what happened?"
"Nothing." Sisko had trusted in the Prophets and had
been prepared to let the battle take place, no matter the personal cost. But
Kai Winn had flooded the Promenade with chroniton particles, creating an imbalance
in space-time and preventing the noncorporeal
entities from remaining within their selected corporeal vessels.
Thus nothing had been resolved.
"Exactly. And nothing is all that will ever occur as long as
the different sides remain in conflict. No progress. No enlightenment. No rest.
And no end."
"I still don't understand," Sisko said. Just what did
this sect of Obanak's believe in or want to have happen for the good of Bajor?
"What is the True Way?"
Obanak beamed at Sisko with an expression of almost transcendental
bliss. "The One True Way is that path which shall be revealed when no
other paths remain to be chosen."
Sisko stared at the monk, mystified. For a moment, he had actually
believed he might be about to learn something new about Bajoran religious
beliefs. But instead, Obanak had responded with a typically obscure
pronouncement so imperfectly defined it might mean anything.
"I see you doubt me," Obanak said.
"I don't understand you," Sisko said truthfully.
"There is a difference."
"Understanding is simple to those whose minds are open,
Captain Sisko. When the Temple is restored, there will be no false paths to
chose from. No False Prophets. No Pah-wraiths. No good. No evil. Simply the one
True Temple. The one True Prophets. And the one True Way to a glorious new
existence beyond this one."
Sisko shook his head. "That sounds just like what was
supposed to happen after the Reckoning."
But Obanak was full of even more surprises. "The
Reckoning," he said sternly, "was a petty conflict between the False
Prophets and the Pah-wraiths of the Fire Caves. The True Way will be revealed
when the
False Prophets and the True Prophets are at last reconciled."
Sisko suddenly realized that Obanak might be referring to a third
group of entities. He hadn't heard any discussion of that possibility
before. "Are you saying that your True Prophets are not the
Pah-wraiths?"
"Pah-wraiths and False Prophets and True prophets... they
are all one and the same, Captain. And in a long-ago time beyond measure, their
home—their Temple—was sundered, and they were driven apart. Some to dwell in
the Jalkaree. Some in the Fire Caves. And some in the Jalbador."
"The Red Orbs," Sisko said with abrupt understanding.
"I beg your pardon?"
"That's why you're here?" Sisko said. "For the Red
Orbs of Jalbador?"
Obanak shook his head. "Captain, really, what do you take me
for? The Red Orbs of Jalbador are a child's bedtime story. They don't exist,
they never have. Don't tell me someone's trying to sell them to you—the
Emissary!"
But before Sisko could say more, he heard loud footsteps in the
corridor, and saw Kira's compact form hurrying toward him, urgency expressed in
every stride.
He called out to her, "What is it, Major?"
"It's O'Brien, sir. He has to see you."
"Why?"
He's found something with the scan."
"What is it?"
"He's refusing to tell anyone but you, sir. All he'll say is
that it's something that just shouldn't be."
CHAPTER 17
"I know all about the
Orb," Jake said.
Jadzia Dax looked up at him from her science station in Ops and
thought again how much Jake reminded her of his father. "I see. And which
Orb would that be?"
Jake leaned in close, dropping his voice to a conspiratorial
whisper. "You know. The one that was stolen from the Cardassians. The one
that Quark's trying to sell. The one that all the smugglers are after."
His eyebrows moved rapidly up and down as if to signal her that he was telling
her something particularly special.
Jadzia found the rather juvenile gesture endearing, and she adored
the feeling it gave her—that she was joining a game in progress. Her love of
play had not been a characteristic of any one of her past hosts more than
another. She shared it equally with all of them,
because after a few centuries of life it had become obvious to the
full series of Dax's hosts that opportunities for fun must be exploited at
every turn. Over the centuries, such opportunities came by far too seldom.
Thus, Jadzia leaned even closer to Jake, made her own whisper even
softer, and attempted to move her eyebrows up and down as he had. "This is
for your novel, right?"
"No," Jake said. "This is for real. I've
figured it all out, Jadzia, but I haven't been able to tell my dad yet. Do you
know where he is?"
Jadzia sat back. Jake wasn't playing a game after all. "You just
missed him. He beamed over to the Defiant."
"Beamed over? Isn't the ship docked?" Jake seemed
troubled by her news.
Jadzia hesitated. She was well aware that Sisko made it a firm
rule to never mislead or lie to his son. But Sisko's present mission was
classified and he had left orders instructing that no one be given details
about what O'Brien and Arla were doing with the Defiant's sensors. So
she compromised. "The Chief's testing some new equipment
modifications," she said, neither lying nor telling the whole truth.
"They're just fifty kilometers out."
"Can I beam over?" Jake asked.
"This wouldn't be a good time. Your dad's really busy."
"I know he is—because of the Orbs and the Cardassians and. .
. well, everything. But I'm trying to help and—"
Jadzia held a hand up to forestall any further mention of the
Orbs as she took a quick look around Ops. Again his father's son, Jake caught
on right away and
waited quietly for her next instruction. Jadzia's cursory visual
sweep of the staff revealed to her that several of them were close enough to be
half paying attention to what Jake was saying. Just in case he was on to
something, she decided, his father's office would be a more prudent location
for the details of whatever it was Jake had discovered.
Discreetly signalling that he follow her, Jadzia ushered Jake
into the turbolift and then escorted him to Sisko's office. The instant the
door had closed behind them, she asked Jake how he knew about the Orb.
"Did your father tell you?"
"No. I figured it out on my own. At least, I figured it out
when I was talking with Nog. I mean, I heard that Vash was supposed to be after
some rare Bajoran artifact. And I figured that the only type of artifact
valuable enough to motivate people to commit murder—well, it had to be an
Orb."
Jadzia sat down on the corner edge of Sisko's desk as she mulled
over what Jake had learned on his own and tried to decide how much she should
reveal to him, in turn.
"Well?" Jake asked. "Am I right?"
Oh, why not? Jadzia thought. Jake's very intelligent. He's even able to work out the
convolutions of Vulcan murder mysteries—the true test of intellect.
Maybe it was time she started thinking of him as an asset to the investigation
and not merely as Sisko's son.
"All right," she said, "let's talk about this.
But," she cautioned the eager youngster, "you can't tell anyone else
what we've discussed except for your father. He'll let you know if you can tell
anyone else. And that means Nog."
Jake nodded vigorously. "So, it is an Orb!"
"Yes and no," Jadzia said. "Vash said it was an
Orb, maybe more than one. Something special called a Red Orb of Jalbador."
"I was right!"
"But," Jadzia added, "Major Kira says the Red Orbs are just a
legend. They don't exist."
Jake looked confused. "Why would Cardassians come to Deep
Space 9 to get back something that doesn't exist?"
"The Cardassians say they are here to claim the bodies Rom
and O'Brien found in the power conduit."
"A cover story," Jake said with a dismissive shake of
his head.
"Maybe so," Jadzia allowed. "I didn't meet with
them. But apparently a delegation of Bajoran monks also came aboard to demand
that the bodies not be turned over, so someone thinks those
bodies are important."
Jake's face took on a faraway look. He stared past her and through
the large viewport behind his father's desk, muttering as if speaking only to
himself. "So there's got to be a connection...."
"Between what and what?"
"The Orbs and the bodies."
Jadzia sighed. A discussion of real facts and logical supposition
was one thing. Making up fairy tales was another. "One major
problem," she said as she eased off the desk and got to her feet.
"The bodies are real, Jake. The Orbs still might not be."
Jake raised a triumphant finger. "Aha! My point exactly. A
minute ago, you said that Major Kira said they didn't exist. But now
you're saying they might not exist. What else aren't you telling
me?"
Jadzia pursed her lips in admiration. The kid had her. "Well,
you're not alone. Julian thinks the Orbs might be real, too."
Jake's shoulders went back and he straightened up to his full,
impressive height. It was almost as if she were watching the actual inflation
of Jake's ego. She could just imagine what he was telling himself—that he, a
mere novice writer, had independently reached the same conclusion as DS9's
genetically enhanced medical genius.
"Before you give yourself the Carrington Award," Jadzia
said drily, "there might be a few more details to consider."
Jake's increased enthusiasm was all too evident to Jadzia. But it
was too late to turn back. She had brought him into the investigation and now
she would have to try to control his participation—for his own sake and hers.
"Like what?" he asked, ready, it seemed, for anything she might ask
of him.
"For one, where's Quark?"
"I've figured that out, too."
Jadzia sat back down, wondering if he had the ability to surprise
her again, and half hoping he could. "Have you now?"
"Sure. My dad knows exactly where he is, or Odo does or
someone like that. Because otherwise, everyone would be looking for him. And
since they're not... I don't know, maybe they're using him for bait to catch
more of the smugglers."
"Sorry to disappoint you," Jadzia said, getting up from
the desk. Jake's ideas were at the predictable level after all. "And
remember you can't talk about this with anyone except your father—but that's
exactly what the Defiant is doing right now: a complete tacti-
cal sweep of the station looking for Quark. And any more of those
hidden sections you and Nog found." "Damn," Jake said. Then
quickly added, "Sorry." Jadzia accepted his apology without letting
him see how sweet she thought he was for offering it. She started walking
toward the door, Jake following her as he recited a list to himself,
"Orbs, Cardassians, bodies, smugglers..."
Jake gave Jadzia an intent look. "As long as I've promised
not to talk about this with anyone else, is there anything else you think I
should know?"
Her hand already on the door, Jadzia paused, considering, then
deciding no harm would likely come from telling him a bit more, she turned back
to face Jake. "There is one other mystery your father's contending with.
And again, it's like the Orbs. It might be real or it might be ... just a
mistaken recollection." "Great," Jake said. "What?"
"Quark claims he can't remember what happened to him on the
Day of Withdrawal. Odo claims he himself was knocked out by a phaser blast and
missed the Withdrawal. And Garak says he remembers every detail, but... it's
pretty clear there're some details he's completely forgotten."
"Whoa," Jake said. "Missing Time Syndrome."
Jadzia laughed. "You know about that, too?" "Yeah, sure, I
wanted to use it in a story some day. About a guy from way back in the
twentieth century or so who gets involved in a Starfleet temporal operation and
finds out about the future, so they wipe his memory, leaving him with Missing
Time Syndrome. And the trick is," Jake said, the words all coming out of
him in an excited rush, "the memory wipe isn't absolutely complete, and
all these memories of the future come bubbling up in him, so he writes them
down as if they're fiction. But they're real. And it's only now, looking back,
that people today realize this guy actually did write about what was going to
happen." He paused expectantly, as if waiting for her reaction.
Jadzia said the first thing that came into her head. "Sounds
like a good children's story."
He frowned. "It's not for children."
Jadzia tried another approach. "The trouble is, the
techniques the Department of Temporal Investigations use are foolproof. When they
wipe a memory, it's gone. It won't even come back as a dream."
But Jake wasn't interested in talking about that story. "I'll
think of some way around it. Tell me more about Quark and Odo and Garak."
"That's everything I know."
Jake clapped his hands. "Doesn't matter. I've got it! On the
Day of Withdrawal, they killed the Cardassians and so ... so the Bajoran
Resistance wiped their memories so if they were ever interrogated, they'd
really believe they were innocent!"
Jadzia put a hand on Jake's shoulder. "It's okay, Jake. This
is real life. Not everything has to fit together that neatly. Sometimes things
happen that just aren't connected to each other."
"Then why are all these things happening at once?" Jake
asked. "There has to be some connection, Jadzia."
"Maybe the only connection is your imagination," Jadzia
said, not wishing to sound condescending but definitely wanting to find some
way to calm Jake down.
But Jake just shook his head, as if he'd just thought of something
important. "No. The connection is the
Andorian. Dal Nortron. His murder is what started
everything."
"If it was a murder." The door slid open and Jadzia
walked out into the small landing. But Jake wasn't behind her. He was still
standing in his father's office, the expression on his young face grim.
"What is it?" Jadzia asked.
"Nothing," Jake said, unconvincingly. He stepped out
into the landing to stand beside her. "Can I see the file on Nortron's
death?"
"That might be pushing research too far, Jake. I think that's
up to Odo, and I doubt if he would approve it."
Jake nodded without protest.
Her interest caught, Jadzia couldn't help asking. "If you did
have access to Nortron's file, what do you think you might find?"
"I don't know," Jake said. "I was just wondering
where exactly his body was found. It's not important."
Jadzia began walking down the stairs with him. "Well, you're
coming up with some good thoughts," she said encouragingly.
"Even if they're wrong." Jake gave her a wry smile which
Jadzia found reassuring, under the circumstances.
They came to the turbolift. She gestured to Jake to enter first.
"The only way we learn is by gaining experience. And the only way we gain
experience is by—"
"—making mistakes," Jake said as he stepped into the
lift. "So at least now I know where my dad got that saying."
Jadzia hid her smile as she joined him. "After three hundred
years, believe me—I've made enough mistakes to know what I'm talking about. As
soon as your father gets back, I'll—"
The sudden scream of a warning siren interrupted her, as at the
same time all the main lights in Ops began flickering.
Jadzia ran from the lift. "Worf, what is it?!"
Worf looked up from his security station, sweat already glistening
within the deep ridges of his forehead. "The main computer has been compromised.
All security subsystems are off-line."
Jadzia rushed for her own station, Jake forgotten behind her.
"What the hell does that mean?" she demanded.
"Only one thing," Worf growled. "It is a prelude to
attack!"
CHAPTER 18
"there," o'brien said. "That's the hidden stretch of
corridor with the holosuite. The one Jake and Nog found."
On the Defiant's main viewer, a small red dot flashed in
the lower section of a three-dimensional wire-frame schematic of Deep Space 9.
Only a third of the station's outline was filled with detailed depictions of
bulkheads and decks, conduits and waveguides, turbolift shafts and structural
support beams. The other two-thirds of the station remained featureless. But
that was to be expected. O'Brien had been conducting his tactical sweep for
only a little more than three hours, and it was still underway.
Sisko watched as another pulsing light joined the first on the
screen, a few decks higher and closer to the station's core. "What about
that?" he asked, pointing to a second red dot. "Over there, two
levels up."
"Ah," the chief said as he rotated the schematic on the
viewer. "That's a deficiency we already knew about. The original plans
called for that section to hold about ten additional living units. But the
Cardassians never got around to finishing them, so they left it as one large
room. The dock management people use it as a storeroom for unclaimed goods. Odo
checks it for contraband every week or so."
A third red dot began flashing. Sisko leaned forward to get a
closer look. "What about that one, Chief?" He tried to place the
third location's features from memory. "Is that the water-recycling
plant?"
"Yes, sir. That's the one I called Major Kira about. That's
the part that just shouldn't be there."
Finally, Sisko
thought. "I need an explanation, Chief."
Sisko watched as O'Brien expanded the schematic of the station
until the viewer displayed a section only three decks tall, the third red dot
now an irregular rectangle pulsing precisely where a network of pipes seemed
to come to an end.
"Well, first off, sir, it is the water plant. I'm in
there at least once a month for inspection. I know the specifications of all
the pipes, the filters, the evaporators. And after six years of me crawling all
over this station, well, if there were a single deviation or deficiency from
the schematics, I'd know about it. And I can vouch for that whole section being
spot on to the Cardassians' original plans." O'Brien paused to qualify
his statement. "Of course, it does have documented upgrades from when the
Starfleet Corps of Engineers rebuilt it three years ago. But I can vouch for
those, too."
"So," Sisko said, "if you know that the physical
lay-
out of the water plant is in perfect agreement with the Cardassian
schematics, then why is that flashing light saying the two patterns don't
match?"
"Because they don't, sir."
Sisko turned to regard his chief engineer with growing
impatience. He was vaguely aware of Commander Arla standing nearby, but the
young Bajoran officer was wisely choosing to observe, not take part.
"You're confusing me, Chief," Sisko said. "And I
don't like to be confused." But from the look he now saw on O'Brien's
flushed, red face, it was clear that the engineer was as mystified as he.
"Sir, according to the tactical sensor sweep I've conducted,
DS9's water treatment facility no longer even exists. Somehow, and don't ask me
how, it's turned into a large, empty room. And that's why the red light's
flashing."
"Correct me if I'm wrong, Chief, but if the water plant had
truly disappeared, shouldn't we know about it?"
"Oh, we'd know about it," O'Brien said, perplexed.
"We'd have a thousand calls in from the habitat ring about no running
water. We'd have transporter venting of all the water being spilled into the
plant from the severed pipes. The whole station would look to be floating in a
cloud of ice crystals."
"And since it's not... ?"
"Someone's got to be running a sensor mask in the treatment
facility," O'Brien concluded with a frustrated frown. "Something
small, tightly focused, no appreciable power signature. Intended, I'd say, to
defeat any tricorders being used to conduct a search. A tricorder that
encountered that mask wouldn't register that anything was trying to jam its
sensors. All it would show is that there was nothing in the room."
"In other words, that's where Quark is."
"Frankly, Captain," O'Brien said, "there could be a
hundred Jem'Hadar hiding behind that thing and we'd be the last to know about
it."
That was all Sisko needed to hear. He activated his communicator.
"Mr. Worf, we have a probable target. Prepare transporter suppression
fields and arm the anesthezine dispensers for the following coordinates."
Sisko recited four groups of digits, each correspond-ing to a
specific location's deck, ring, corridor, and door number in DS9. But each
number was offset by a different, predetermined amount, so that anyone
listen-ing in to his transmission would not be able to determine Sisko's real
target. Only Worf had the key to the code, and his reply, as usual, was to the point.
"Understood. Implementing security measures. I will beam you
to the perimeter of the location."
"No," Sisko said. He wasn't looking forward to any type
of violent encounter around the equipment that supplied water to the station.
"The Chief and I will beam to Ops. We'll leave from there with a full security
team."
"Excuse me," Arla said. "You're leaving me
here?"
Sisko didn't even glance at the Bajoran commander as he replied.
"Regulations don't permit me to completely abandon a ship."
"But... I'm not rated for this class of ship. Not on my
own."
Arla's qualifications or lack thereof were not one of Sisko's
priorities right now. "Commander, trust me, all you have to do is sit. As
soon as we're finished on the station, I'll have a crew beamed out." Sisko
didn't understand why the young Bajoran officer was so troubled by the
prospect of being alone on the Defiant.
Most people in Starfleet dreamed of a chance to be the only person
on a Starship. It was a powerful experience, Sisko knew, to be the sole person
in the presence of so much power and potential. But perhaps Arla Rees was
better suited to flying a desk.
"Yes, sir," she said and made her way quickly toward the
lone flight operations chair as if she expected the artificial gravity to cut
out at any second.
Arla's disappointing reaction to opportunity slipped from Sisko's
thoughts almost immediately. He was anxious to get moving. "Status, Mr.
Worf?"
"Anesthezine systems are on-line. I am now reconfiguring the
interior security fields to—"
A high-pitched squeal blared from Sisko's communicator.
Sisko hit his communicator twice to reset it, tried opening a
frequency again, and got nothing. In an instant he was on his way to the Defiant's
communications console, even as O'Brien scrambled to the tactical
station.
It took only seconds for Sisko to see that all of DS9's
communications arrays were dead: No carrier waves. No navigation beacons. No
subspace repeater signals.
Sisko turned to face O'Brien. "Report!"
The chief didn't take his eyes off the madly flashing tactical
displays he studied. "I have no idea what's going on. Massive power
fluctuations. All external and internal communications are down. They're
on emergency lighting, life-support, gravity .. . unless a quantum torpedo
hit Ops dead center, I'd say we're looking at a total computer failure."
The screens stopped flashing. O'Brien looked stunned. "Sir, there's not a
single automated system operating on the station. It's as if the computer's
disappeared."
"This is not a coincidence," Sisko said angrily.
"Worf was adjusting the security fields. They were waiting for us to make
our move."
"Who was?" O'Brien asked.
"Whoever's got Quark. Whoever put up that sensor mask so we
can't see what's behind it. But they couldn't know we'd be on the Defiant."
Sisko rushed back to the auxiliary engineering console. "Chief! We
need to shut down the Defiant's computers."
"What?!" O'Brien and Arla said it together.
"If the station's computer has been infected by a programming
virus, or some type of disruptive radiation, the Defiant's computers
might be vulnerable, too. Let's move it!"
With O'Brien at his side, Sisko transformed the Defiant into
little more than an inert chunk of dead mass within two minutes.
"Now what?" O'Brien asked.
"Now we're beaming directly to the water plant. Or, at least
to the edge of that sensor mask."
Sisko saw O'Brien glance over at Arla, who was staring at the
screen in front of her. Her olive-gold face was pale, her mouth hung slightly
open. "Captain," the chief said, "I think I should stay here and
keep the ship under manual control."
"I need you on DS9," Sisko said. That was the end of the
argument. "Commander Arla, you are going to drift. But as long as
you're moving away from the station, there's nothing you have to do."
Arla's words were rasping as if her throat were bone dry.
"What... what if I do start drifting toward the station?"
"Use the docking thrusters to alter your trajectory,"
Sisko said sharply. He wondered how he had thought
just a short time earlier that Arla was exactly the kind of
officer material that Starfleet needed more of. The young Bajoran was not
behaving as if she were even worthy of the command rank she now possessed.
"Just don't try to reverse course," O'Brien added.
"With the impulse engines powered down, you don't have enough thruster
propellant to manage it."
Arla's nod was hesitant. Incredibly, it seemed to Sisko she could
not even control her appearance of nervousness. "And... if I'm heading
for the wormhole?"
"It's going to take you a couple of hours to drift that
far," Sisko said, trying to sound reassuring, when all he wanted to do was
shout at her to pull herself together. "This'll be over by then."
"Captain," O'Brien suddenly suggested, "what if I
just set a course for her now? Steer her away from the station and the
wormhole. Only take a minute."
But Sisko shook his head. O'Brien was a good man, but he was
needed elsewhere. "If there's anyone on that station keeping track of this
ship, I don't want them to see Commander Arla changing course, because that
will make her a target. I want them to think she's either disabled or
abandoned. Commander—you have the conn. I suggest you sit back and enjoy the
ride."
Then Sisko headed at double speed for the main doors and O'Brien
followed just as quickly.
The Defiant was a compact ship, designed for the efficient
movement of information and personnel in battle. It took only seconds to run
down the corridor and reach the closer of the ship's two transporter rooms.
Sisko pushed through the doors before they had finished opening
and headed directly for the equipment
locker. "Set the coordinates, Chief. I'll get the
phasers."
"Not rifles!" O'Brien warned as he entered beaming
coordinates on the console. "None of the pipes in the water plant is
shielded. Take hand phasers and don't set them for anything higher than force
three. Otherwise, one miss and we'll all be swimming."
Sisko knew better than to question O'Brien's technical expertise.
But he took four hand phasers along with two tricorders. One phaser he attached
to the holster strips on his uniform along with a tricorder. One he held in his
hand. And the other two phasers he handed to O'Brien, along with the second
tricorder, the moment his chief engineer joined him on the transporter pad.
O'Brien attached one of the phasers to his own holster strips.
"We'll materialize just to the side of the equipment transfer doors
leading into the main treatment room," he told Sisko. "And brace
yourself, sir. I don't know what the gravity's going to be like."
Then Sisko felt a momentary tingle Like that of a cool breeze, as
the Defiant's transporter room turned into a spray of sparkling light.
Almost immediately, the light faded to reveal a dark corridor ribbed and ringed
by Cardassian struts. He and O'Brien had returned to Deep Space 9.
It took a few disorienting moments, and slippage of more than a
few centimeters, before Sisko's inner ear caught up to the fact that the deck
was slanted by four or five degrees. For his part, O'Brien made a series of
small jumps, rising up from the deck only a centimeter or two each time. Trust
the chief to come up with his own way to measure an artificial gravity field, Sisko
thought.
"Okay, not that bad," the chief engineer said, confirming
Sisko's guess about the reason for his impromptu athletic performance.
"The station's gone to emergency gravity, and I'm guessing the old units
in section 3 are barely holding on at fifty percent efficiency."
"What can we expect if they fail?" Sisko asked, phaser
held ready as he made sure the short stretch of corridor was deserted.
"If the old units shut down all at once, it'll feel like the
station's suddenly lurched a few more degrees."
Sisko didn't like the image. "Like an old sinking ship."
"At least we won't drown," O'Brien said. He looked at
the closed doors to the water treatment facility. "I hope."
Sisko frowned, tapped his communicator. "Sisko to Worf."
No response. "Sisko to Ops." Still nothing.
There was no time to waste. Sisko moved cautiously along the
slanted corridor to the edge of the oversize water-plant doors. They had been
designed to allow large pieces of equipment to be moved in and out, so they and
the corridor ceiling were twice the height of most other similar structures in
the station.
Sisko flipped open his tricorder and scanned through the doors for
life-signs. But the readings indicated there were no life-forms in the
facility.
He flipped the device shut and put it back on its holster strip.
"I don't know what to expect in there," Sisko said in a low voice,
"but since we're only using heavy stun, feel free to shoot first and ask
questions later."
O'Brien gave a quiet chuckle. "Careful, sir, you're starting
to sound like Worf."
Sisko tapped the door control.
The doors to the water plant remained closed.
Sisko tapped in his command override code.
This time the doors opened.
Then Sisko and O'Brien both moaned at the same time as the
overwhelming stench of raw sewage enveloped them.
Sisko blocked his nostrils with one hand, but his action did
nothing to diminish the awful smell.
"Must have been quite a spill when the gravity generators
switched over to the back-ups," O'Brien coughed. "We should get used
to it in a few minutes."
Sisko had to force himself to open his mouth to speak. "You
have such a way of looking on the bright side of things."
Sisko led the way into the huge facility—one of the largest open
spaces in DS9. It was three decks high, forty meters deep, fifty wide, filled
with a maze of pipes, metal vats, and overhead walkways.
It also reverberated with the deafening roar of rushing water.
Sisko hadn't been down here for years, but he didn't remember it
being so loud. He stepped closer to O'Brien so the chief could hear him.
"Is it supposed to sound like this?" he shouted.
O'Brien nodded, then shouted back. "The sound bafflers must
be off-line, or—" Abruptly, the chief engineer pointed up to the left.
"Captain, over there!"
Sisko saw what he meant at once.
What appeared to be a silver flower had sprouted on the top of a
five-meter-tall vat of dull, copper-colored metal emblazoned with a Cardassian
warning glyph. The 'flower' was perhaps a meter across, with three pulsing blue
lights on the tip of each of its five gleaming petals.
It was not Cardassian technology. Neither was it Starfleet.
"The sensor mask?" Sisko asked.
"That's my guess," O'Brien confirmed, then he took aim
with his phaser.
Sisko could only hope that a force-three setting would be enough
to overload whatever the alien device used for circuitry. Any phaser blast more
powerful would risk puncturing the vat.
"Here goes," O'Brien said.
Then an object flashed through the air. O'Brien grunted as
something hit his arm and his phaser went flying. Spun around by the impact, he
collided full force with Sisko.
Sisko staggered back. Without stopping to think, he pulled O'Brien
into the shelter of an immense pipe that emerged from the deck and curved away
overhead. Pushing the chief down to a sitting position against the pipe, Sisko
immediately reached out to examine O'Brien's arm.
"Careful," the chief gasped. The sleeve of his black
jumpsuit was wet with blood where a slender gold dagger, a kind Sisko had never
seen before, impaled the chief's forearm. A rivulet of blood was dripping from
his cuff.
The golden blade was edged with a series of angled barbs, making
for easy penetration but near-impossible extraction. Sisko kneeled down and
leaned closer. He yelled directly into the chief's ear to be heard over the
thunderous roar of the water. "I'm not going to be able to pull that
out."
O'Brien nodded, sweat mingling with tears of pain on his cheeks.
"It's going numb," he murmured weakly, and Sisko was only able to
understand him by
reading his lips. He knew at once the blade had to have been
coated with some type of poison.
"Chief—I'm going to take out the sensor mask," Sisko
shouted. "Keep trying to get through to Worf on your communicator."
He didn't like the way O'Brien looked Wearily at him then, as if
the engineer didn't believe that Worf was ever going to appear, or that he'd
still be alive when Worf did.
"I'll—come—back—for—you," Sisko shouted, emphasizing
each word as if that made his promise more valid.
Silently, O'Brien mouthed his response, "I know you
will...." And then the engineer's head slumped forward, eyes closed.
Filled with furious purpose, Sisko leapt to his feet, edged around
the pipe until he could just see the silver blossom of the sensor mask emitter
against the dark edge of the vat.
With the tracking precision of the Defiant's sensors, he
checked each catwalk, each potential hiding place for the enemy. But there were
too many shadows, too many dark corners. He realized there was no way he could
know where a potential enemy was hiding until a knife struck him just as it had
the chief.
Sisko frowned. That particular choice of weapon troubled him. Why
a knife? One phaser burst and the chief would have been killed. One wide burst,
and we 'd both have been stunned.
Again he used the tricorder to scan for life-signs, but it was
useless. This close to the emitter its displays flashed erratically.
Sisko made his decision. He set his phaser to force
six, medium dispersal. There was no time to take careful aim at
the emitter as the chief had done.
He swung out and fired at once, ducking back behind the pipe even
as a dagger clanged against it. The sensor mask emitter exploded in a shower of
translator sparks. The sensor mask was down.
Breathing hard, but feeling victorious, Sisko leaned back against
the pipe, tried his communicator again. No response. But it didn't matter.
Sisko knew that as soon as Worf was able to restore emergency communications
in Ops, he'd be able to get through.
Suddenly, the thick odor of sewage intensified. Involuntarily
gagging, Sisko stuck his head out to take a quick glance around the pipe and
saw a gout of dark water spraying from the top edge of the vat where the sensor
mask emitter had been. His phaser blast had obviously punctured the vat wall.
And the vat had to be a waste separator, designed to send liquids to the
recycling evaporators and solids to the replicator mass reclaimers.
Only now, both liquids and solids were splattering down on the
metal deck of the facility, and because of the imbalance in the artificial
gravity fields, the odifer-ous sludge from the vat was oozing toward the back
of the cavernous water-plant room.
In a vain attempt to shield himself from the terrible smell, Sisko
pulled the neck of his duty shirt up over his mouth and his nose. He had to
keep going. At least now he knew where to go.
And with the emitter gone, his tricorder should be functional
again. Sisko checked its display. It was. There were two life-signs twenty
meters ahead.
Still keeping to the cover of the pipes, Sisko headed
in the direction of the indicated life-signs, not certain what he
was looking for.
But what he found wasn't surprising.
Quark.
In chains.
Hanging head down.
Over an open collection tank filled to the brim with dark,
bubbling sludge.
Quark's hands were tied behind his back and thick black wires were
cruelly clipped to the edges of his prodigious ears.
And the only way Sisko was able to tell that the Ferengi was even
alive was because the tricorder said he was.
Sisko checked the reading again. "Damn," he whispered.
One of the two life-signs had disappeared. Now there was only one—Quark. The
other had moved out of range, or else had—
Pain seared Sisko's back as he was thrown forward to the slippery
deck, his phaser and tricorder both tumbling away.
Throwing off the shock of the attack, Sisko rolled to his feet,
leaping up to face whatever, whoever, had felled him.
An Andorian female. Three meters away. Crouched in fight-ready
position, the stark-blue tendrils of her antennae jutting from her distinctive
blue-white, Vulcan-short hair. In one blue hand, she held a golden dagger like
the one that injured O'Brien.
His attacker was one of the two sisters Odo had been watching. But
which sister, Sisko didn't know.
The Andorian moved closer, hypnotically waving her dagger in
circles, her dark, blue-rimmed eyes
absolutely fixed on his own. Sisko could see muscles ripple in her
bare blue arms and midriff. She was dressed more for a workout in a zero-G gym
than she was for any trade mission, wearing only a snug black leather vest,
black leggings, and low-cut gripshoes.
A spasm twisted Sisko's back where the Andorian had kicked him.
The fact she hadn't stabbed him as she had O'Brien meant she didn't consider
him a worthy opponent. She intended to toy with him.
But Sisko was in no mood to be toyed with.
He slapped his hand down to his second phaser, ripped it from its
holster strips, and—even as the Andorian launched herself at him with an
ear-splitting shriek—fired point-blank.
She collapsed at his feet, her eyes rolled back, her body
unmoving.
Sisko kicked the dagger from her limp hand, then twisted her over
on her back to keep her nose and mouth clear of the sewage whose level was
still rising. The movement of her chest attested to the fact that she was still
breathing.
Sisko checked to be sure she had no other weapons, then started
for Quark, who was still trussed and helpless, suspended from the ceiling.
Quark's mouth was moving at warp ten, but saying nothing Sisko
could hear above the increasing din in the vast chamber. Sisko muttered to
himself as he studied the chains from which the Ferengi dangled over the
sludge tank. "Quark, I don't know what you did to those people, but—"
Sisko stopped suddenly, remembering. People. And he whirled around just
in time to be thrown against the sludge tank, as the second Andorian sister's
hand stabbed at his neck.
This Andorian female was even more threatening than her sibling.
While only slightly taller, she was much, much stronger. She wore almost the
same outfit as her sister, but her long blue-white hair was pulled back tightly
and braided, and the smooth blue skin of her left arm was intricately tattooed
in black from wrist to shoulder.
With a shriek even louder than her sister's, she launched herself
at Sisko before he had a chance to regain his balance.
Sisko tried to feint sideways, but stumbled.
The Andorian changed her angle of approach in midair, transferring
her momentum into a spinning high kick that struck Sisko's shoulder, knocking
him back against the edge of the sludge tank, so that his arm fell back into
it.
Then the Andorian dropped to one knee beside Sisko, raised her
hand to deliver a lethal punch-down blow to his chest.
But Sisko summoned all of his strength to fling his arm up,
splashing raw sewage in her eyes.
The Andorian screamed as she shrank back from him, her hands
clawing at her face.
Sisko twisted away, swinging one of his legs under hers, tripping
her, so that she fell to the deck.
Ignoring his still-twinging back, he staggered to his feet.
In a heartbeat, the Andorian's body flexed powerfully, and she
was once again standing upright before him, her blazing, dark eyes intent on
revenge.
Sisko reached for his phaser, but it was gone.
The Andorian threw herself at him.
Instinctively, Sisko tucked and rolled toward her, forcing
contact before she had anticipated.
He lost his breath in one explosive moment as her foot slammed
into his ribs, but then the pressure was gone and he looked up, gasping, in
time to see her flailing form flip over him and land in the sewage tank
ejecting a fountain of disgusting liquid that struck and soaked Quark as
precisely as if the Ferengi had been its chosen target.
Slowly, clutching his side, Sisko struggled to his feet, trying
not to laugh because it hurt too much as Quark maniacally spun and sputtered
and sprayed droplets of a dark substance whose origin was too terrible for
Sisko even to contemplate.
"Calm down, Quark," Sisko finally managed to shout.
"I'll get you down."
Quark screamed something indecipherable—two words? Sisko couldn't
be sure. But the Ferengi was shaking and swinging back and forth on his chains,
clearly panicked by something. Probably the fear of falling into the sludge
tank, Sisko decided.
"What?" Sisko called up to Quark. The Ferengi's neck veins were now
bulging as Quark screeched again. But it was impossible to hear him over the
incessant rush and roar of the liquids in the pipes all around.
The second Andorian sister was trying to pull herself toward the
edge of the tank, to drag herself out. She was moving so slowly, Sisko doubted
she'd cause him any more trouble. He decided to leave Quark to Worf's security staff,
and instead to go back to get O'Brien and deliver him to the Infirmary. Quark
might be uncomfortable but he wasn't in any danger now.
He looked up to wave at Quark to somehow signal him that someone
would come back for him, when he
finally realized that the Ferengi wasn't looking at him, but at
something beyond him.
With a sudden flash of alarm, Sisko turned about.
A moment too late.
A black shape enveloped him like a tidal wave sinking a ship, and
the roar of the room fell away into silence as he drowned in a sea of darkness.
CHAPTER 19
"behind you," Quark muttered as Benjamin Sisko collapsed
on the filthy deck of the din-filled water-plant room. "I was trying to
say, behind you...."
But, as usual to Quark's view of things, no one ever paid him any
attention until it was too late.
And it was much too late for Sisko, just as it was too late for
those ghastly Andorian sisters.
Quark had absolutely no idea who it was who had struck Sisko down.
All he knew was that Sisko's attacker was outfitted in a shiny black, wrinkled,
class-two environmental suit, one designed to operate within normal
life-support pressure and temperature ranges, and that such a garment was worn
usually to protect against biological or chemical contamination. Knowing this
did not make Quark feel any better.
Or smell better, Quark thought bitterly. Ever since something had happened to
momentarily interrupt the
station's gravity fields a few minutes ago, the water treatment
facility had begun to stink worse that he most likely did, thanks to that
clumsy Andorian female and her spectacular fall into the sludge vat. In fact,
now that he thought about it, this place smelled even worse than a Medusan
moulting pit.
Quark hung motionless in his chains, shutting out the cacophony of
the incessant sound of rushing liquid, regarding the floor and the latest
interloper, as he stoked his internal fires of resentment. Trust the Cardassians
to economize by treating waste water in a centralized location, instead of
using personal recy-clers. I mean, Quark thought indignantly, there's
an understandable desire for profit, and then there's being obsessed by it. And
right now, suffering the disastrous olfactory consequences arising from the
imbe-cilic decision of whichever Cardassian genius thought he'd save some
latinum on Terok Nor's waste-recycling system, he himself would actually be
willing to trade a year's worth of profits from his bar for just one last
lungful of fresh air before the stranger in black killed him as he had just
killed DS9's chief executive.
Quark reconsidered the odds. After all, this close to the
wormhole, one could never be too certain which prayers were going to be
answered. Better make that six months' worth, Quark amended as he saw
Sisko's murderer heading toward him, toward the sludge vat above which he
dangled helpless, head first, and beside which Satr now lay, recovering her
breath after climbing out of the vat.
Of the two sisters, Quark remembered thinking when he had first
met them that Satr was the cute one. And that the other, Leen, was the smart
one. But incredible though it now seemed to him, he had been
willing to overlook that classic character flaw in a female.
Instead, he had stupidly looked forward to seeing how long he might be able to
prolong negotiations with both Satr and Leen. He'd been in the bartending
business long enough to have heard what they said about females with blue skin.
And the chance to feel four female Andorian hands on his lobes at the same time
had always been a little fantasy of his.
But then Dal Nortron had gone and got himself killed and spoiled
everything—he'd had to avoid the sisters instead of cultivating them. Before
long Odo had him in protective custody, and then had arrested him, only
to let him go just in time to be waylaid by that miserable excuse for a
Ferengi—Base. And all to be dragged down here to meet Satr and Leen again.
Quark moaned just recalling the degrading treatment he'd been
subjected to. His head hurt like the devil, and it wasn't simply because he had
been left hanging by his heels like a Mongonian eelbat for the past day and
half.
He'd been a perfect gentlemen with those two Andorian monsters.
Even after that ingrate Base had dragged him in a sack through the smugglers'
tunnels and dumped him out in front of Satr and Leen, he'd made the two sisters
a completely reasonable request in his most charming manner. Something along
the lines of: "Ladies, such a pleasure to see you again. Is it time to do
some ... business?"
Satr's reply had involved a sharp elbow in his stomach, and Leen
had trussed him up in chains like the Friday night special at the Klingon Cafe.
It was then that Quark knew for certain that he had been betrayed by them and
Base.
Base. The name should have warned him. The little
insect had come into Quark's back office and launched into his
oh-so-sincere sales pitch, about how he wanted to protect his investment in the
Orbs, how he wanted to make sure Quark stayed safe before, during, and after
the auction, how he planned to take care of Satr and Leen personally—and for
only an extra eighteen percent of Quark's commission on the auction proceeds.
That percentage had been so out of line that Quark had actually
spent twenty minutes negotiating a reduction, never once questioning why it
was that Base should be on his side for eighteen percent, when the little gnat
could kill him and have a shot at the full one hundred percent.
They had settled on nine-and-a-half. Plus Base could keep half the
tips all the bar's wait staff earned during the days he replaced Quark as
barkeep. In the meantime, Quark would be safe behind a sensor mask where no one
could find him.
And worst of all, in Quark's recollection, was that the entire
deal had been negotiated in front of his own idiot brother. Base had set the
whole thing up so that when Quark disappeared, Rom would dimwittedly think that
was part of the plan and would not be concerned. No one would be
concerned.
As if anyone would anyway, Quark thought with a self-pitying half-sob.
And then, even more humiliating to recall, that conniving Base
convinced him to put himself into the sack with an antigrav ballast, supposedly
so he could be taken to a safe place deep within the station.
"Why the sack?" he remembered asking Base.
"For a stinkin' nine-and-a-half points," that little
vole had squeaked persuasively, "no way you're going
to find out about the perfect hiding place I figured out. But for
twelve and-a-half...."
It had been the perfect argument. No hiding place on the station
was worth an extra three percent, and like a targ to the Klingon wedding
feast, Quark had climbed willingly into the sack, hugging the antigrav, until
Base tossed him out on the deck of the water-plant room—and the four female
Andorian hands went to work on him in a terrible travesty of his fantasy.
Now, suspended directly above a dark substance which was as good a
metaphor for his life as any, Quark mulled over those he considered his enemies
as if he were fingering a pocketful of well-worn worry stones.
First, Rom, his idiot brother who betrayed him by letting that
half-sized, half-son-of-a-Klingon into Quark's bar in the first place. Second,
Base. Third and fourth, Leen and—
Quark saw the black-suited figure below draw a small phaser and
shoot Satr with a soundless flash of energy, then splash through the
sludge-strewn deck to dispatch Leen next.
Wincing in commiseration for their bad luck, Quark amended his
list of enemies, at the same time wondering where the Andorian sisters had
hidden their latinum. It would be quite a tidy sum for someone fortunate
enough to find it.
But not for him. His own luck, no matter how poor it had been, had
obviously run out. It was his turn now.
The black figure, face completely obscured by a wrinkled black
hood and a full-face breathing mask, looked up at Quark, then adjusted the
small phaser's setting and took careful aim.
Even though he was resigned to his fate and deter-
mined to face it as a rational being, Quark instinctively reached
back to his childhood lessons from the weekly Celestial Market classes his
loving parents had forced him to attend. Trying not to breathe in any more of
the noxious fumes that he had to, he reflexively mumbled the Ferengi prayer
that was his people's traditional ward against impending disaster. "All
right, this is my final offer...."
But the shooter below was in no mood to negotiate.
He fired.
In one timeless instant, Quark realized that the shooter's beam
wasn't aimed at him but at the chain that bound his feet.
A second timeless instant later, as he felt his stomach fall up
toward his knees, Quark dropped—the chains melted through—straight
into the bubbling vat of—
"Frinx!" Quark gasped, as a strong hand grabbed him just before he hit the
liquid sewage.
Still in midair, he kicked wildly to be free of what was left of
the chains still loosely draped around his ankles.
The figure in black deposited him on the deck, standing upright on
his own two feet, right beside the motionless body of poor Captain Sisko.
Quark opened his mouth and let loose with a string of invective in
the Trading Tongue such that his moogie would have scrubbed out his mouth with
carapace gel if she had heard a single syllable—swearing like a philanthropist
his moogie would call it. Not that anyone could hear him in the roar of the
outflow from the system pipes.
The figure in black regarded him impassively, then seemed to come
to a decision, stepped back and pulled off his breather mask.
Just as Quark bravely barked out, "I don't care who the greeb
you are. If you're going to shoot me like the rest of them, go ahead—kill
me and be done with it." He realized that once again—big surprise—the
Choir of Celestial Accountants had been braying his name in jest.
The murderer wasn't male.
He was a female.
Vash.
She delicately wrinkled her button-like human nose at the stench of
the place, then yelled out the sweetest words Quark had ever heard—not that
he'd ever admit that to her. "Is that any way to talk to your new partner?"
"Just what I need," Quark muttered as he looked at the
sprawled bodies of Satr and Leen. "Another new partner.. . ."
Then relief flooded through him. Vash was no murderer. The odds were very good
that both Andorians were only heavily stunned, not dead.
Vash snapped her breather back into place, then motioned for Quark
to follow her.
But much as he wanted to get out of this foul pit, there was
something Quark had to do first. He reached down and got a good grip on Captain
Sisko's jacket to drag the unconscious hew-mon toward an open metal
staircase beside the sludge vat.
When Vash saw what he was doing, she tried to pull him away, but
Quark refused to let go of Sisko. Maybe Satr and Leen deserved to remain in the
muck where they fell, and maybe the captain wasn't the best friend a Ferengi
barkeep ever had, but Quark wasn't about to leave him to drown in such an
undignified fashion.
With Vash's reluctant assistance,
Quark hoisted
Sisko up on a platform on the staircase, well above the steadily
rising sewage.
Motioning to Quark to follow her across the room to the exit, Vash
turned to look back at him, pulling aside her breathing mask long enough to
shout, "I don't get it, Quark—what did he ever do for you?"
Breathing heavily as he dragged his boots through the disgusting
deck debris—the hew-mon had been surprisingly heavy, and Quark's body
was still telling him how badly abused it had been by its hanging ordeal—Quark
looked back down at Sisko. "Nothing," he said, out of earshot of
Vash. She'd never understand anyway. Not that anyone else ever had. Or ever
would. "But he never did anything to me, either."
Even without looking at Vash, he could feel her suspicion, and he
could almost hear her thinking, How could she trust someone who went out of his
way to help a Starfleet officer?
Quark wearily cupped a hand to his mouth and yelled ahead to her,
as he shook something unmentionable off his foot, "He owes me
money!" The terrible thing was, he knew, that there had to be easier ways
to earn latinum. But the even worse thing was that, all other things being
equal, he hadn't found it. Yet.
"Stay still and keep your eyes closed," Vash told him.
In the dimly lit kitchen at the back of his bar, Quark did as he
was told. "If you only knew how many times I imagined you saying those
words to me," he murmured. Then he heard a frothy hissing noise and was
suddenly engulfed in a thick foam. He started to protest, but the
medicinal-smelling lather bubbled into his mouth the moment he tried to speak.
"And keep your mouth shut!" Vash snapped.
Quark suddenly felt cold. He started to shiver. As he did, he felt
the foam begin to drop off him in clumps.
When his face felt free of bubbles, he risked opening one eye.
Then the other.
Vash was in front of him, kicking off the last of her
environmental suit, a large, carryall duffel bag beside her, along with a
pressurized tank and nozzle, dripping foam. Quark could see that portions of
her protective suit were covered in rapidly evaporating bubbles as well.
And then he realized with delight that the dreadful stench of the
raw sewage was gone. "What is that foam?" He looked down at
his suit jacket. It was still wet, but there wasn't a single stain on it.
Neither was there any muck on his boots or on the floor beneath them.
Vash leaned back against an inductor stove with a sigh. "A
cleansing agent from Troyius. Their pherom-onal systems are so volatile, they
need something that will break down all organic waste completely and
instantly—otherwise, they couldn't leave their planet."
"Well, that's fantastic" Quark said admiringly.
"Tell me, do they have a good distribution network?"
Vash gave him an odd, measuring look. "Oh, it's not what
you'd call a perfect product. There are a few drawbacks."
"Really." Quark grinned. Anything that could eradicate
all traces of what he had just been through smelled like pure latinum to him.
"I can't imagine what they'd be."
"That suit of yours—replicated from synthetics?" Vash
asked, curious. "Or is it natural?"
Stung by the insult, Quark smoothed the multicol-
ored fabric of his snug, tapestry jacket. "I am a successful
businessman. Of course, all my suits are natural fiber."
Vash smiled. "You sure?"
Quark glanced down. "AAAAAA!" His jacket and
trousers were in the process of melting, consumed by the same polyenzymic
action that had neutralized the sewage.
The last curling streamers of his suit flickered out of existence
just as he ducked for cover behind a food locker. Quark found himself facing
the bulkhead whose small access door led to the unmapped tunnel through which
he and Vash had escaped from the water plant.
Leaning out from behind the locker, ears flushed, as naked as a
female in public, Quark blustered, "Well, don't just stand there, woman!
Get me something to wear!"
Vash looked up at the lighting panels on the kitchen ceiling. They
were dark. Only the emergency glow-strips on the walls were operating.
"Bad timing, Quark. My guess is there's some trouble on the station. I
don't think Garak's will be open."
Quark pointed imperiously to the locker behind her. "The
locker by the door! Staff uniforms!"
Vash stuck her head in the locker and brought out a clothes holder
with a few wispy strands of glitter cloth. "Not your size," she
smirked, "but it'll bring out the yellow in your eyes."
Quark fumed. "That's a dabo costume. Give me a waiter's
suit!"
"Oh, come on," Vash said as peeked at him through the
almost transparent cloth. "You wear something like this, I might stay at
the dabo table all night."
Quark couldn't help himself. "Really?" He ran the
calculations comparing how much someone could lose at dabo in a single night
against the irreparable loss of his self-esteem. It was a close call. As the
189th Rule had it: Let others keep their reputation, you keep their latinum.
Maybe he had been hasty when he stopped having Female Nights at the bar. Even
though Rom had put up such a fuss over wearing a dress the last time....
"I'll take it under advisement," Quark said thoughtfully.
"But now, a waiter's suit?"
Vash pulled one out of the locker and handed it over to Quark,
making a show of covering her eyes. "Don't worry, I won't look," she
said. "I just ate."
The pale-green jacket, brocade vest, and ruksilk shirt were
too large, the trousers were too long, and the boots were so large they were
almost unwearable. All in all, the lamentably unfashionable outfit reminded
Quark of his years as a cabin boy on the old Ferengi freighter, the Latinum
Queen. But it would do for now. It had to.
Decently covered, Quark emerged from behind the food locker, his
steps necessarily mincing because of the unseen oversized shoes beneath the
overlong trousers. "Now what did you say happened to the station?"
Vash looked him up and down with a broad grin as she hefted her
strap-on carryall over her shoulder. But she merely opened the door leading to
the main-level room of the bar without commenting on his appearance.
The room beyond was dark, but the light from the kitchen in which
Quark and Vash stood revealed several overturned chairs, as if customers had
run out of
the bar in a hurry. There were still drinks and dishes on the
tables.
Quark stepped into the bar. He picked up a glass, sniffed it.
Groaned. It had held a Deltan-on-the-Beach cocktail with a full measure of
triple-proof Romulan ale. Was Rom trying to ruin him?
"Satr and Leen rigged a Pakled sensor mask in the water
plant," Vash now told him, "so that if anyone went searching for you,
you and they wouldn't show up as lifesigns on anyone's tricorders."
Quark looked around his bar. It looked to him as if it had been
hit by something much more powerful than a sensor mask. "And that's not
all they arranged," Vash said as she walked past him to open the closed
doors of the bar.
Quark sighed. At least his idiot brother had remembered to lock
up. Not that it mattered. Beyond the doors, the Promenade, lit only by
emergency strips like his bar, looked deserted.
"I'm listening," Quark said, squinting to see what was
in the shadows at the end of the bar, and frowning when he did.
"They also slipped a programming worm into the station's
computer system," Vash said, turning to reclose the doors to the bar.
"Is that possible?" Quark began walking to the end of
the bar.
"A little something they picked up on Bynaus," Vash said
as she turned away from the door. "Until the worm detected someone setting
up security screens around the water plant, trying to contain the area, the
worm was dormant. The bad new is, once it was triggered, it reproduced so
quickly it used up all available processing space. All the automatic systems
locked up.
They'd have needed a cold start to reset all the computers. The
good news is there's no permanent harm done. DS9 should be up and running in
about ten minutes or so."
"Good," Quark said, reaching out to touch what he had
noticed in the bar's shadows. "I'd like to see Satr and Leen talk their
way out of Odo's cell this time."
Vash's voice suddenly became tense. "Is someone at the
bar?"
"Just Morn," Quark chuckled, affectionately. He poked at
the lugubrious alien's shoulder. His voice became a stage whisper.
"Mor-ornnn? Hellooo? Are you in there?"
The huge Lurian snuffled something unintelligible and shifted slightly
on the bar stool, driving his massive head deeper into the crook of his
well-padded arm, as he remained slumped face-down on the bar. Very faintly, he
began to snore, each exhalation accompanied by the pungent perfume of Martian
tequila. And judging from the strength of each puff, Quark calculated that at
two slips a shot for the extra-premium blend, Morn had had enough this evening
to more than pay for a bartender's brand-new suit—even if Rom hadn't properly
watered the goods.
"Look at him," Quark crooned. "Sleeping like a
baby. A great big, wrinkled, prune-faced baby."
"Well, wake him up and get him out of here," Vash said
sharply. "We have business to conduct."
But Quark stood defensively in front of his first, best, and most
treasured customer. "I'm sorry, but even 7 have to draw the line
somewhere. If Morn wants to sleep on my bar, well then—may the Divine Treasurer
bless him and keep him solvent all the days of his life—I am not going to be
the one who says no.
Besides, I can charge him half a bar of latinum for rent. And..."
he added in a half-whisper, "if we wake him up now, he won't stop talking
for hours." Quark smoothed his jacket, feeling better than he had since
Base came into his bar. "If you want to discuss business, we can do it
down there where we won't disturb..." His voice softened as he gazed down
at the lovable lump of his constant and continuous consumer. "... the
customer."
Vash eyed Morn's hunched-over and snoring body with distaste. She
reached out to him, gave his bald scalp a sharp flick with one of her long
nails. Morn's only response was to blow a series of small, quickly popping
bubbles from his open mouth.
"Don't make him drool now," Quark warned. He took Vash
firmly by the arm and led her to the other end of the bar. "Just think of
him as part of the furniture."
"Now," Quark said as he took his usual place behind the
bar, and placed both hands flat on the bartop. "What kind of business did
my favorite archaeologist have in mind?"
Vash shrugged off her carryall, carefully lowering it to the deck,
then rubbed at the spot on her shoulder where the carryall strap had been.
"Not my business, Quark. Your business."
Quark blinked at her. "I'm not sure I follow. Would you like
a reward for rescuing me? I'm sure I can work out an equitable payment
schedule, though business has been slow and—"
Quark winced as Vash leaned over the bar and pinched one of his
earlobes. Painfully. "Quark! I'm not talking about new business.
I'm talking about the reason why I risked arrest in three systems to get here
as soon as I did."
Quark's eyes widened nervously. He pulled back, but Vash did not
release her grip on his ear. "You don't mean ... ?"
"Yes, I do," Vash said. "The Red Orbs of Jalbador.
You made it clear you were ready to deal. That's why I'm here. And that's why I
saved your wrinkled Ferengi butt."
"You said you wouldn't peek!"
Vash increased the pressure on his ear. Quark had to stand on one
foot, just to keep his balance, to spare his delicate earflesh. "Listen,
Ferengi. I'm serious. When this station comes back on line, security's going to
be all over the place trying to figure out what went wrong. And when they find
out I'm not all cozy and warm in the Infirmary, they're going to come looking
for me. And that's not going to happen, understand? Because I'm going to be on
my way with what I came for. Now let's do it!"
Quark squealed as Vash suddenly yanked up on his earlobe, lifting
him right off his feet. Then just as suddenly she released him, and he fell
stomach first onto the bartop. His first thought was to look down the length of
the bar at Morn, to make certain at least he wasn't disturbed. Then he flopped
back, regaining his footing.
"It... it's not that easy ..." he stammered, one hand to
his injured earlobe.
Vash reached a hand inside a small pouch on her belt as if going
for a knife. "Then I suggest you make it easy."
Quark waved his hands in a vain attempt to deflect whatever it was
she was about to cut him with. "I'm just the middleman. The goods are with
a... a third party."
"Then get him down here."
"I really wish I could. You have no idea. But, the fact of
the matter is, he's dead."
Vash narrowed her eyes and Quark knew his other ear was doomed.
Just knew it.
"Who?" Vash demanded.
"Dal Nortron. The Andorian who came here with Satr and Leen.
Those heartless females were his bodyguards—and they killed him."
Vash snorted. "Bodyguards don't kill their clients. It tends
to cut into repeat business."
Quark was outraged. "Base was my bodyguard, and he
sold me out to Satr and Leen!"
Vash held the heel of one hand to her forehead and sighed.
"Oh, sleem me. . . ."
Quark brightened. He sensed a slight lessening in her resolve to
do something unspeakable to him. "Maybe your visit doesn't have to be a
total loss. We can work out another deal."
"Another deal?"
Vash leaned over, digging into her carryall from the sound of it. Then she
straightened up and slammed a spindle-shaped chunk of dark crystal on the bar.
It was maybe two-thirds of a meter tall, a quarter-meter at its widest, top and
bottom. And except for the fact that it was oddly dull in the way it reflected
what little light there was, it looked exactly like—
Quark choked.
"... Oh, no ..." he whispered.
"Oh, yes," Vash said. "A Red Orb of Jalbador."
Quark could scarcely draw a breath. Shocked. Unprepared. "You
mean..." he gasped, "they are real?"
"This one
is." Vash leaned over the bar counter and in the same, moment. Quark
leaned back, thus ensuring
the continued health of his other, as yet uninjured, earlobe.
"But without the other two," she said in disgust, "it's worse
than useless."
Quark's business sense quickened. He felt a strong sense of
finality within Vash. There would be no more negotiations. He was right.
"Time's up, Quark. I want the map."
A commotion behind Vash made Quark's heart flutter like a
grubworm on a toothpick, with no hope of escape.
"You mean, this one?" Satr hissed.
Vash wheeled around, phaser already in her hand and aimed behind
her.
But the danger was above her, not behind. Satr and Leen—clearly
recovered from whatever miserably low-setting stun Vash had used on them—were
on the bar's second level, and the golden dagger Leen now threw down knocked
the phaser directly out of Vash's hand before she could even fire it.
Instantly Satr flipped over the railing, her lithe, tattooed body
spinning through the air, to land like a feline in a crouch, braced by one
hand. In the next instant, the Andorian spun around on both hands and
reverse-kicked Vash, sending her skidding across the floor of Quark's bar.
By the time the archaeologist regained her feet, Leen had slid
halfway down the stairway railing to the main level and flipped over to land on
her feet, a golden dagger in each hand.
The spectacle of fully-clothed feminine physicality was too much
for Quark, and he shivered with forbidden pleasure. Rather than slide the Red
Orb off the bar, he continued to watch the action in anticipation of the
females' killing each other. Yet if even one of
them survived, Quark had little doubt that he'd be the next
victim.
Satr held up a slender cylinder of amber crystal. "We have
the map, Vash. Without it, your Orb is nothing more than a sparkly rock. Let us
buy it from you."
Vash was breathing hard, weaponless, holding her side where Satr
had kicked her, but Quark suspected the resourceful archaeologist wouldn't
admit defeat yet. And he was right again.
"Without an Orb, your map might as well be a Ferengi ear
probe. Let me buy the map from you."
The one thing Quark never forgot was that he was Ferengi. He saw
his opportunity and he acted upon it immediately. "Ladies, please ... you
each have something the other wants. What better situation could there be for
striking a deal? A deal, I might add, I'd be glad to broker for just a small
commission—"
Leen's bare blue arm flexed and a golden dagger flashed through
the air to pin Quark's too-large jacket—with him inside it—to die wall.
"Or not..." Quark whispered.
Satr and Leen moved to flank Vash, one heading to either side of
her. The archaeologist was forced up against the bar counter, with no way to
escape them.
Leen drew a third golden dagger from the set of scabbards at her
back, and once again held a wickedly sharp blade in each hand.
Satr tossed her crystal cylinder tauntingly, back and forth, from
one hand to the other.
"You want the Orb, I want the map," Vash said, her eyes
moving quickly from one to the other. "The Ferengi is right. We can work
out a deal."
"Dal Nortron wanted to work out a deal," Satr
sneered. "He hired us, so of course we supported his
decision. And then the Ferengi killed him."
"What?!" Quark protested. "I didn't kill anyone! I thought you were
all lying! That the map was a forgery!"
"You were willing to be the broker at the auction," Leen
said.
"I make no representations as to the suitability of the
product for the use to which the purchaser intends—"
"Silence!"
Quark knew much better than to argue with a blue tattooed female.
Each intricate black scroll on her arm represented a man she had killed—after
having had her way with him. And though Quark suspected he would not
necessarily object to the second interaction, he would definitely have issues
with the first.
He nodded, not even risking a single word to say he agreed with
her.
"If you didn't kill Nortron," Vash said,
"and the Ferengi didn't, then who did?"
"Do I look like the changeling?" Leen snarled viciously.
"We don't care who killed him," Satr said quickly, with
a sharp glance at her sister. "The fact is, he's dead. We're not. So now
we do things our way. And we want your Orb."
"It won't do any good without knowing where to use it,"
Vash countered.
Satr brandished her crystal wand. "This map tells us which
world we must take the Orb to."
"And when we get close enough to the second Orb," Leen
said triumphantly, "the first will glow to lead us along the final
path."
"You actually believe that kragh?" Vash asked.
Quark caught his breath as Satr's head jerked menacingly forward
like a striking snake. "If you didn't believe it, you'd sell us your
Orb."
"You wouldn't believe what I went through to get this,"
Vash said, undaunted. "I'm not selling anything."
The three of them faced each other, drenched in sweat, ready to
fight to the death, taut muscles rippling beneath the Andorian sisters'
glistening blue skin, Vash's long, lustrous hair a dark fountain against
creamy-white shoulders ... Quark trembled, took a canning breath. He was
falling in love, and he didn't care with which one.
A moment before he had been on the verge of slipping to safety
and obscurity behind the bar. But now he paused, unsure.
"We're not selling anything, either," Satr said.
"Which leaves us only one alternative," Leen added.
"Exactly," Base squeaked. "It means I'll take
both!"
"Oh, for—" Quark snorted in disgust, as Base jumped up
on the bar waving aloft his comically puny bat'leth. The little betrayer
could only have been hiding among the crates of glasses across from the replicator,
waiting for his moment to strike.
Moron, Quark
thought. Base would probably last about fifteen seconds against the blue
sisters. And Vash would—
"What are
you?" Satr said.
"Your worst nightmare, bluecheeks," Base chirped.
Leen hooted at the thought, then suddenly threw both daggers at
the minute Ferengi.
And then, to Quark's utter astonishment, Base twisted his bat'leth
in an expert blur and deflected both daggers. He hadn't even tried to duck.
"I can throw this a skrell of a lot faster than you
blues can run," Base crowed. "Now bring me the map crystal," he
said to Satr. Then he glared at Quark. "And you, you lobeless hunk of
greeworm castings, you bring me the Orb."
Quark tugged at his jacket where its shoulder was still fixed to
the wall by Leen's dagger, trusting Base would see that he was otherwise
detained.
But Vash provided distraction enough.
"You backstabbing little hardinak," she spat at
him. "You're supposed to be working for me!"
"Ha!" Quark said, much that had been unclear at last
becoming clear to him. "He was supposed to be working for me!"
"You're both fools!" Leen snarled.
"We paid him off so he'd work for us!" Satr added.
"Which begs the question," Vash said. "Who the hell
are you working for now?"
Base shrugged his shoulders. "What can I tell you half-wits?
With all the latinum you slugs gave me, I finally had enough to go into
business for myself." Base jabbed his thumb against his small chest.
"You'd better believe it. I'm pure Ferengi, in it for the profit and
nothing else!"
That was too much for Quark. "Oh, will someone step on him
and crush him flat."
Base squealed, enraged, as he whirled around to confront Quark,
holding his miniature bat'leth high—relatively speaking—above his head
with both hands.
Quark fought to wriggle out of his borrowed jacket, still pinned
securely to the wall. The only way that pitiful excuse for a Ferengi would
actually kill him was if he died first from embarrassment.
But Vash got to Base first, knocking him straight off the bar to
the deck.
Squeaking in outrage, Base rolled to his feet, still waving his bat'leth,
but in the wrong direction. Because Satr and Leen now attacked him from
behind, Satr sweeping him up in the bare, muscled arms Quark thought had
definite potential, Leen drawing her own well-exposed arm back to slap him, and
then—
—Quark moaned as everything went wrong. Again.
Even though Base's bat'leth didn't have the finely honed
cutting edges of the traditional Klingon weapon—and he certainly didn't have
the skill to slice an artery or bisect a key muscle group—all he seemed to need
to do to cause havoc was make contact between the blade and any part of his
opponent's body, and Ferengi plasma-whip circuits did the rest. Which is just
what he did.
Quark watched in disbelief as Base swung the bat'leth wildly
at Leen until he provoked her sufficiently to reach out to swat it away. At
that precise moment of contact with Base's weapon, the blue Andorian flew back
in a shimmering nimbus of disruptive neural energy.
Startled, Leen's sister dropped her prey; he took the opportunity
to tuck, roll, and come up swinging, bashing Satr across the knees with his bat'leth
so that she, too, collapsed in the throes of neural disruption.
Vash still hadn't regained her feet, and being at Base's level
didn't have a chance. Quark covered his eyes with both hands, but peered
through his fingers, appalled and fascinated at the same time.
After vanquishing his last female enemy with a glancing blow to
the ankles, Base now threw back his head and cackled like a mad paultillian as
he used his
bat'leth like
a vaulter's pole and sprang back up onto the bar.
He swaggered toward Quark.
Quark pulled and struggled mightily, but the barbs on the dagger
just wouldn't let go. He was a sitting Grumpackian tortoise.
"Base, can't we talk about this?" Quark pleaded.
The little Ferengi spun his bat'leth around his wrist just
like Bus Betar in the old Marauder Mo holos. The classic ones, not the remakes.
"I don't think so, frinx-for-brains. For the first time in my life,
it's winner-take-all." He stopped the bat'leth in midspin, tapped
one pudgy finger against the tip of his weapon. "It's the 242nd Rule,
after all... More is good, all is better. Prepare to meet your
Accountant." Then Base raised his weapon. "The Orb is mine. The map
is mine. Everything is mine! Do you hear me?! For the first time in my
life, Base wins!"
"I don't think so, you miserable scrap of a sentient
being!"
For a moment, Base stopped in midstride, staring at Quark as if
those combative words had dared come from his intended victim's mouth.
Quark shrank down into his oversize green jacket, wondering if he had
be stupid enough to utter those words. True as they might be.
And then, as the truth finally dawned on both hunter and hunted,
Quark and Base both slowly turned to look at the person who had uttered them.
Morn.
No longer deep in his cups on the bartop.
Instead, the hulking Lurian was on his feet, a gigantic dark silhouette
looming against the light filtering through the doors to the Promenade.
"Drop the bat'leth," Morn growled.
"Make me!" Base squeaked back in defiance.
"I will."
Quark's mouth dropped open in awe and respect. Not only was Morn
his best customer, he was about to senselessly sacrifice his life in a tragic
and doomed attempt to save him.
What a noble gesture, Quark thought. A totally ineffective, inadequate, useless
gesture.
If he lived, Quark decided, he'd retire Morn's stool. Or—even
better—charge people extra to sit in it.
"Prepare to die," Base yodeled.
Morn grunted. "Not today," he said.
And then, even as tiny Base raised his bat'leth for the
attack, Morn swung up his huge arm and—
—it snaked out along the bar like golden lightning, until
Morn's immense hand closed on the bat'leth, and crushed it, dropping the
shards to the ground, and then snapped back like a tentacle around Base's
scrawny neck, still eerily flowing like the pseudopod of a hew-mon-sized
amoeba.
As Base gargled helplessly in Morn's unforgiving grip, Quark
recovered his senses.
"Why didn't you wait until the little monster had killed
me?" he snapped. "Wouldn't that have given you an even better reason
to act, Mom?"
Morn shook his huge wrinkled head once, then softened, melted,
into a gelatinous amber statue before resolidifying as Odo, though one
Morn-like arm retained its grip on Base.
"Ohhh, you enjoyed that, didn't you?" Quark accused the
shape-shifting constable. "Seeing me almost killed."
"As a matter of fact, I did," Odo said. "By the
way, Quark, nice suit."
"That's not funny."
"And you'll notice I'm not laughing. Whatever else is going
on around here—and I assure you, I did hear everything—Dal Nortron's
still dead. And if you didn't kill him, and the Andorians didn't kill him, then
there's still a murderer walking free on DS9."
Quark threw up his hands. "Finding murderers is not my
job," he said piously. With much relish, Odo gazed at Base's stumpy legs
kicking frantically as he held the snarling little Ferengi above the deck just
high enough to keep Base from connecting with anything solid.
"Fortunately," Odo said gravely, "it happens to be
mine. And in this case, I think my job has just become much simpler."
Quark saw where Odo was looking—directly at the Red Orb of
Jalbador, still sitting on the counter of Quark's bar. Shocked and appalled,
Quark realized he'd forgotten what a Ferengi must never forget. Profit and the
potential thereof.
"As a wise man once explained," the constable said,
"all we have to do now to solve the crime is follow the Orb...."
CHAPTER 20
empty of its lifeblood of people, the station seemed a
melancholy place to Sisko.
After five cold restarts, Dax's computer team still wasn't rid of
whatever type of Bynar code Satr and Leen had input into DS9's computers, and
all internal automated systems remained off-line. Even the main gravity
generators hadn't been brought back into service. As a result, the banners
decorating the Promenade all hung at the same skewed angle, and the deck
itself was at a slant as if, impossible though it was, the entire station were
listing in space.
The litter on the carpeted sections of the deck was a sad reminder
of the hasty evacuation of all nonessen-tial station personnel into the habitat
ring. And aside from the dim emergency lighting, some fixtures of which were
finally beginning to flicker after having been on too long, the only signs of
life that remained
were the faint sounds of chanting coming from the Bajoran Temple
and the opening and closing of the doors to Odo's office.
Sisko now headed for the Security Office to join the others
assembling there.
His ears still rang from the twenty minutes he had stood within
the sonic shower, ridding himself of the malodorous sludge of the
water-treatment facility, and every muscle in his body still felt the effects
of the stun Vash had fired at him. But the physical disorienta-tion he still
suffered was not his biggest problem; it was his continued mental confusion.
With the uncovering of each new piece of the puzzle—the seemingly unconnected
and unexplainable events on the station, the one key element that would make
sense of them all, was still missing. And that was annoying the hell out of
him.
Halfway between the turbolift and the Security Office Sisko turned
to see Bashir striding quickly along the corridor toward him.
"How is he?" Sisko asked. Despite every other threat to
the station, O'Brien was his first priority. Worf and his security team had
been beamed into the water plant the moment the transporter systems had finally
been manually tuned. They'd found Sisko, just coming to, and O'Brien
unconscious. Sisko had given the order to evacuate the wounded chief to the
Infirmary first.
Bashir's report offered more mystery. "Interestingly enough,
there was another Andorian toxin on the dagger that hit him. Not the same one
Vash used on herself, but one intended to incapacitate almost any species. But
don't worry," the doctor said quickly, see- ing the anxious look that
Sisko could not keep from
his face, "it's not fatal. At least, not to Miles. He's too
stubborn."
The doctor glanced around at the unsettling state of the Promenade
as they walked towards Odo's office. "I suppose you've already thought
about this—but what happens if the Dominion hears about our condition?"
Sisko had thought about that, right after Worf's team
beamed the chief out to the Infirmary. "Admiral Ross has already
dispatched the Bondar and the Gar-neau to provide us
support." "Akira-class," Bashir said.
Sisko nodded. "They'll stand up to anything the Dominion can
throw at us. At least for the time being."
They'd reached the doors of the Security Office. Sisko paused
before entering, gathering his strength. "Something wrong, Captain?"
Bashir asked. Sisko shrugged. "There's something going on here I don't
understand. And, to be honest, it makes me uneasy."
"For what it's worth," the doctor offered, "when I
heard Vash actually had one of the Red Orbs, I thought that explained
everything. I mean, I had halfway figured out for myself that the Orbs might
be real. So maybe we should look at this as just another one of Quark's
scams—albeit blown up to immense proportions because of the potential for...
mind-boggling profit."
Sisko understood, but was unconvinced. "I hope you're right.
A simple explanation is always the best." "Unless it's the wrong one,
of course," Bashir added with a charming, self-deprecating smile. Then the
door to the Security Office slid open and he stepped through.
Instead of following the doctor, Sisko wheeled about suddenly,
aware of eyes upon him. He looked down the corridor to the right, toward the
entrance of the Temple where the large, solid, unmistakable form of Prylar
Obanak stood in the doorway, arms folded within bright saffron robes, watching.
Both men nodded to each other in silent acknowledgment.
Then Sisko turned and entered Odo's office. He instantly wished he
hadn't. A wall of sound assaulted his still-ringing ears. Odo and Quark were
heatedly arguing in the front office. Satr and Leen and Vash were shouting at
each other and at anyone who was close to their holding cells. And a
particularly irritating high-pitched howl that Sisko had never heard before
seemed to be coming from all directions at once.
To save what was left of his hearing, Sisko issued an immediate
command prerogative. "BE QUIET! EVERYONE!" In the sudden silence, the
fluctuating siren-like howl seemed even louder.
"Is there something wrong with a wall communicator?"
Sisko struggled not to sound as cross as he felt.
"That's Base," Odo said gruffly. "Apparently he's
claustrophobic."
Sisko lost his battle with his nerves. 'Tell him if he doesn't
stop that infernal squealing, I'll have him hauled off to an escape module. And
then he'll know what claustrophobia really feels like."
Odo almost smiled as he headed for the holding cells off to one
side of his office area.
"All right," Sisko said brusquely to Quark,
"where's the Orb. and where's the map?"
Quark led Sisko and Bashir to the other side of the constable's
office, where a small doorway led to a secure storage room. The outer wall of
the storage room was lined with stasis safes, and one of the safes was open.
But Sisko's attention was on the storage room's center scanning
table. On it was a spindle-cut chunk of what appeared to be randomly faceted
red glass, and a small amber cylinder.
"That doesn't look like an Orb," he said, referring to
the red glass-like object. All the Orbs of the Prophets Sisko had seen
resembled shimmering hourglass shapes of solid light. They were so
breathtak-ingly compelling, so disorienting, that ages ago Bajoran monks had
fashioned jewelled arks to shield and hold them so that they could be carried
among the faithful.
"Word has it, it's only supposed to glow when it's close to
the next Orb," Quark explained.
Sisko picked up the faceted artifact to examine it more closely.
"The next Orb?"
"Actually, there're supposed to be three," Quark said.
"You use one to find the next one, then use those two to find the
third."
Sisko touched the edge of the artifact, felt nothing, sensed no
trace of the Prophets. "I see." He put the artifact down with a sigh.
"And how much were you going to make by allowing this travesty of the
Bajoran religion to take place?"
"Captain Sisko," Quark said emphatically, "I swear
I had no idea the Orb was real. I thought I was going to be selling a map. This
thing!" He picked up the amber cylinder from the screening table and held
it out to Sisko. "That's all. I make my living from the Bajorans.
Do you really think I'd risk my livelihood by insulting
them?"
Sisko took the cylinder from Quark, turned it over in his fingers,
still skeptical.
So, apparently, was Bashir. "Vash told Dax and me that an Orb
could fetch the kind of money that can buy and sell planets."
Quark's eyes widened and he swallowed hard. "Really?"
Then he recovered. "But I wasn't selling an Orb! Just the map! A treasure
map! I must sell a half-dozen of them every year!" He faltered, then
quickly added, "Not for Orbs, of course. But for the lost planet of
Atlantis, missing ships, T'Kon portals, Qui'Tu and Vorta Vor. Classic
stuff. Nothing more."
Bashir seemed to be convinced. "I believe him, sir.
Especially since the penalties for dealing in Orbs cannot be
plea-bargained."
"Exactly," Quark said with a shiver. "Why risk getting
involved with a criminal-justice system that has such a rigid view of wrong and
right when they're so many other ways to... uh, that doesn't sound right
either, does it?"
"Quit while you're ahead, Quark." Sisko held up the
amber map cylinder. 'Tell me about this."
Quark shrugged. "I never saw it till Dal Nortron brought it
to the bar the day he arrived. And I told that whole story to Odo just like you
told me to."
"That's right," Odo said, making his appearance in the
storage room just as Sisko noticed thankfully that Base's squealing had finally
stopped. "According to Quark, the Andorian contacted him to arrange an auction
for the map."
"Where did Nortron say he got it?" Sisko asked.
"He didn't tell," Quark answered. "And I didn't
ask. There are some traditions in trade, you know."
"What's it a map of, Quark? Or did traditions prevent you
from asking about that, too?"
"Captain, really. I had to write the promotional copy, didn't
I?"
"And?" Sisko prompted.
Quark sighed dramatically. "According to the Jalbador
legend, the three Red Orbs were scattered so they could never be brought
together."
"Why not?" Sisko asked.
"It's a legend," Quark said testily. "Why
three wishes? Why a magic greeworm? Someone told a bedtime story once and it
got taken way too seriously, if you ask me."
Sisko waved a hand, realizing it was probably unrealistic to
demand much more depth from Quark's explanation. "Continue."
"So—whoever hid them made a map of where they were hidden.
End of mystery."
"Well, that makes no sense," Bashir complained. "If
the Orbs aren't supposed to ever be found, why make maps? Why not just launch
them into the sun?"
Quark rolled his eyes. "Bajorans didn't have space travel
back then, all right? Now, do you want to hear this story or not?"
"It gets better," Odo pointed out.
"Thank you," Quark said. "So, the point is, the map
Dal Nortron obtained—from whatever source—apparently reveals the world
on which the second Red Orb is hidden."
"A world's a large place to hide something so small,"
Sisko said.
"Exactly, Captain. Which means, you need the first
Orb to find the second. They react to each other, like a ... a
location beacon or something. And the thing is, I didn't know Vash had the
first Orb."
Sisko handed the map cylinder to Odo. "Constable, is there
any way we can see what's on this?"
Odo studied the transparent amber rod. "Looks like a standard
Cardassian memory rod...." He walked over to a wall display, pressed a
control and a rod holder slid out.
"Quark," Sisko warned the Ferengi barkeep, "no
games now. I'll accept that you're too smart to risk alienating the entire
Bajoran population. But I need an honest answer." Sisko tried not to react
to Quark's sudden look of panic at his use of the word, 'honest.' "Who
else—smuggler or collector or buyer—is on this station who might have been
responsible for Dal Nortron's murder?"
Only Quark could look contrite, worried, and embarrassed all at
the same time. "Captain, I don't know. The Andorian sisters. Base, of
course. Vash. Those are the only ones my inform—I mean, they're the only ones
I've seen."
"Here it is," the constable said from his position by
the display screen.
Sisko left Quark, who likely had nothing more to offer, and walked
over to join Odo and Bashir.
The amber cylinder did contain a map, but not of an entire planet.
Instead, it outlined a city layout, of streets and dwelling blocks.
And nothing was labeled.
"That's not going to do anyone any good," Sisko said.
Odo studied the schematics on the display screen. "Maybe the
legend was wrong. Instead of showing a world, the map shows a place on a
world."
"But, Odo," Bashir said, "there are millions of
worlds in the galaxy."
"Maybe there's another map that goes with this one," Odo
suggested.
Sisko tried a different approach. "How old is that
cylinder?"
Odo tapped a few controls, read a line of Cardassian script.
"According to the manufacturer's code, five years."
"So this is a copy," Bashir concluded.
"Of a copy of a copy of a copy," Sisko added. "And
if this truly dates back to ten thousand years ago, when the first Orbs started
to appear, then the first version of the map would probably have been carved
into rock or—" He stopped and then smiled broadly. "No. It can't be
hidden on any one of millions of worlds." He turned to the Ferengi and
exclaimed, "Quark! You're right!"
"I am?"
"You said it yourself. Ten millennia ago, Bajorans didn't
have space travel. So the Orbs had to have been hidden on Bajor
itself."
This time it was Bashir who seemed unconvinced.'But if the hiding
place is Bajor, then why all the interest in a map that supposedly shows some world
on which the orbs can be found?"
Sisko wasn't certain about that, himself, but he didn't think it
was important. "The old Bajoran ideograms can be difficult to translate.
They have so many meanings that change according to context. It could be as
simple as the phrase, 'the world,' meaning the known world of Bajor,
having been translated as 'a world,' a few thousand years ago."
Sisko shook his head to ward off any other ques-
tions that could sidetrack them again. "In any case, the
mystery that should concern us right now is who killed Dal Nortron."
"Hey, Dad."
Sisko turned, automatically smiling at the sound of his son's
voice.
Jake and Jadzia stepped cautiously into the storage room of Odo's
security office, neither of them comfortable with the sharply slanting deck.
"Jake-O, Old Man—who's minding the store?"
"Worf," Jadzia said with a playful smile. "We're
running another diagnostic on the computer and I had to get away from those
screens for a few minutes."
Under current conditions, Sisko could accept Jadzia's presence.
But not Jake's.
"You know you shouldn't be here," he told his son.
"The whole station's on gravity alert and I want you back at our quarters
to look after Kasidy."
Jake looked at him as if he were hearing a deliberately bad joke.
"Like I'm supposed to look after the captain of an interstellar freighter.
Sure, that's just the sort of job for a helpless female."
Sisko smiled but made his request again. "You know what I
mean. I want my family out of harm's way."
Jake grinned. "Really? Family? Does Kasidy know about
this?"
"Don't start," Sisko warned. "Now get moving, and
don't use the turbolifts."
Jake hesitated, looked at Jadzia, and Jadzia coughed.
Something was obviously going on between them. "All right,
you two," Sisko said. "I know a conspiracy when I see one."
"Benjamin," Jadzia said, "just before the computer
was compromised, when you had just beamed out to the Defiant, Jake
and I were having a ... talk."
"You were in Ops?" Sisko frowned at his son.
Jadzia answered before Jake could. "He's been helping out
with the computer restarts, copying files. Ant-ting down subsystems."
Sisko relaxed, reminded of what he sometimes for-got these
days, of all the time Jake used to spend with O'Brien. He gave his son the
benefit of the doubt. 1 take it this 'talk' was important?"
Jadzia exchanged glances with Jake. "Well, the budding
novelist here figured out on his own that someone was trying to sell an Orb, and
that the Orb was real. He had a few other interesting conclusions, too, so
I thought maybe you could use his input while you're trying to put all this
together."
Sisko sighed. "Okay. But let's do that tonight, Jake.
Right now, things are still too much up in the air." He could see the
disappointment in his son's eyes, understood how the boy felt, but for now,
the station had to come first.
Jake nodded without protest. He wasn't the only one who was
disappointed, though.
"Don't give me that look, Old Man."
"A good commander makes full use of all his assets."
"I see. The conspiracy is turning into a mutiny." Not
for the first time, Sisko observed that Jadzia and Jake were alike in that they
both knew exactly how far they could push him, and when they reached that point
without success, they backed off without recrimination.
Almost without recrimination.
Jadzia leaned closer and whispered into Sisko's ear,
"I'd watch out, Benjamin. Someday Jake's going to write a
book about you and you do want to come off as one of the good guys, don't
you?"
"Tonight," Sisko repeated firmly.
Jake said his good-byes to Odo, the doctor, and Quark and then,
just before stepping out of the storage room, he glanced up at the display
screen with a bright smile. "Hey, you got the interface going!"
Everyone looked at him in surprise, including his father.
"What interface?" Sisko asked.
"With the Cardassian holosuite." Jake pointed to the
display screen. "Isn't what that is? It sure looks like the layout of the
village Nog and I saw."
"What village?" Odo asked sharply.
"The one on the Bajoran moon."
Just for a moment, Sisko felt Deep Space 9 wheel crazily around
him. And the effect had nothing to do with the canted slant of the deck or with
failing gravity.
Without any logic or hard data, he suddenly was certain that the
last piece of the puzzle had just fallen into place.
And the truly maddening thing was, it had been there all along.
CHAPTER 21
•this is it," Nog
said. Then he looked up at Jake. "Wouldn't you say?"
Jake studied the holographic image that surrounded him and all the
other onlookers in the holosuite at Quark's. As far as he could tell, it was a
close reproduction of the primitive village he and Nog had seen in the
distance four days ago, when they had entered the Cardassian holosuite.
Fortunately, the computers that ran Quark's holosuites were separate from the
station's, and were still fully operational.
The resolution, however, was low, the sky was an unreal shade of
dark purple without stars or Bajor, and the recreation was missing details like
an evening breeze and the flickering of lights in the windows. But from the
arrangement of the buildings and the sweep of the landscape, Jake would have to
say Jadzia had done a great job of turning the two-dimensional map
on the Cardassian memory rod into a three-dimensional simulation.
Best of all, she had adjusted the gravity in the suite to compensate for the
station's list, so that for the first time in almost two hours everyone was
standing on level ground.
"I agree," Jake said. "This is the village we
saw."
He looked over at his father, secretly pleased to be able to make
an important contribution to the investigation. Especially after being so
publicly dismissed in front of so many people—who were now here to see that he
wasn't just the captain's kid, who had to be kept 'out of harm's way.'
Even his father looked impressed. He turned to Odo.
"Constable? Theories?"
"I think it's obvious, Captain. Dal Nortron somehow knew
about the Cardassian holosuite in the hidden section of corridor. He used it
to create a simulation of this Bajoran lunar village, no doubt attempting to
narrow down the location of the second Orb."
"And he was killed for his trouble."
"Undoubtedly."
"Which brings us back to Vash, Satr, and Leen as suspects.
But how could any of them know about the hidden section of the
station?"
"You might as well ask how could Nortron?" Odo said.
"And again, I think the answer is obvious. The map is recorded on a
Cardassian memory rod. That implies Nortron obtained it from a Cardassian
source, and that it was a Cardassian who knew about what was hidden on Terok
Nor and then told Nortron."
Even though everything Odo had said sounded reasonable, somehow
it didn't strike Jake as right. There had to be another explanation for what
had happened. He tried to think about how he would make everything
come out if this were a novel he was writing, but unfortunately
all that kept springing into his mind was the usual shock ending in which the
station commander is revealed to be the killer.
Jake suddenly stared at his father, who turned to him as if
he sensed the intensity of his son's gaze. "What is it, Jake?"
"Um, Dad, are we... still following the starfleet
changeling-detection protocols?"
Sisko shrugged. "All the time." Then he grinned as if he
could read his son's mind. "Anyone in particular you suspect?"
"No, not really," Jake said diffidently.
"Jake," Sisko said, "if the Dominion was behind any
of this, a Jem'Hadar attack wing would have started pounding us the instant our
computers went off-line. The fact that we're still here means this doesn't have
anything at all to do with the Founders."
But that didn't sound right to Jake, either. "But it does have
something to do with the Cardassians, right? And they're part of the Dominion,
sort of."
Jadzia looked at Sisko. "See? That's a good point."
"No, no, no," Major Kira suddenly interjected. She had
gone off to walk through the simulated village and had just returned.
"This reconstruction doesn't match any village on any of the
inhabited Bajoran moons. It's a fake. A typical Quark forgery."
"I resent that," Quark said huffily. "My forgeries
are anything but typ—never mind."
"Captain," Kira said, "we're wasting our time with
this."
But Jake could see that Kira's argument had made his father think
of something else. "Just a minute, Major. Let's accept that this simulation
doesn't match
an existing lunar village. But could it match an ancient
one?"
"Lunar villages aren't that ancient, sir. The oldest ones,
even going right back to the first landings, would only be a thousand years
old."
Jake understood the reason for his father's quick smile. It didn't
mean that he was taking what Kira said lightly. His amusement stemmed from the
fact that Bajoran culture went so far back that a thousand years to them was
like a long weekend to anyone else.
"Forgive me, Major." Sisko's apology was sincere.
"Rather than 'ancient,' let's say 'old.' Could this represent an old lunar
village?"
Kira turned around to stare back at the simulation. "Well,
the architecture is right, even if the layout isn't. But if the Red Orbs are
supposed to have been split up ten thousand years ago, how could one of them
have been buried on a Bajoran moon one thousand years ago?"
"Maybe someone's keeping track of them," Jake suggested.
Kira shook her head. "Oh, no, Jake, you can't have it both
ways. Either the Orbs are hidden or they're not. It doesn't make sense for
anyone to be moving around Orbs that supposedly can never be brought
together."
"Of course," Bashir said slowly, "there is one way
for everyone to be right."
That the doctor suddenly had everyone's undivided attention was an
understatement. Jake felt a little envious that Bashir and not he might be
about to solve the mystery, but he was excited, too, to be here on the spot, as
his father's murder investigation proceeded to its solution, step by step. All
of this was vastly prefer-
able to being sequestered somewhere safe while all the really
interesting activities on the station were going on without him.
The doctor gave a little bow toward Major Kira. "What if
these Orbs are forgeries, but ones manufac-tured a thousand years ago
which would give them certain air of authenticity. This would make them rare
Bajoran artifacts that could have been hidden a millen-nium ago, and would mean
they could still serve as a motive for murder today. At the same time, they
would then also not be the legendary, and possibly, apocryphal, Red
Orbs of Jalbador."
"Makes sense to me," Kira said.
"Except for that Cardassian connection," Sisko said.
"I wish we knew what moon this was supposed to be...." He turned to Jake.
"Where was Bajor in the sky?"
Jake and Nog both turned and pointed away from the village.
"Up there," Jake told his father.
"We were beyond the terminator," Nog added, "but we
could still see part of the sunlit side."
"Computer," Sisko said, "add Bajor to the night
sky, as seen from the Bajoran moon of Baraddo."
Jake looked up as the purple sky suddenly rippled and turned
black, now dotted with twinkling stars. A few moments later, a full Bajor
appeared against the stars, green oceans sparkling with the brilliant reflection
of Bajor-B'hava-el.
"Too small," Nog said at once.
"That's right," Jake said. "It was twice that size
at least."
Sisko nodded. "Computer, which moon of Bajor would correspond
to an apparent diameter of the planet twice the width of what's displayed
now?"
"Unable to comply," the computer answered. "Library
access has been temporarily interrupted."
Jake knew that meant the computer had tried to contact the
station's central computer banks, which were still off-line.
Sisko gave the challenge to Kira. "Major, pick a moon.
There're only five that are inhabited."
Kira looked troubled. "But some have eccentric orbits....
Computer, adjust the sky as seen from the moon of Penraddo."
Jake watched as Bajor seemed to jump closer in the sky, almost
doubling in apparent diameter.
'That is still not quite right," Nog said, frowning. "Is
there any moon that orbits the planet even closer?"
"Not habitable," Kira said.
"You mean, not habitable now!" Sisko's smile was
triumphant.
Jake didn't know what his father was talking about. But Kira
apparently did.
"Jeraddo?" she said.
"If I wanted to hide something so that it could never be
found," Sisko said, "what better place than a moon that will kill
anyone who tries to land there? Computer: Show Bajor as it would have appeared
from the moon of Jeraddo before the moon's atmosphere was converted."
Instantly, Bajor jumped even closer in the sky.
"Now that is the right size," Nog said.
Jake nodded.
But Kira wasn't convinced. "Jeraddo was only converted to an
energy source five years ago, not a thousand."
Jake had a sudden flash of inspiration. "Which means,"
he said excitedly, "someone could have hidden the Orb on Jeraddo five
years ago! To keep it out
of the hands of Whoever's been trying to find the Orbs and bring
them together!"
Kira suddenly developed a pained expression. "Jake, where did
that come from?"
Jake could tell that his interruption had surprised her. He was
getting more and more used to that reac-tion. It was hard for the adults on the
station to stop thinking of him as the little kid they'd always known. And it
was hard for him to suppress the ideas he had about just about everything
around him.
"Well," he began explaining enthusiastically,
"Jer-addo was converted into an energy moon five years ago. The memory
cylinder the map is on is five years old. So maybe the map isn't a copy—maybe
it's only five years old...." Jake could see Kira wasn't buying a word.
And neither was anyone else. Too bad, Jake thought. It would make a
great conspiracy novel. He could even use his father's suggestion and call
it The Cardassian Connection. He could write a whole series. He could...
see the almost pitying look on Major Kira's face. "Never mind," he
said.
"I won't," Kira replied. She turned to Sisko.
"Shouldn't we all get back to work?"
Jake could see his father wasn't ready to let go of this latest
lead that he and Nog had provided. "Don't you have any curiosity for
making an even more detailed simulation from the map? Maybe find out exactly
where the Orb is hidden?" Sisko asked.
"Absolutely none," Kira said. "That Orb will never
be found because it either doesn't exist, or if it does, because it's hidden on
Jeraddo. Either way, that map means nothing."
Jake watched as his father's glance polled the rest of the group
in the holosuite—Odo, Bashir, Quark, even
Nog and him. No one else offered an objection to Kira's
conclusion, so neither did Jake.
"All right," Sisko said. "We move on."
Jake braced himself for the return of the station's unbalanced
gravity field.
"Computer," Sisko said, "end program."
But nothing changed.
"Computer," Sisko repeated, "end program."
The simulation remained.
"That Rom" Quark sputtered. "Computer, this is
Quark. Implement safety override in holosuite C."
But again, nothing happened. Quark looked frantically back and
forth at the unchanging Bajoran lunar village. "We're doomed," he
said.
"Not yet," a disembodied voice replied.
Jake looked at Nog as everyone else scanned their surroundings,
trying to find the source of the voice.
"Stay calm, and no one will get hurt," the voice said
again.
Jake saw his father and Major Kira turn to look at one another at
the same moment.
"Leej Terrell." To Jake, the way Kira said the name, it
sounded like she was cursing.
Then something even more unusual happened. Jake was amazed to see
the distant landscape shimmer just for an instant, as three Cardassians—one
female and two males, including one who was bald and badly scarred—stepped through
the holographic simulation to join the group in the holosuite.
Except they weren't here to play games.
Each held a Cardassian phaser.
"Thank you, Captain Sisko," the female said. "You
finally found our missing Orb."
CHAPTER 22
sisko stepped between Terrell and his son. If she so
much as aims her weapon in Jake's direction—
The Cardassian seemed to recognize the reason for his move.
"Noble, Captain, but unnecessary."
"How did you get in here!" Quark demanded of Terrell.
"I demand to see your admittance receipt!" And he slapped at her bald
associate as Atrig roughly marched through Quark's ill-fitting green brocade
waiter's suit for possible weapons.
At the same time, Dr. Betan retrieved all communicators, along
with Jadzia's tricorder and Jake's note padd. Sisko's holosuite party was now
completely cut off from the rest of the station, captives of the three
Cardassians.
Terrell stared at the indignant Quark. "You don't recognize
me?"
Sisko saw the sudden flash of fear that moved
through Quark, as if the Ferengi barkeep did recognize her, but
was somehow terrified to acknowledge that fact.
"Should I?" Quark asked.
"I'm not the one to ask," Terrell said. She turned her
attention to Odo. "How about you, shape-shifter?"
"What about me?" Odo growled.
Terrell seemed only amused by his attitude. "Some things
never change." She casually lifted her phaser and shot Odo point-blank.
As the constable fell, Kira's attempt to run to his side was
aborted by Betan's menacing sweep of his phaser in her direction.
Bashir knelt quickly beside Odo's fallen form to use his medical
tricorder to check the constable's condition. He looked up at Sisko as Atrig
relieved him of the device. "Just stunned."
"You had no need to do that," Sisko told Terrell.
But all the Cardassian said was, "You'd be surprised,
Captain. Whenever Odo permits himself to be captured, I can't help but be
suspicious."
Terrell spoke as if she knew Odo. That meant to Sisko that it was
possible that she had been on DS9 before. Perhaps during the Cardassian
Occupation of Bajor. He realized it was also possible that he was looking at
yet another piece of the puzzle that involved his people and his station.
Sisko caught the eyes of the rest of his staff and shook his head,
to instruct them not to try what Odo had done. He was aware of the frustration
that tormented all of them—Jadzia, Bashir, Nog, Jake, and especially Kira. But
even Quark would realize it was suicide to risk a frontal assault on three
phasers.
Terrell approached Sisko. "We've been listening to
everything you've discussed in here," she said. "AD this
talk about Orbs. Do they exist, don't they exist? Are they a fraud? A forgery?
Apocryphal? You've been so caught up in the search for the real story about the
Orbs that you've completely neglected the greater truth."
Sisko watched her closely, waiting for her to show the slightest
inattention to her weapon. If he could get it then the odds would be closer to
even.
"What greater truth?" he asked. He didn't care what she
gave as an answer. He only wanted to keep her talking, to increase the odds
she'd be distracted. Having Jake here under these conditions was just as
harrowing as when Kasidy had been with him on the Defiant. One way or
another, these threats to his family had to end.
"Captain Sisko . .. Emissary," Terrell said mockingly.
"You're familiar with the Orbs the Bajorans call the Tears of the
Prophets. Tell me, where do those Blue Orbs come from?"
Sisko stared at her, measuring her, judging her. He would not play
her game.
'That's right," she said, as if content to conduct both sides
of the conversation herself. "The Celestial Temple. Jalkaree. The
wormhole." Her narrow, gray face twisted into an unpleasant smile.
"So, where do you think the Red Orbs come from?
"Correct again," Terrell said, without even waiting for
Sisko to respond. "See how easy this is? They come from another wormhole.
You see, Captain, it turns out you weren't the first to discover the worm-hole
in the Bajoran system. Or, rather, should I say, you weren't the first to
discover the first wormhole. Because there are two of them. Care
to make a comment now?"
Sisko shot a glance at Jadzia, but the scientist shook her head,
her expression of disbelief confirming what he already knew. "That's
impossible," he said.
"There can't be two," Jadzia added. "The entire
Bajoran sector's been subjected to one of the most intensive subspace
structural analyses the Federation has ever undertaken. I helped design the
project. There is no second wormhole."
The Cardassian sneered at Jadzia, "I don't suppose that
thorough analysis of yours included the effects of the three Orbs of Jalbador?
No? I didn't think so."
"You're lying," Kira cried. "There is only one
Celestial Temple and the Prophets are those who dwell within it!"
Without even glancing at her target, the Cardassian swept out her
arm and smashed her phaser across Kira's face, knocking the Bajoran officer
down beside Odo's still form. Blood trickled from the ridges of Kira's nose.
Sisko lunged forward, ignoring his own order, only to be stopped
by a phaser burst at his feet and the realization that Atrig's next shot would
hit Jake.
Bashir helped Kira to her feet as Terrell said coldly. "Spare
me the superstitious prattle, Bajoran. Do you think yours is the first planet
of simpletons who have been toyed with by a more advanced species? Your
Prophets are exploitive aliens and they've treated your world like their own
personal chess board for twenty millennia. You people are nothing but their
pawns. You've all been bred for ignorance and servility and— for all you
know—pure entertainment."
"That is enough!" Sisko shouted. His voice was
oddly flat in the dead air of the simulated holographic village, but it was
loud enough to make his point.
Terrell's phaser swung back to cover him. "Of course it's
enough. This dismal creature doesn't have the mental capacity to understand the
truth. But you. Captain, and your Federation . .. you understand You've always
known about the corruption poised to consume the souls of those races that dare
to think of themselves as gods. Why else would you hive your Prime Directive
except to spare yourselves that fate?"
Sisko shuddered as Terrell favored him with a look of approval.
"That's one of the few things we Cardassians admire about your kind, you
know. The Prime Directive. It shows that at some point you were like us—an
ethical race. Your downfall, though, is that you lack the moral strength to
distinguish between true sentient beings—like the Vulcans—and simple stock Like
the Bajorans, who have been so debased by their Prophets that—"
Kira pushed Bashir aside, launched herself at Terrell, arms
outstretched, her hands her only weapons.
She almost reached the startled Cardassian. But Dr. Betan caught
her in time, spun her around, and shoved xt
forward, where Atrig stunned her with his phaser.
Kira collapsed instantly, her body sprawling awk-wardly across the
holographic rocks.
"The rest of you. Get down on your knees," Dr. Betan
ordered crisply. "With your hands on your heads."
No one in Sisko's party moved, their eyes all on Kira. The stun
had been a heavy one.
Dr. Betan pointed his phaser at Bashir's head, close enough that
even a stun would be fatal. "We only need one of you to answer our
questions. No loss to us if the rest have to die."
At that moment, Kira stirred and faintly moaned.
Thanking the Prophets, Sisko took action. He had to learn what
questions the Cardassians needed answered. If there was anything he knew that
they didn't, then in some small way he would have power over them.
Knowing his people had to be his first priority, Sisko knelt on
the stones then, beneath the night sky and the brilliance of a full Bajor. And
he placed his hands on his head.
The others immediately followed the example of their commander.
"Ask your questions," Sisko said to Terrell.
She looked pleased at his compliance. "You and I are alike,
you know. You've seen the Blue Orbs. You've contacted the wormhole aliens. In
my way, I've shared those experiences."
"If you really had," Sisko said, "you would find it
impossible to behave as you do."
Terrell cocked her head. "You surprise me, Captain. You know
that's not true. You've devoted many of the scientific assets of this station
to the study of the Blue Orbs. Each month I read an intercept of the latest
installment of the never-ending report this Trill scientist of yours is
compiling. And I want you to know, I understand. The Orbs are the artifacts of
an advanced civilization. You're compelled to study them, just as we were when
we discovered them on Bajor. But then again, we found more than just the Blue
Orbs. We also found a red one. And do you know one of the things that
distinguishes a Red Orb from a Blue? Other than the color, of course."
Sisko remained silent as before. The more she talked the more
chance he had to learn what he knew that they didn't.
"Verteron traces," she said proudly. 'That's what gives
the Red Orb its color—a subspace-particle collision that traps chromic oxide
atoms in a solidified energy vortex."
The sound of her voice rattling on while Major Kira lay untended
not a meter away, made Sisko's head ache. How soon would it be before Worf
would wonder why the meeting in the holosuite was taking so long?
"Not actually solidified energy, of course,"
Terrell said with a chuckle, "but one with a relativistic rate of temporal
decay a billion times slower than the local inertial frame of reference. Am I
boring you, Captain?"
"You'll never be able to leave this station," Sisko said
challengingly. The safety of his people depended upon his keeping her
off-balance, distracted until Worf could make his move.
Terrell's harsh, barking laugh was scornful. "My people built
this station. We know more about it than you ever will."
The Cardassian waved her phaser at Quark, who ducked forward,
lowering his head to his knees, his eyes tightly shut, expecting the worst.
When it didn't come, he opened them one at a time to find Terrell regarding him
with amusement. "Those smugglers' tunnels that you use for all your petty
crimes, how do you think they came to be built, Ferengi? Because the designers
of Terok Nor made an error? Or at the command of the Obsidian Order?"
Quark whimpered at the dreaded name and closed his eyes again.
"There is no Obsidian Order anymore," Sisko said.
Terrell shrugged, as if she were beginning to lose
interest in their conversation. "They had outlived their
usefulness. But rest assured a dozen other groups are now battling to see who
will emerge as the Order's replacement on the Detapa Council."
Sisko strove to regain her attention. "Do you honestly think
the Dominion will allow any group to attain the power of the Obsidian
Order?"
Provoked, as he had hoped, Terrell threw the question back at
him. "Do you think Cardassian patriots will allow their home to be
enslaved by the Founders forever?" She shook her head in contempt.
"In one guise or another, Captain, the Order will be reborn. Just
as Cardassia will throw off her oppressors. And the key to this great new
victory is the second wormhole in the Bajoran system."
"But what you're saying is impossible!" Sisko said
quickly. Inwardly, he sighed with relief as the Cardassian picked up the
challenge and began talking rapidly, intensely.
"Captain, / studied the Red Orb. Right here. On this station.
That single Red Orb had verteron traces different from those of the Blue Orbs.
We were able to tell from those traces that it had been exposed to multiple
bursts of negative energy—exactly the energy signature created by the sudden
intrusion of a wormhole into normal space-time. A form of hyperdimensional
Cerenkov radiation, if you will. But where the Blue Orbs contained very slight
verteron tracks—almost impossible to measure—the Red Orb had multiple tracks.
And that meant that though it was possible the Blue Orbs might have passed
through a wormhole once—whatever the Orbs were, wherever they had come
from—there was no doubt the red one had been close to an opening wormhole many
times.
"You can see why that Orb captured the interest of everyone
in the rarefied assemblage of the Order's science directorate. Somehow, that
Red Orb could be the key to actually creating a wormhole."
Sisko's eyes widened with her next words. He tried not to look at
Jake and Nog, praying that they would not speak or draw the Cardassian's
attention to them.
"I set up my lab right here on Terok Nor," Terrell said.
"In that hidden section of corridor you found. But it wasn't hidden from you.
It was hidden from Gul Dukat, who never had a clue as to what I was doing
here. And it was in that lab, with that Red Orb connected to a... well, let's
just say, the right equipment, that I was able to release just enough of the
solidified energy trapped within it. What I am saying, Captain Sisko, is that /
was the first to create a wormhole precursor field—a thinning of the surface
tension of space-time such that only a small push would be required to break
through into a nonlinear realm. The realm of—"
Sisko's arms dropped to his side. He regarded Terrell with
amazement. "Are you saying you made contact with the Prophets?"
"The aliens!" Terrell snapped. She gestured with
her phaser and Sisko placed his hands on his head again. "Wormhole aliens.
Not face to face, but oh, they were in there. And they contacted us before we
could contact them. Some of us could hear their thoughts. Almost all of us
could see the images they created for us, enticing us into their realm as they
opened doorways to whatever place it was we each most wanted to go.
Disturbing, wouldn't you say? An alien race reaching into our minds, knowing
our deepest desires like that?"
"Sounds like something only the gods would know," Sisko
said softly.
Terrell's response was harsh and blunt. "It's also something
that could be known by telepaths. Telepathic aliens with a perverted
desire to make less-advanced beings worship them."
The Cardassian looked away from him, up to the holographic image
of Bajor in the simulated night sky. "But even knowing what we were
dealing with, there were those on my research team who heard the aliens' voices
and ... obeyed them, stepping through the precursor membrane."
Terrell closed her eyes for an instant. Sisko saw Atrig and Dr.
Betan look at her with concern. "Most never came back."
Sisko seized the opportunity to make eye contact with Bashir and
Nog, who gave him imperceptible nods of agreement. Even though they were on
their knees, they were ready to move the instant he judged the Cardassians'
weapons would not be a threat. Sisko wished there were some way he could signal
Jake to run for cover ahead of time.
"And then, when we were so close—" Terrell was now so
caught up in completing her story that she had begun to pace back and forth.
The gaze of her two associates followed her as she continued to speak,
"—when / was so close to finally controlling the Red Orb's energy, the
order came to withdraw from Bajor. Who knows the reason? I think it was
because the patience of the Cardassian people had reached an end. Here we had
spent decades and the lives of so many good soldiers and trillions of bars of
latinum to help restore some semblance of order to this ungrateful world, and
still its pathetic natives
resisted us. What was the point of continuing? If the Bajorans
wanted to remain the playthings of the alien telepaths they called the
Prophets, then at some point we had to say, 'Enough.' We can't save everyone.
We couldn't save them from themselves. Anymore than we can save you from
yourselves."
Sisko shifted his knees against the rough stones, getting ready,
still forced to listen to the Cardassian's self-serving, offensive recollection
without objection.
"I knew I couldn't leave my lab behind for the Bajorans to
discover," Terrell mused thoughtfully. "As challenged as they are,
some of them have a certain natural, Pakled-like aptitude for machinery. They
would never have understood the subtle complexities of subspace manipulation,
but they might have been able to duplicate my equipment and quite by accident
stumble upon a method for completing it. For that reason, the Obsidian Order
gave the command to have the station self-destruct once all Cardassian
personnel had been evacuated."
Sisko couldn't help the retort that rose to his lips. "So the
station's continued existence is yet another example of the Order's
effectiveness."
Terrell paused for a moment in her pacing, idly rubbed her thumb
against the force selector switch on her phaser. Sisko heard the series of
faint clicks that indicated the selector was dialling through its possible
settings, like the spinning of a dabo wheel. "Captain, you're an
intelligent being. The ability to open an artificial, stable wormhole between any
two points in the galaxy, perhaps in the universe, would be the ultimate
defense against aggression. Cardassian fleets could take off from Cardassia
Prime and in minutes be in the
atmosphere of any enemy's homeworld, having completely bypassed
all that world's defenses."
Though he did not comment on what Terrell was saying, Sisko was
perfectly aware of what wormhole technology offered the galaxy—or, in the eyes
of some within Starfleet, how it threatened the galaxy.
"In a day," Terrell said calmly, "the Dominion
would cease to exist. In a week, the Alpha and Beta Quadrants would begin an
era of peace unsurpassed in galactic history."
Terrell now crouched down beside him. Sisko suppressed the urge
to draw back from her in distaste. "You see, I know what drives humans to
join Starfleet. I even know what you are, Captain. You're an explorer, a
dreamer, someone who needs to propel his species beyond all limits of
knowledge. In other words, you are just like me .. . like any other
Cardassian."
"Don't count on it," Sisko said grimly. Surely Worf had
had enough time to make his realization. He could feel the eyes of his own
staff on him, expectant.
Terrell gave his shoulder an indulgent pat, and then stood up
again. "You'll see. When the Dominion has been crushed. When the Pax
Cardassia embraces all our worlds. When a bold new age of peaceful exploration
and development of the galaxy has begun. I've no doubt you'll be there. On the
bridge of a Cardassian science vessel or one of your own, it doesn't matter.
Because we will all be joined in a common cause—"
"Never."
But Terrell was no longer listening to him. She was looking up
once again at the simulated Bajor. "Computer, download current program to
memory channel Alpha Prime. Authorization, Terrell, level 9, Green."
When the computer responded, Sisko was surprised
to hear not the voice of Quark's holosuite management unit but the
station's own synthetic voice.
Terrell smiled at his reaction. "The Andorians weren't the
only ones to augment your station's computers with their own codes," she
said. 'Terok Nor will remain nonoperational until I have completed my mission."
"What is your mission?!" Sisko demanded. There
was no time left for subtlety.
And, as if she felt the same way, Terrell finally told him.
"The one thing that held back my work," she said, "was the fact
that I only had one Red Orb. After all, Bajoran legends say that the doorway to
Jalbador shall be opened only when all three are brought together. But in sixty
years, the entire might of Cardassia could only locate one of those three.
Until Quark so helpfully announced that he had a map to sell."
"This is not my fault!" Quark said vehemently.
"Calm down, Ferengi. You'll be a hero to my people if to no
one else."
"So what?" Quark grumbled. "That and a slip of latinum
aren't even worth a slip of latinum."
"So," Terrell continued for Sisko's benefit, "with
the chance to find a second Red Orb—which could possibly provide the means to
recover the Orb lost on the Day of Withdrawal—it was time for me to return to
my old home.
"And that is my mission, Captain Sisko. To obtain the three
Red Orbs. To wrest from them the secret of creating a translocatable wormhole.
And then, finally, to destroy the aliens within it so its full power will be in
the hands of the greatest force for galactic peace ever imagined."
Sisko heard the station's computer voice again.
"Program-transfer completed."
"End program," Terrell said, and the crude reconstruction
of the Jeraddon lunar village began to dissolve.
The familiar hardness of the holosuite's smooth deck replaced the
rough stones previously beneath Sisko's knees. The lighting brightened. In the
green glow from the standby holoprojectors, the three Cardassians resembled
supernatural beings emerging from some alien pit.
But all Sisko was conscious of was that at last he knew what
Terrell's weakness was. "You lost an Orb," he said, making his
statement an accusation.
"I prefer to think of it as ... misplaced," she said,
her attention alarmingly now focused on Jake. "But the fact that your
internal reports are full of references to the 'lost Cardassian holosuite'
leads me to believe that the Red Orb is nearby, its residual power still with
enough of a contact to my old lab to maintain the precursor condition."
Terrell poked Jake's shoulder with her phaser. "You weren't
in a holosuite, young human. You were looking at visions of what you wanted
most, created by the wormhole aliens to lure you into their realm." She
looked back to Sisko, whose heart was pounding at the Cardassian's closeness to
his son. "And if the Red Orb had still been connected to my equipment,
your son might have stepped through the boundary layer into that realm and been
lost forever."
And as quickly, as unexpectedly as that, it all came together for
Sisko. Everything Terrell had said and, more importantly, what she had not
said. He took a deep breath. "I know the questions you need
answered," he said. He nodded at the other prisoners.
"Let them go."
"And you'll tell me everything I want to know?"
"Yes," Sisko said. It was not a lie, and it was not
capitulation. The truth was, he could answer her ques-tions now, but she
would not be able to use what he told her.
"Very well," Terrell said. She aimed her phaser at Jake.
"But you will tell me everything I want to know before I let
everyone go. Or I will kill them all, starting with this one."
It took all of Sisko's self-control not to respond automatically.
He told himself her threat was hollow. After all, she could have killed
everyone but him the moment she and Atrig and Dr. Betan made their presence
known. But she didn't. Could it be she actually does see herself as a force
for peace? he asked himself. In her twisted mind, is there really some
ethical compunction not to kill?
He made his decision. "You don't want to kill them, Terrell.
You told me yourself. You're a scientist, an explorer. All you really want is
information. And I will give it to you. Once I know my son and the rest
of my people are safe."
His eyes met hers without flinching.
'Terrell," Dr. Betan warned. "You can't trust him."
Terrell didn't turn away from Sisko's steady gaze. She motioned
him to rise to his feet. "I believe I can. Computer: Run Odo Ital,
One."
At once, the holosuite became a duplicate of the station's
security office. Sisko looked around carefully, noting that it was not an exact
duplicate. Some of the wall displays were different. And the Promenade beyond
the transparent door panels was drab, washed
out by dim blue light. Then he realized where he was, and when.
"Odo's office from the time of the Occupation," he said.
"Fitting, don't you think?" Terrell said. She gestured
to Atrig and Dr. Betan to move the rest of their prisoners into the simulated
holding cells.
Sisko heard Quark's indignant protest, "This is not one of my
programs."
"The systems of Terok Nor are integrated in ways you can't
imagine," Terrell said to Sisko in explanation.
"The Obsidian Order?" Sisko said, rather than asked.
"Precisely, Captain. As you know, to observe everyone all
the time requires immense computational ability. Even these holosuites are connected
to the station's main computers, though not by links any of your engineers
would ever suspect."
The last prisoner to be locked up was Odo. By now, the constable
had regained consciousness, though he was still groggy. Atrig and Dr. Betan
pushed him into the last cell, then activated the force field.
Now, only Sisko and the three Cardassians were free.
Sisko stood outside the force field sealing the holding cells. He
looked at Jake.
"Satisfied?" Terrell asked.
"How long will this simulation run?" Sisko asked.
"Thirteen hours. More than enough time for me to go where I
need to go next, and for you to tell me what I need to know."
Sisko stiffened. She was changing the rules on him
again. "Why don't I tell you what you need to know, and then
you go wherever it is you have to go."
Terrell shook her head. "I'm willing to trust you. Captain.
But only to a point."
She lifted her wrist communicator. 'This is Terrell. Four to beam
out. Energize."
And then, before Sisko could protest or even say a last word to Jake,
he was lifted out of Deep Space 9, on his way to wherever it was that Terrell
needed him to go.
CHAPTER 23
the moon of Jeraddo was a seething crimson orb of gas
wreathed in violent, thousand-kilometer filaments of blazing-blue lightning.
Three years ago, the moon's molten core had been tapped to produce
power for Bajor, the world it orbited, an ingenious concept first developed by
the Klingons. Decades ago, that initial concept's design flaws had caused the
spectacular destruction of the Empire's main generation facility on the moon of
Praxis. The flaws had since been corrected by assiduous Federation engineers
focusing a low-level subspace inversion field on the moon's core. As a result,
the normal convection of heat generated by the decay of natural radioactives
had been accelerated a thousandfold.
In less than a year, the end result of the convection would have
been to turn the entire moon into molten
rock. But a clever feedback loop allowed the excess heat of the
moon's core to be shunted into subspace and collected by orbiting conversion
platforms. There, the enormous energy imbalance was transformed. Extremely
high-frequency subspace waves were changed to more-easily-controlled midrange
frequen-cies, which could be safely transmitted to Bajor's power grid.
The engineers who maintained the system likened it to setting off
an antimatter bomb in a flimsy wooden box, and then only allowing the energy to
escape through a very small hole in one side. The slightest miscalculation
could result in the sudden release of all the energy at once, vaporizing
the box—or, in this case, Jeraddo and whatever hemisphere of Bajor it was over
at the time. But as long as everything performed according to specs, Jeraddo
would be providing power to Bajor for the next thousand years.
And the only cost for that benefit was that what had once been an
inhabited class-M moon, was now a class-Y demon world on which an unprotected
visitor would live for less time than it took to draw a breath. Whether death
would come from the toxic corrosive crimson clouds, the sudden atmospheric
pressure waves of 1200-degrees-Celsius heat, or the wildly fluctuating gravity
fields that were a byproduct of the subspace inversion at the moon's core no
one could predict. Nor did anyone particularly care. All possibilities were
equally unpleasant and equally fatal.
The ship that now took up a nonstandard orbit around the hellish
moon appeared to be an ordinary Sagittarian cruiser, its gleaming yellow hull
making electric contrast with Jeraddo's red clouds.
The cruiser was as long as the Defiant but no more
than half its width. For redundancy—not efficiency— its back third
was ringed by four half-size warp nacelles. Its middle third was covered almost
completely with pressure hatches for twenty-four escape modules—one for every
five passengers and crew, though each had seating and supplies for ten. And the
front third was thick with ablative shielding on its forward surfaces. Any
impact with an unexpected body would first be absorbed by the hull, then by the
"crush zone" provided by the forward cargo storage holds. All was
designed to protect the all-important passenger cabins amidships.
In short, it was a typical conservative, civilian ship, designed
for safety above all else.
Which is why it looked so out of place this close to Jeraddo, a
world where even establishing a standard orbit risked the survival of a ship.
Inside the cruiser, though, Sisko had a better sense of the
vessel's survivability. Though it looked Sagittarian on the outside, it was pure
Cardassian within.
"A Chimera-class, vessel" Terrell had called it.
She and Sisko both knew that in times of war, a neutral vessel could be a much
safer means of transportation. Especially when it was liberally outfitted with
hidden weapons and capable of outrunning almost any other ship in the sector.
"You actually plan to beam down there?" Sisko asked as
he watched a false-color image of the moon's hidden surface scroll across the
main bridge viewer of Terrell's cruiser. Though the thick clouds of the moon
prevented any direct visual observation of its surface, the cruiser's sensors
had no difficulty picking up ground detail.
"We've found the abandoned village," Terrell said. She
was in the command chair—an imposing black structure that had the silhouette of
a looming bat. Atrig was her navigator, seated at a forward console. Sisko
didn't know where Dr. Betan was."And from the details on that map, we can
narrow down the Orb's; location to perhaps a square kilometer
surface area, and search."
"I'm curious," Sisko said.
"I should hope so," Terrell replied.
"How did you manage to misplace an Orb on the station and
have it turn up on this moon?"
Terrell stood up from her chair. Typical of Cardassian design,
the chair was mounted on a meter-high platform so that the commander would
always be above the crew. "It's not the same Orb, Captain. It's the
second. When I find it, then I can return to Terok Nor and find the
first."
"And then what?"
"And then, with Vash's Orb I will have all three, and I will
not need equipment to open a wormhole. According to the ancient texts we've
deciphered, I merely have to bring the three Orbs together... anywhere I
choose." She stepped down from her command platform and walked forward to
Atrig's navigation console to check the readings on his display. "We're
coming up on the village now."
On the viewer, Sisko detected a grouping of primitive, blocky
structures slide into view, arranged just as he recalled seeing on Dal
Nortron's map. Though the crisp layout of the village seemed to be obscured,
somehow.
"Is that debris?" he asked.
Terrell made more adjustments on the console and
the sensor image of the village expanded on the screen and became
more detailed.
"Some of the buildings appear to have collapsed,"
Terrell observed. "But with the winds and the gravity fluctuations, that's
to be expected."
A door slipped open, and Dr. Betan walked slowly onto the bridge.
He was wearing a bulky Cardassian environmental suit, shiny green-black in
color, made up of curved segments to look even more like a beetle's carapace
than any other Cardassian uniform Sisko had seen.
In his gloved hands, Dr. Betan carried the red hourglass-shaped
crystal which Vash had brought to DS9. Sisko was startled to see that it wasn't
as impenetrably dark as it had first appeared to be.
"See that?" Terrell said. "That glow inside?"
She looked at Sisko. "It means it's getting closer to its missing
mate."
"You seem to have everything under control," Sisko said.
"Not quite," Terrell said curtly. "You still have
to answer my questions."
Sisko had known that was coming. "You won't like the
answers."
"I think I will. Because if you're thinking of disappointing
me, remember that Terok Nor is still running under manual-control conditions,
and it will be several hours before anyone goes looking for your missing staff
and your son. They are right where I left them— which makes them easy for me to
find."
"All right. You want to know how to negotiate with the
wormhole aliens," Sisko said.
Terrell nodded. "I know the science of wormholes. But the
aliens are an X-factor. You've dealt with them
and returned. My people never did. What's your secret?"
Dr. Betan pressed a small control on a side bulkhead and a panel
beside a small transporter platform skid open to reveal four environmental
suits in storage racks. Terrell gestured to them. "We don't have much
time."
Sisko went to the suit Dr. Betan pointed out It seemed to be the
right size.
"There is no secret," he said. "The Prophets—the aliens—are
in complete control the entire time. They initiate contact. They control the
length of contact. And then they terminate contact." He stepped into the
trouser section of the suit, and then watched as the imbedded pressure rings
expanded to extend the legs to the proper length.
Terrell's voice was tense. "Then under what conditions could
you see them refusing to let a traveler leave their wormhole?"
Sisko held up his arms so Dr. Betan could slide the chest piece
over his head.
'Terrell, you told me I was too caught up in thinking about the
Orbs. What if you're too caught up in thinking about the wormhole as simply
another dimension?"
Terrell was more used to the suits than was Sisko. She was already
dressed, needing only to attach her helmet. "Explain."
"The Bajorans believe their wormhole, the Blue Wormhole, is
the home of their gods. In a sense, it's their heaven. But if you've truly
discovered a second wormhole..."
"Don't even suggest it," Terrell threatened.
"Heaven and hell, as you call them—supernatural realms of
eternal reward and eternal punishment—are not worthy of
scientific discussion or consideration." She strode over to Sisko and
lifted a helmet from the rack behind him. "Life is everywhere in our
universe, Captain. In the most unlikely ecological niche, on almost every
world, we find something that qualifies as living matter. Why can't you accept
that different dimensional realms also harbor life, without having to invoke
superstition?"
"Just a suggestion," Sisko said. "The Prophets or
aliens or whatever you'd like to call them can be unnerving, I'll admit. And I
don't usually have any idea what it is they want when they contact me. But
they've never kept me in their realm against my will. Why they, or beings like
them, didn't allow your people to return, I can't say."
"Keep thinking,"
Terrell said tersely as she snapped Sisko's helmet closed and sealed it. The
helmet was a hemisphere of something transparent that curved from a shell-like
shoulder unit. At once, all sound was muffled except for the rasp of Terrell
and Dr. Betan breathing over the suit's comm link, and Terrell's voice.
"I'm sure you'll come up with something more useful in the next
hour."
"Why an hour?"
"Because that's just about how long these suits will stand up
to the corrosive atmosphere down there." She stepped up on the transporter
platform at the side of the bridge. Sisko saw Dr. Betan do the same and
followed.
Here we go, Sisko
thought.
"Atrig," Terrell said tensely. "Energize."
And then Sisko dissolved into light, and reformed in absolute
darkness.
CHAPTER 24
quark didn't know what made him feel worse. The fact that
Captain Sisko had been kidnapped by crazed Cardassians who might soon have the
means to conquer the galaxy, or the fact that his holosuites were wired into
the station's main computers and apparently had far more computational
capability than he had ever dreamed of, let alone charged for, in the past ten
years.
He lightly moved his finger toward the open area at the front of
his holding cell and marveled again at the sudden shock of the simulated
security forcefield. "Amazing," he said.
"Oh, be quiet," Odo grumbled.
The changeling was sitting on the edge of the bunk at the back of
the cell, holding his head.
"Well, I see you're back to being your old self," Quark
said.
"Quark, I'm warning you ..."
"No need. No need. In fact, I'm going to be especially nice
to you while we're in here."
Quark loved the way Odo looked up at him then. The constable was
so easy to bait.
"And why would that be?" Odo asked, sounding as if he
already regretted saying anything at all.
"Because we're finally in a position where everyone will have
to listen to me, and you can't walk out, or threaten to haul me off to your
office."
"You're babbling, Quark."
Quark went back to the cell opening and called out to the others.
"Excuse me! Can I have everyone's attention, please?"
The cell across from Quark's held Bashir, Kira, and Jadzia. Jake
and Nog were in the cell to the right. They all stepped forward to the limits
of their own security forcefields to look at Quark.
"We're listening," Bashir said. The doctor sounded
exhausted. Or frustrated. Or hungry. With Hew-mons, Quark knew, it was
difficult to tell.
"Well, I just wanted to remind everyone what Odo said about
what happened to him on the Day of Withdrawal."
Quark heard Odo get to his feet and come up behind him.
"Let it go, Quark. I got stunned by a looter. I missed the
whole day."
But Quark shook his finger at his nemesis. "Uh, uh, uh. Not
so fast. When Dr. Bashir asked if you were sure, you launched into a most convincing
story about how one of the things you missed was Gul Dukat scurrying off like
a vole deserting a ship seized by bailiffs."
§ Odo glared at him, but said nothing. Quark knew it was because
there was nothing he could say. Not now.
Quark finished the conversation by calling out to the others.
"But even I remember when Gul Dukat left because it was early in the day, before
the fighting broke out. So if Odo remembers coming down to die
Promenade to break up a fight, then he has to remember Dukat's leaving,
so one way or another, he's hiding something—which means he's tying to
us!"
"Happy now?" Odo asked.
"I'll be happy when you admit you can't remember what
happened to you on the Day of Withdrawal."
"Then you'll never be happy again," Odo said, and walked
back to the bunk and sat down with a grunt.
"Quark!" Jadzia called out to him. "This might not
be the time to revisit the past. We should try and find a way to shut down this
simulation."
Quark put his hands on his hips, thoroughly miffed. "Oh, I
get it. I get caught in a small white lie like, I thought you wanted me
to keep the change, or, I logged the payment into your account yesterday—it
must be the computer, and what happens? Everyone points their fingers at me
like ... like suddenly my pants are on fire. Typical Ferengi, you say. Isn't
that just like Quark, you say.
"But catch Odo, our constable, our shining exemplar of truth,
justice, and the Federation way, in a lie of supernova proportions, and what do
you say?" Quark raised his voice in a not very convincing parody of
Jadzia. "This isn't the time to revisit the past." He turned his back
on everyone. "Well, I'm sick of it."
His ears tingled as he heard Jadzia sigh. Then she called out,
"Anyway, Quark, you must have some kind
of override on your holosuites. Can't you try shutting it
down?"
Quark raised his hands to the simulated ceiling. "Don't you
people get it? This isn't one of my holoprograms. My prisons have
chains on the wall, metal rings on the floor, a complete selection of whips and
restraints for every taste, and your choice of beverage. I have no idea where
this came from."
"Could you at least try?" Jadzia asked.
Quark huffed with impatience. "Computer, end program. There,
are you happy?"
"Try an override, please."
"Computer, this is Quark. I need an emergency shutdown in
holosuite A."
"Please state your password," the computer voice
replied.
Quark froze. How could he reveal his password to ... everyone?
Odo seemed to be able to read his mind. "Quark, you can
change your password later. We need to get out now."
Quark cleared his throat. "Computer ... this is Quark.
Password... and I don't want to hear any snickering," he suddenly warned
his audience. "Password ... Big Lobes."
Quark rolled his eyes as Nog covered his mouth and seemed to go
into either a gagging or a coughing fit, Quark really didn't care to think
which.
"Big Lobes authenticated," the computer confirmed.
"Emergency shutdown procedure is not available."
"What?! Why not?" Quark demanded.
"Priority override is in effect during state of emergency.
This simulation will run for an additional two
hours, thirty-three minutes, or until terminated by Prefect
Terrell."
Quark shrugged, totally defeated. His lot in Me. "Well,
that's that. The station's computer is controlling mine."
"But it can't be in complete control." Nog said
with sudden inspiration. "For this simulation to exist the station's
computer has to be using subroutines from your computer."
"So?" Quark said.
"So," Nog answered as he stepped to the back of the
holding cell he shared with Jake, "maybe one of those subroutines is the
safety override, which means these forcefields might be just for show."
Quark wasn't impressed with his nephew's idea. "And how do
you expect to find out if—"
"Nog!" The shout came from Jake as the young Ferengi charged forward to
test his theory and—
—hit a full-power forcefield that threw him back against the far
wall of the cell with twice the force with which he had launched himself.
Quark saw his nephew slide unconscious to the deck with a soft
moan as his headskirt slid up the back of bis head until it flopped forward to
cover his face like a baby's sleeping bonnet.
Quark sighed. "That's Starfleet initiative for you."
He looked out past the Security Office to the doors to the
Promenade. As gloomy as it was out there, in the abnormal blue Cardassian
lighting Quark remembered so well and hated so much from the old days on the
station, he could see simulated people walking back and forth. Bajoran slave
workers and Cardassian soldiers, mostly. It was a very realistic effect, but it
was still only window dressing. "If this simulation is
so accurate, I wish we could get one of those pedestrians out
there to come in," Quark sighed.
Odo snorted. "If it's an accurate simulation from the
Occupation, no one will. This wasn't the favorite place on the station for
Bajorans or Cardassians."
"Or Ferengi," Quark said.
And then the main doors slid open and someone entered.
"Anyone home?" a familiar voice shouted.
Quark stared in amazement, along with everyone else in the holding
cells, as a human in a tuxedo four hundred years out of style strolled into the
cell area, smiling with blinding white teeth.
"Vic!" Quark burbled.
"Hey, gang," the holographic mid-twentieth-century
lounge singer said as he gazed around the room. "Looks like you cats could
use a cake with a file baked in it."
"I don't know what you're talking about, but I don't
care," Quark said. "Ya gotta get us outta here!"
"I know, I know," Vic said calmly. "You're
innocent, right?"
"We're more than innocent," Odo said. "We've been
put here by the real criminals who are now running loose."
"Oh, I believe it, Constable. A straight arrow like you'd
never end up in a joint like this." Vic looked over to see Kira and smiled
at her. "Unless it was on accounta some dame. How ya doin', sweetheart?
Stretch still treating you right?"
"Vic," Kira said, "how can you be here?"
Vic shrugged. "Ya got me, dollface. There I am, up on stage
at my joint, singing my heart out for the blue-rinse set, next thing I know the
lights start flickering
and the power goes out. Well, management's not too upset, 'cause
they've got lots of battery lights to keep the gaming tables going, but me, I
got no mike. And the ice is starting to melt."
"Vic," Odo said, "I'm sure this is all fascinating
but could you go back to the center office, and open the little drawer to the
left of the chair, right under the dis-play screen."
"Is that going to help get the power back on?"
It was suddenly all too much for Quark. "How can you care
about power when your program wasn't even running? When we came up here, all
the holosuites were off except for this one."
"Quark, bubeleh, I keep hearing you people say the
holosuite's off, how can I keep hanging around? But I gotta tell ya, Vic's is
the original we-never-close baby. Now how that works, I don't have clue one.
I'm just a hologram remember, and it sounds like you have issues you need to
take up with the big guy upstairs."
"The big guy upstairs?" Quark asked.
"Felix," Vic explained. "My programmer."
"Vic," Odo pleaded. "The drawer."
"You got it, pallie. What exactly am I looking for?"
"An optolithic data rod," Odo said.
Vic held up his hands. "Whoa, slow down, Stretch. I'm
strictly a twentieth-century hologram."
"It's going to look like a pencil," Jadzia suddenly
said. "A fat, transparent, green pencil. Like it's made out of... oh, what
was it... plexiglass! "
"That new space-age plastic. Sure, I'm with ya." Vic
stretched out his arms to make his white cuffs show against his black jacket.
"Little drawer, ya said? On the left?"
"If you would be so kind," Odo said.
"Always willing to do a favor for the customers."
Vic walked out of the holding-cell area. Quark heard him whistle
one of his twentieth-century songs. Something about "that old black magic
. .."
"How can this be possible?" Kira asked wonderingly.
"Vic's stepped into other holographic simulations
before," Bashir explained. "If his program's being affected by all
the computer disruption that's going on, it seems to make sense that he might
go looking for a cause."
"The important thing is," Jadzia added, "that however
he got here, he's going to get us out."
"Don't be too sure about that," Vic said. He was
standing back in the doorway, holding the optolithic crystal in his hand.
"I mean, this is something cats like me can only dream of." He
paused, smiled at everyone until Quark almost screamed with frustration to have
him get to the point. "A real captive audience," Vic said.
"Badda bing!"
"Put the fat green pencil in the slot by the door
frame," Odo said.
"Captive audience?"
Vie asked. "Anybody? I know you're out there. I can hear ya
breathing."
"Vic," Jadzia said. "If we don't get out of here as
quickly as possible, there's a chance that the station's entire power grid
could fail and—"
"I get the picture, Spots. The Big Lights Out." Vic went
to the security operations control panel beside the door, held up the data rod.
"Here?"
"That's it," Odo said. "Slide it in, then punch in
this number."
Vic slid the rod into the memory reader, then scratched his head
as he stared at the Cardassian control pad. "Punch it in where?"
Jadzia came to the rescue again. "What's the number,
Odo?"
"Fifty-five, twenty-two, eight. Alpha," Odo said.
Quark repeated it to himself, then noticed Odo frowning at him.
"It's an old passcode. Big Lobes."
Then Jadzia carefully described the Cardassian symbols Vic would
have to touch to input those numbers. "It's all Greek to me, doll,"
Vic said as he entered the final Alpha designator.
But at once the security forcefields flickered and Jadzia and Kira
and Bashir jumped out of their cells to join Vic, while Jake carefully carried
the still-unconscious Nog. Quark hung back to let Odo walk through their cell
opening first. Once he knew it was safe, he quickly followed. By then Odo had left
the others and hurried into the center office.
Vic rubbed his hands together. "So, whaddaya say you all come
back to my place—drinks are on the house."
"We can't just yet," Jadzia said. "We still have to
shut down this simulation."
Vic looked alarmed. "Hold your horses. You can't shut
anything down while I'm in here."
"Can't?" Jadzia asked. "Or shouldn't?"
"Ya got me, Spots. I just said the first thing Felix put in
my head. You people going to be okay, now?"
Odo appeared in the doorway holding a Cardassian phaser. "We
will be soon."
"What kinda crazy pea-shooter is that?" Vic asked.
Odo adjusted the power setting on the weapon. "A Cardassian
Model III phase-disruption weapon."
"Well, I'm glad you cleared that up," Vic said.
"Stand back everyone," Odo said, then aimed the weapon
at the far wall.
"What good is a simulated weapon going to do?" Kira
asked.
"You don't spend enough time in the holosuites," Odo
said. "Small props like these are usually replicated, not simulated. This
should be a fully operational phaser, and as Nog was good enough to
demonstrate, all safety protocols are switched off."
Quark groaned. "There goes my insurance...."
"You might want to avert your eyes," Odo warned. Then he
fired.
At first, it appeared as if the lance of energy shot out eight
meters to hit a wall. But then, that half of the holding cell area began to
waver, and finally winked out, as it now appeared that the phaser beam had hit
a wall only half that distance away.
Quark grimaced as three clusters of green holoemitters exploded
and the entire simulation of the security office disappeared.
"Someone's going to pay for that," he complained.
"Oh, be quiet, Quark."
Quark couldn't be sure who had said that, because almost everyone
did. Then Quark saw Vic. It was not a pleasant sight.
The hologram was wavering, sparking with holographic scan lines,
and going transparent.
"Y'know, gang, all of a sudden, I'm not feeling so hot."
Bashir went to Vic as if his medical skills might have some use
for a hologram. "Maybe you should head back to the club, Vic."
"You're not just whistlin' Dixie."
"Uh," Bashir said, "is that a Yes?"
Vic nodded. "And I thought Rocket to the Moon at Disneyland
was an E-ticket...."
Quark looked at Odo who looked at Jake who looked at Kira who
looked at Jadzia who looked at Bashir... but it was unanimous. Nobody knew what
Vic was talking about.
Vic shuffled toward a wall of functional holoemitters and Quark
was surprised to see a gray metal door materialize, with a red sign reading exit just above it. "'See ya in
the funny papers," Vic said, then opened the door and stepped through it.
At once, his holographic body stopped shifting and he stood upright. From
beyond him, Quark could hear laughter, the clinking of coins, and the sound of
a twentieth-century band.
Vic spun around and pointed a finger at Quark. "Next time,
pallie, pay the man the light bill." Then he gave them all a casual
salute, the door swung shut, and he was gone.
"I have got to talk to Felix," Bashir said.
"That can wait," Jadzia told him.
It was Jake who explained why to Quark. "Now we rescue my
dad."
CHAPTER 25
sisko was in hell. It was the only way to describe what
Jeraddo had become.
The ground was nothing more than stone and shifting ribbons of
storm-driven dirt. The air was like something alive, one moment so thick that
all Sisko could see was his own reflection in the curve of his helmet, then
thin enough that the lights mounted on his shoulders stabbed ahead a few
meters. He cringed as roiling crimson swirls and eddies of corrosive gas appeared
like entrails, twisting all around him.
Sweat poured from Sisko's face and dripped from his beard. He
tried to tell himself that the environmental suit had been set for Cardassian
temperatures, but the temperature indicator on the narrow status display board
at the bottom of his helmet showed an outside temperature of more than 800
degrees, with wild swings of several hundred more degrees every few minutes. He
utterly failed to convince himself that the suit's insulation was as robust as
the type Starfleet used.
"Stop, Captain!" Terrell's harsh voice crackled at him
through his helmet speakers. The same subspace distortions that caused
Jeraddo's gravity to intensify and weaken, as if Sisko were on the deck of a
madly pitching sailing ship, also interfered with the suit's communicator. In
the twenty minutes they had already spent on the surface, Sisko had calculated
that the communicators wouldn't work past ten meters, and even then he and the
Cardassians had to shout to make themselves heard over the static. He doubted
Terrell's tricorder could extend past that range, as well. And the only way
they could be beamed back to Terrell's disguised ship was because of the
high-power, tight-beam transporter beacons they each wore.
But even if he managed to run off and get out of range before
Terrell could fire at him, what good would it do him? Right now, his suit had
forty minutes' worth of life in it. If he pulled off his beacon so he couldn't
be traced, he still wouldn't be able to beam back to Terrell's ship. In less
than an hour he'd become another featureless mound of Jeraddo debris.
Terrell and Dr. Betan stepped up on either side of Sisko, their
own shoulder lights blinding as they converged on him.
Terrell pointed to the left. "In that building," she
said.
Dr. Betan held up the Red Orb and swung it slowly toward the
ancient stone wall to which Terrell pointed. The pale red light within the Orb
intensified slightly, then died down when Dr. Betan moved it away again.
Sisko trudged ahead. By now, he didn't need to be
told that he must always lead the way. Terrell had made it clear
that she was not willing to turn her back on him. The building, perhaps a craft
hall or a farmers' market a millennium ago, was larger than most in the
village. The wind-eroded outer wall was made of giant blocks of local stone
fitted together only with exceptional skill, not mortar.
The doorway through the wall was still in perfect condition, and
Sisko did not have to duck down as he stepped through it, though he half-bent at
the waist to aim his shoulder lights on what lay before him.
As he had suspected, the ground was littered with stones and tiles
from the collapsed roof. There might have been wooden beams involved in the
building's construction, but anything organic had been eaten away by the
corrosive atmosphere years ago.
"Watch your step!" he shouted to the two behind him.
"The floor is covered with roofing tiles." Then he stepped aside to
let Terrell and Betan enter.
Though billows of red cloud still roiled through the building, the
windblown dust and debris seemed lessened by the shelter of the walls. Sisko
noticed that his shoulder lights reached a bit farther, and the buffeting of
the gale-force winds that had threatened to topple him from time to time was no
longer in evidence.
Terrell and Dr. Betan were discussing something. They had a
comm-link channel separate from the one Terrell used with Sisko.
The glow of the Red Orb was much stronger now.
Sisko watched as Terrell used a tricorder, aiming it at the ground
and showing the results to Dr. Betan.
"There's a chamber under this floor," she informed
Sisko. "Dr. Betan's going to find a way down." Then Sisko and Terrell
stood and waited while Dr. Betan walked carefully back and forth across the rubble-strewn
floor, using the Red Orb as if it primitive dowsing tool. Sisko appreciated the
to rest.
He looked over at the tall Cardassian, through the flare of light
reflecting from Her dark eyes were wide. She was chewing <• her bottom lip.
But he didn't know if the gesture betrayed anticipation or nervousness. He
wasn't at all sure thai he could even come close to what was going through her
mind, no matter how much she thought that he and she were alike.
"You don't need me down here," he shouted with some
difficulty. His throat was becoming more and more raw. But he wanted to learn
if she had any intention of allowing him back to her ship. If she didn't, then
that might make it easier to ... make sure no one else made it back, either.
"I will," Terrell shouted back. "Dr. Betan will
keep Vash's Orb, but I need you to carry the second."
"Why?"
"Because you've survived contact with Orbs before. You of all
people must understand the danger these artifacts represent."
"The Orbs of the Prophets have never put me in danger,"
Sisko shouted. The exertion provoked a brief coughing jag. For a moment, he
wondered if his suit might already be leaking
Terrell peered at Sisko through her helmet. Its transparent
surface was already clouded from the corrosive atmosphere. "The Red Orb
claimed seven of my researchers. I won't risk touching them."
"What about Dr. Betan?"
"He handled the first Orb years ago on Terok Nor.
After that, he became addicted to neural depressants. By taking
them, he can't hear the voices. But it has left him with ... certain other
deficiencies. His temper, among them."
"Have any of you thought that perhaps these Orbs aren't
shaping up to be the best transportation system?" Sisko asked.
"Especially if they're driving the people who use them insane or to
drugs."
"There're ways around the Orb's psychic effects,"
Terrell said enigmatically. "That's why I had my soldiers save Quark from
hanging on the Day of Withdrawal. That Ferengi owes me his life."
Sisko didn't understand. Terrell gave him the explanation.
"Because he's a Ferengi. They're resistant to most forms of
telepathy. Even Betazoids can't get past those four brain lobes. Too complex?
Too simple? Who knows? Who cares? But I needed to get my Orb out of my lab
before the station self-destructed. So I told Atrig to bring me one of the
Ferengi from the Promenade, and he brought me Quark—and Odo."
Quark and Odo on the Day of Withdrawal, Sisko thought. He saw another pattern
forming.
"What about Garak?" he asked.
"Very good, Captain. Garak came on his own. He and I never
really got along but Gul Dukat and he were involved in something ... it's not
important." Terrell frowned, as if remembering something unpleasant.
"But he and Odo and Quark did enter my lab that day—along with the two
soldiers whose bodies you found fused to the hull. I always wondered what happened
to them." She fell silent, as if lost in thought.
Sisko touched her arm. "What happened to Quark and Odo and
Garak?"
Terrell roused herself, checking ahead for Dr. Betan. who was
still wandering back and forth with the Orb, then turned again to Sisko.
'Twenty-two minutes before the self-destruct went off, the three of them
staggered out of my lab. The precursor effect had. already faded, and when I
looked inside, the Red Orb was gone. At first, I was certain Quark had stolen
it and hidden it somewhere. But then, why would he have come back to me? There
wasn't any time for an investigation so I stunned them again and left the station. I thought everything would be lost when it autodestructed."
"But it didn't."
Even through her clouded helmet, Sisko could see Terrell's
terrifying smile as she bared her teeth at him. "And if you knew how much
time the Obsidian Order spent investigating why the autodestruct system failed
... the record number of executions.... Even for the Order."
"Starfleet could never understand why you left the station
behind."
"Well, now you know," Terrell rasped. "We never
intended to."
Then Terrell turned sharply away from him, and Sisko realized she
must have received a transmission from Dr. Betan, who was about fifteen meters
ahead of them, pointing down at the ground and—
Sisko blinked as he saw Dr. Betan fire a phaser blast into the
ground. Then he heard Terrell again.
"He's found a way down. The Orb's not far."
Terrell began trudging toward Dr. Betan. Sisko walked beside her.
He checked his suit display. Thirty-two minutes of life remaining. If the
Cardassian suit design could be trusted.
Halfway to Dr. Betan, Sisko caught sight of the liquid wave of
rock that rose up behind the Cardassian, then swept forward, heading directly
for him.
Instinctively he cried out, "GRAVITY WAVE!" then spun
around to see Terrell beside him, screaming silently in her helmet to warn her
associate.
Sisko dropped to his knees and wrapped both arms tight across his
helmet. A moment later he felt as if he were falling, as the local gravity
gradient dropped by at least ninety percent and then shot up by an almost
instant tripling.
He was driven into the rubble so hard he felt stones push up into
his flesh through all the insulating layers of his suit. Sisko lay unmoving on
his back, instinctively holding his breath as he listened for the telltale
hiss of atmosphere that would mean his death. But finally, all he heard was
Terrell's harsh voice telling him to get up and hurry.
Apparently, Dr. Betan had also survived the sudden gravitational
anomaly, but the hole the Cardassian had blasted into the stone floor of the
building was now half-filled with rubble. Under one arm, Dr. Betan still held
the Red Orb Vash had brought to the station. It glowed steadily now. The red
light within seeming almost to pulsate.
"Down there," Terrell ordered as she aimed her shoulder
lights into the pit Dr. Batan had created.
Sisko moved cautiously to the side of the opening, then peered
down, awkward in his stiff suit. There was another stone floor about four
meters below. Dr. Betan had already thrown a rope down to assist Sisko's
descent. The other end was attached to an anchor loop on his belt, and Terrell
stood beside him, coiling the rest of the rope in her gloved hands.
"Dr. Betan says that according to the way the Orb is glowing,
the other Orb is no more than five meters in that direction." She pointed,
and Sisko found a reference mark on the floor below. He took the rope in his clumsy
Cardassian gloves and slowly edged himself off the side and into the hole.
Sisko dropped the first two meters at an alarmingly rapid rate
before Terrell and Dr. Betan steadied him. A few seconds later, he was standing
on the floor and looking around at—
Sisko gasped.
Across from him, in the direction in which the second Orb was
supposed to be found, was a pristine wall carved with the largest Bajoran mural
he had ever seen.
"What's wrong?" Terrell's voice crackled in his helmet.
"Nothing," Sisko shouted back. "If the Orb's down
here, it might be hidden in a wall. I'll check it out."
Then he walked slowly over to the mural and lightly traced its
exquisite details with his gloved fingers. He recognized some of the older
word-forms that ran along the top and bottom of the mural and felt an odd combination
of relief and disappointment when he could not find any reference to "the
Sisko." But still, whatever events were depicted in the carving, they
involved the Bajoran wormhole and the Prophets. Those word-forms and symbols he
was able to read easily.
"Twenty-five minutes," Terrell's voice announced.
Sisko couldn't let this opportunity go to waste. He fumbled with
the Cardassian tricorder built into his suit and programmed it for a full
spectral scan of the mural. At the same time, he stepped back to see if he
could find any place that an Orb might be ...
There. In the mural. The distinctive Bajoran spiral that signified
the opening of the Celestial Temple. Though this spiral curved the opposite way
from most others Sisko had seen.
"I think I might have found something," Sisko called
out. "Just a minute."
He moved closer to the stone block in which the spiral was
carved. It didn't fit tightly to the other stones in the wall. He pressed his
body against it.
The stone block swung up, little more than a slender slab of rock.
And behind it, in a hollow chamber no larger than an Orb Ark, a
second Red Orb glowed brightly, throwing off small flares of red light, almost
like the Blue Orbs Sisko had seen in the past.
"I've found it," Sisko reported to Terrell.
Her only answer was, "Nineteen minutes."
Carefully, Sisko removed the Orb from its protective shelter. As
he did so, he felt no ill effects. Heard no voices. Sensed no sudden
disorientation, the way he usually did at the start of an Orb experience.
Whatever this thing was, it was not an Orb of the Prophets. At least, there was
nothing in its behavior to suggest it was one.
Sisko carried the Orb back to the point at which he was below the
opening Dr. Betan had made. He paused, half-expecting to hear Terrell tell him
to tie the Orb to the rope for them pull it up, to be left here to spend the
rest of his life—all eighteen minutes of it— to contemplate their betrayal.
Instead, Terrell told him to tie the rope to his belt, so they
could pull both him and the Orb up.
Sisko did, keeping a tight grip on the Orb.
By the time he had emerged from the hole in the
floor, both Orbs were blazing brightly enough that they couldn't
be looked at directly. The brilliance of their internal light also made it
clear how badly his own helmet had been scarred and etched by Jeraddo's
atmosphere.
Terrell's helmet glowed as if lit from within by flames. Sisko
couldn't see her face. "Excellent," he heard her say before she
called out for Atrig. "Lock onto our beacons and energize."
In that split second, as he waited for the transporter effect,
Sisko suddenly knew that Terrell couldn't be allowed to control the Red Orbs.
Almost without thought, he swung the Orb he had retrieved directly
at Dr. Betan's helmet.
As the Cardassian doctor stumbled backward, horrified, dropping
Vash's Orb to press his gloves to the rapidly growing network of cracks that
spread across his corroded helmet, Sisko yanked his own transporter beacon off
and threw it away.
Terrell was still fumbling for her phaser as she began to dissolve
in the transporter beam.
Dr. Betan's helmet suddenly exploded like fine crystal an instant
before he was beamed away as well. And then, a moment later, Sisko saw the pale
glimmer of his own discarded transporter beacon as it also disappeared.
Sisko didn't stop to ask himself what he thought he had done.
Instead, with only fifteen minutes of life remaining, he concentrated only on
what he still had to do.
He tucked Vash's Orb under one arm, secured the second Orb under
his other arm, then began to run.
He knew he had only fifteen minutes in which to hide the Red Orbs
so they could never be found again. Not by Terrell, not by anyone.
Within seconds, Sisko was through a breach in the wall and onto a
narrow path between two collapsed buildings. The Orbs, so close together now,
were throwing off almost the same amount of light as his shoulder lights. But
visibility was still less than a handful of meters. By now, he knew, with the
subspace distortion Terrell's ship would never be able to scan for him.
In fact, Sisko realized, if he were Terrell, he wouldn't come
chasing after him at once. Instead, he'd wait the fifteen minutes for his
target to die and use the time to put on a new environmental suit, knowing that
when his target's suit finally succumbed to the atmosphere, the Orbs would not
be going anywhere.
Reasoning that he would not be pursued at once, Sisko paused to
get his bearings, recalling that there was another large building to his left.
One with a single standing wall. If he could place the two Orbs near that wall
and somehow topple the wall onto them, with any luck he'd shatter one or both
Orbs, or at least make certain they were buried under tonnes of rubble.
Terrell's cruiser couldn't remain in orbit of Jeraddo for too
long. All Sisko had to do was introduce a delay.
This last mission would become his life's work. All twelve minutes
of it.
Sisko hurried through the ground-level twisting, crimson clouds,
the red of the atmosphere swirling around him merging with the red nimbus of
the glowing Orbs he carried.
Finally, he located the wall, and made out the shape of a
relatively flat paving stone on which he could place the Orbs. All that he
needed now was some way to dislodge the wall, get it started falling in the
right direction.
He decided to check out the far side. He couldn't afford to waste
the time it would take to make his way around it. So he risked tearing his suit
as he half-clambered over a pile of rubble at its side and—
—wedged his boot.
Sisko groaned.
He was trapped two meters above ground level, visible from any
direction, with no place to hide the Orbs.
To die for a cause was something every member of Starfleet had to
prepare for. It was part of their oath.
But to die for nothing?
Sisko trembled with frustration as he tugged at his boot. He
picked up another rock and bashed the offending boot with it. But ah1
he managed to do was wedge it in deeper.
"Warning," his suit's computer suddenly announced.
"Loss of atmospheric integrity in three minutes."
"No!" Sisko roared. "You're wrong. I have ten minutes
at least!"
But there was no arguing with his internal displays. The
insulation field was within five minutes of failing. His backup air supply was
completely exhausted, its tanks probably already dissolved by the acid air.
He wondered how far he could get if he took off his boot and
decompressed. Maybe he could last thirty seconds. But would he even be able to
move with his exposed foot contacting 800-degree rocks?
"No," Sisko whispered. And then there was nothing for
him to do but to lift up the rock in his hand and smash it against the Red Orbs
of Jalbador.
Again and again he brought the rock down.
His suit informed him that only two minutes remained before loss
of atmospheric integrity.
Again he smashed the Orbs.
But the simple matter of normal space-time was no match for the
solidified energy vortices of a nonlinear realm.
The Orbs withstood his attack. Untouched.
"One minute .. ." his suit announced.
Sisko absolutely refused to give up without achieving his last
mission. He lifted one Orb over his head and with all his strength brought it
down on the other Orb.
The light they both shed did not change in the least.
Sisko girded himself to try again. Maybe I didn't do it hard
enough, he told himself. Maybe it will work the next time.
Again he lifted the Orb above his head, swung it down.
Again, nothing. "Thirty seconds The next time .. . Once
more he
it has to work the next time . . . lifted. He swung. He lifted. He swung.
"Five seconds ..."
With a cry of hope, rage, determination, he lifted that Red Orb as
high as he could possibly stretch and—
—he couldn't swing it down.
His arms were locked in position. Something was holding them.
He twisted around in the bulky Cardassian suit to see a white
shape glowing in the brilliance of his shoulder lights.
A luminous being.
Sisko gazed up at that form, at that being, and in that moment,
without knowing what he saw or how it could be that he saw anything on this
hellish world on which he was destined to die within an instant, he knew the
Orbs were safe.
The luminous being moved closer to nun, leaned down, details of
its existence impossible to see through the clouded corroded surface of his
helmet.
The luminous being put its arm around Sisko's shoulders, tapped
itself once, then all was still.
And an endless eternity later, an endless moment later, a new
light played over him as he stood locked in the embrace of the luminous being,
in the depths of this inferno.
In the light of a transporter beam, Sisko could finally see
through his helmet and the helmet of the angel who had come to save him.
Everything would be all right now.
It was Jake.
CHAPTER 26
"emissary," kira said, "are you absolutely sure this is what
you want to do?"
Sisko stood on the Promenade, outside the entrance to the Bajoran
Temple. In each hand he carried a simple cloth bag. And in each bag was a Red
Orb of Jalbador.
Less than twenty-six hours after his dramatic rescue on Jeraddo,
Deep Space 9 was nearly back to normal, if not yet fully recovered. There was
still a slight slant to the deck, but O'Brien had been released from the
Infirmary and was now leading the gravity-repair teams himself.
While most automated computer systems were still off-line, Jadzia,
with an unexpected assist from Garak, had finally located the long-hidden
Cardassian override programs Terrell had activated, and was replacing all the
individual isolinear rods on which they had
been encoded. Nog was fully recovered from his run-in with the
holographic forcefield and was in Ops with Jadzia and Garak, helping them with
their restoration efforts.
Of Terrell's fate no one knew. There was no record of a
Sagittarian cruiser breaking orbit of Jeraddo. The Bajoran Lunar Power
Commission had searched its records and had found sensor traces of the ship's
arrival. But preliminary evidence seemed to indicate a gravity disturbance
might have pulled it into a deadly descent.
Sisko had told Quark, Odo, and Garak what Terrell had told him
about what had happened to them on the Day of Withdrawal. Garak and Odo flatly
refused to believe her account. But Quark had started talking to Jake about
collaborating on a novel based on the incident—Marauder Mo and the Treasure
of Jalbador Quark wanted to call it. Jake had already warned Quark there
might be some copyright problems with his main character.
The Defiant was safely in dock again, after fielding the
massive search party that had led to his discovery at the very last moment.
Sisko had since learned that more than forty Starfleet personnel had taken part
in the intensive search of the abandoned village.
Moreover, Sisko reflected thankfully, in the time since the Defiant's
return, Commander Arla Rees hadn't engaged him in a single discussion about
Bajoran religion. Nor had she taken him up on his dinner invitation to meet
Kasidy Yates. And Prylar Obanak and his followers appeared to have disappeared
just as thoroughly as Terrell had managed to vanish over the clouds of Jeraddo.
Though no doubt the group of monks had gone back to ground on Bajor.
"I'm sure," Sisko now said to Kira, satisfied that he
was doing the right thing. "It's time to end it."
"We still don't know who killed Dal Nortron."
"Or who hid the Orb on Jeraddo," Sisko agreed. He lifted
the bags. "But with these in safe hands, we'll have time to sort it all
out at our leisure. The important thing is, the Orbs won't be in Cardassian
hands."
"I'd still feel better if Vash were off the station."
"And Satr and Leen. And Base. But Odo's dealing with them.
When it comes down to it, those four scoundrels are just petty thieves, led
astray by what these Orbs represent."
Kira suddenly looked serious. "What do they represent?"
Sisko smiled at her. "Let's leave that to the experts."
He entered the Temple, once again marveling at how each time he stepped through
the doorway, it felt like the first time.
Kai Winn was there to greet him, and she bowed her head much too
graciously. "Welcome, Emissary. It is always a pleasure to receive your
summons and put aside all that I am doing to come and see you here. I find the
long ride from Bajor to be an especially productive time for meditation and
prayer."
Every once in a while, Sisko was sorely tempted to just tell the
Kai to stow it, but he let her play out her little game.
"And you, my child," Kai Winn said ingratiatingly to
Kira, "how fulfilled you must be to stand at the Emissary's side during
these important events, watching all that he does."
"Very fulfilled," Kira replied, not a trace of conviction
within her voice.
"And these are the artifacts?" the Kai asked, looking at
the bags.
Sisko carefully pulled the Orbs from their wrappings and placed
them on a small table. The steady glow they had developed on Jeraddo had now
become a gentle pulsing, slowly dimming, slowly brightening, three times each
minute.
"Oh, my," the Kai said, "they are clever, aren't
they? I could see how many people might think they are somehow related to the
Orbs of the Prophets."
"I beg your pardon?" Sisko said. "These are the Red
Orbs of Jalbador."
The Kai smiled beatifically at Sisko. "Oh, Emissary, I know
you are new to our ancient traditions. Indeed, sometimes I wonder if anyone not
born on Bajor could ever come to grasp the rich complexities of our beliefs.
But I am not here to discuss the wisdom of the Prophets. Still, these ... Red
Orbs of Jalbador, they are but a legend from a troubled time in our past."
She shook her head. "And since they do not exist, I do not believe that I,
as a humble servant of the people of Bajor, can accept them. It might lend an
unwanted credence to their existence, and to other unfortunate legends best
left in children's storybooks."
Kira was outraged. "Kai Winn, you knew why we asked you up
here. These are the Orbs. Look at the way they're glowing."
"Child, though my ways are simple and I am certainly not as
worldly as some who look to me for guidance, I am no stranger to the wonders
of our age. I have seen many things glow, from phaser beams to a child's
glitterball. I am sure that as much as you and the Emissary might want to
believe in the tales of Jalbador, a few days of study would reveal the secret
of
these objects to be nothing more than some novel chemical
reaction."
"Then perform that study," Sisko said. "In fact, I
hope you do. Nothing could make me feel better than to know that these are some
ingenious forgery."
"Emissary, again I think you overestimate my abilities.
Which is not to say I am not flattered by your high esteem. But really, I
believe it is here, on Deep Space 9, in a temple of secular science as it were,
that the objects should be studied."
Sisko took a breath to calm himself. "Kai Winn, I am asking
for your help."
The Kai was barely able to look at Sisko, as if she were
embarrassed beyond words. "Emissary, you do me an honor for which I know I
am not worthy. But in this matter, I truly have no help to give." She
glanced disapprovingly at Kira. "May we speak in private?"
"Major Kira has my full confidence and trust."
The Kai's false smile became exceptionally brittle. "Very
well. I only wish to point out that many people look up to the Emissary as a
role model, a person who sets an example which can help them find their own
paths to the Prophets. And, with all humility, Emissary, to express your belief
in the legends of Jalbador, and in these so-called Orbs, well, that is not an
example right-thinking Bajoran people would want their children to
follow."
"I would think," Kira said angrily, "that the best
role model for Bajoran children would be one who encouraged the search for
truth."
The Kai blessed Kira with another blindingly insincere smile.
"Why, yes, my child, that is what you'd think."
"Kai Winn," Sisko said before Kira could escalate
the confrontation, "I'll make this simple. Take these Orbs to
Bajor and subject them to examination, or I will find some other religious
leader who will.And if these prove to have any connection to the
Prophets, I promise I will make the Bajoran people know that you tried to stand
in the Prophets' way."
That was the end of any pretence on the part of the Kai. She drew
herself up, the perpetual smile gone. "Your acceptance of those objects as
the Orbs of Jalbador marks your first step on the path to heresy. Do you
understand? Do you think you can remain Emissary with half the population of
Bajor believing you've become a religious fanatic?"
But Sisko knew this was an argument he couldn't lose. "You
forget, Kai, I wasn't elected Emissary. For whatever reason, the
Prophets chose me. And as their Emissary, I'm saying you don't have a
choice. Take the Orbs."
The Kai's chin lifted in defiance. "Very well, if you are so
certain these are the legendary Orbs, prove it. Find the third."
"It took sixty years to find these two. I have better things
to do."
"But it cannot be difficult, Emissary. Look how they're
pulsating with the fabled light of Jalbador."
Sisko wasn't sure what she meant and he could see that she knew
it.
The Kai's cruel smile was predatory. "You mean you claim
these are the Red Orbs—without knowing the whole legend?"
"Enlighten me," Sisko said.
The Kai clapped her hands together in delight, almost laughing at
him. "Two Orbs glow when coming close to each other. But three Orbs
pulse. It has been
years since I read the legends, Emissary, but I would say that
from the behavior of these ... Orbs, the third one is quite nearby."
Sisko looked at Kira. "The one Terrell lost."
Kira couldn't resist adding, "You mean, the one Terrell
thought Quark had stolen."
Sisko looked back at Kai Winn. "So if we find the third Orb,
you will take them back to Bajor for study?"
The Kai's ingratiating smile returned in full force. "Oh,
that will hardly be necessary, because you will be able to prove they are real
right away. You see, when the three Red Orbs are brought together, the doors to
Jalbador open freely, and then ... well, it is all in the legends,
Emissary."
"And then what, Kai?"
"Why then... the world comes to an end." This time the
Kai really did laugh at him. "So you can see where a great deal of study
would not be necessary. Either the objects are frauds, or they are real. And if
they are real, Emissary, you will have the singular pleasure of knowing you
have brought on the apocalypse." She sighed with pleasure. "Now you
know why the stories of the Red Orbs are so popular with children and the
unenlightened. They are quite ... lurid, wouldn't you say?"
"I'm sure you'd know better than we would," Kira said.
She gave Sisko a conspiratorial wink. "What do you say? Shall we go on a
wild Orb hunt?"
"You're not worried about the end of the world?" Sisko
asked with a smile, accepting the Bajoran major's challenge.
Kira looked directly at the Kai. "Somehow, I don't think the
Prophets would spend twenty thousand years trying to teach us about the
universe and our place in
it, and at the same time leave a big 'off' switch lying around."
Sisko picked up a Red Orb in each hand. "Kai
Winn, we'll be back."
"Of course you will be, Emissary. Because there are no such
things as the Red Orbs of Jalbador."
A few moments later, Sisko was standing on the slanted deck of the
Promenade, slowly moving the Orbs back and forth.
"That direction," Kira said, pointing spinward toward
Quark's. "The pulsing seemed to speed up a bit."
"Why, Major, I think you're enjoying this."
"What I'm going to really enjoy is helping the Kai carry
three of these things onto her shuttle."
Then it was Sisko's turn to laugh as he walked up the center of
the Promenade, swinging the Orbs to the left and to the right.
And he didn't need Kira to tell him that the pulsing increased the
closer they got to Quark's
Kira looked at Sisko. "Do you think he really did steal the
third one?"
"Only one way to find out," Sisko said lightly, and he
carried the Red Orbs of Jalbador into Quark's, where they proceeded to pulse
faster than Sisko's suddenly racing heart.
CHAPTER 27
"On, no," quark
said. "Not so fast! I don't want any of that in here!"
But he was too late, because Captain Sisko walked straight up to
the bar counter and put both Red Orbs side by side on it.
"Captain, please, those things are more trouble than they
could ever be worth. Things are—" Quark gave a strangled cry as he saw one
of the most terrifying sights he had ever seen in his life!
Morn was running out of his establishment of business!
"Morn! Wait! Come ... oh, for... now look what you did!"
Quark threw his dish towel down on the bar, in disgust. "My holosuites are
broken. My replicators are off-line. This stupid gravity imbalance is making
people dizzy without the need to consume any drinks, no one wants to play dabo
because the wheel won't
spin straight, and now you chase off my best customer. If you've
got a phaser on you, you might as well just shoot me now."
"Glad to see you, too, Quark," Kira said.
Sisko pointed to the Orbs. Quark had a turn! tine even looking at
them because they were flashing fife emergency strobe lights on Port
Authority inspection shuttles. And that just unleashed too many bad memories.
"We have reason to believe the third missing Orb is in your
bar and we want to take a look," Sisko said.
"I don't think so," Quark told him. "Unless we'd
like to discuss compensation for what Odo did to my holosuite."
"Maybe we'd like to discuss an increase in rent
instead?" Sisko suggested.
"For what?!"
"For what your inviting so many smugglers onboard is going to
cost us." Sisko looked up at the ceiling. "Let's see now, we could
begin with the bill for Odo's investigation. Then there's the replacement of
the damaged hull plates."
"Oh, no—you can't blame that one on me."
"Oh, yes he can," Kira said.
"Oh, yes I will," Sisko added.
"This is blackmail!" Quark protested.
"Then we're in complete agreement," Sisko said.
"You give us what we want—a few minutes to search the bar. And we'll give
you what you want—peace and quiet."
"And no rent increase."
Sisko picked up the flashing Orbs again. "May I?"
"Oh, go ahead," Quark said. "And I hope if you find
it, a Prophet jumps out and bites you."
Then Quark did the only thing he could do in the circumstances. He
put an elbow on the bar, rested his head in his hand, and watched his customers
leave in droves.
At any other time in his life, Quark might have found what Sisko
and Kira were doing amusing. The hew-mon and the Bajoran were walking
back and forth through the bar as if Odo had asked them to walk a white line.
But what wasn't amusing was that even Quark could see that every
time Sisko passed through the center of the main level, the Orbs flashed faster
and faster.
In less than ten minutes, all of his regular customers were gone.
Instead, the bar was packed with Starfleet types. Dull, boring,
root-beer-swilling slugs who wouldn't know a good time if M'Pella invited them
up to her room for a nightcap. And they were all on duty, too.
Then, just to make matters worse—and lately, someone or something
was always making matters worse—his idiot brother Rom chose this moment to walk
in. With a construction team.
"Is it too much to ask what's going on?" Quark called
out to anyone who might care to pay any attention to him.
Sisko came back to Quark. He pointed to the backlit glass mural on
the wall facing the bar counter. "How long has that been there?"
"You mean the... uh, Admiral?" Quark asked, looking at
the colorful artwork that was the centerpiece of his bar.
"Admiral?"
"Gul Dukat put it up. He said it was Admiral Alkene of the
Tholian Assembly. Go figure."
Sisko studied the admittedly abstract portrait with a frown.
"So it was here on the Day of Withdrawal?'
"You're not going to do something stupid, are you?"
Quark asked nervously.
"I hope not," Sisko said.
Quark was getting the definite impression that the captain was deliberately
tormenting him. Well, it took two to play that kind of game and, he wasn't one
of them.
He closed the till, locked the order padds, then left the bar to
join the Starfleet types at the base of the mural. The Orbs were now on the
deck in front of it, flashing madly. Chief O'Brien and Rom were kneeling to
either side, waving tricorders around like they knew what they were doing.
Jadzia stood behind them, looking exceptionally lovely as always, Quark
thought.
"Is there a problem?" he asked plaintively.
"I don't know," Sisko said. "According to the way
these two Orbs are reacting, the third Orb is behind that mural. But according
to the tricorders, it's just glass, plasma lights, and a cheap metal
frame."
"It wasn't cheap, believe you me."
O'Brien got to his feet and joined Sisko and Quark. "If I
didn't know better, I'd say there was a miniature sensor mask in there, just
like the one Satr and Leen used in the water plant."
That was too much for Quark. "Why would anyone put a sensor
mask inside a mural of a Tholian...." He couldn't finish the statement.
All he could think of was how much he hated the mural. How he had sworn he
would tear it down the moment Gul Dukat left the station. And how, six years
later, he still hadn't brought himself to do anything about it.
Almost as if he couldn't do anything about it.
"Something wrong, Quark?" Jadzia asked.
Quark shook his head. Wasn't there something Terrell had told him
... not recently, but before ... ?
"I'm so confused," Quark said. "I think I need to sit—"
A near-ultrasonic Ferengi scream pierced the bar.
Quark recognized it, and shoved aside Sisko and O'Brien to peer
around the back of the mural to see—
Rom, on his knees, staring into a small open access panel at the
back of the mural, his face bathed in a rapidly flashing red light.
"I... found it!" Rom squealed. "I... found the
third Orb!"
Suddenly, Odo was behind Quark, arms folded, his attitude letting
Quark know he was ready to make an arrest.
"Anything you'd like to tell me, Quark?"
"Odo, I didn't know it was there. I swear I didn't
know!"
"According to Dr. Bashir, next you're going to try to sell me
the Brooklyn Bridge."
But then Sisko was at Quark's side. "That's all right,
Constable. I don't think he did know the Orb was there."
Odo snorted, disbelieving. "How could he not?"
"For the same reason," Sisko said, "you and Garak
don't remember what happened to you on the Day of Withdrawal. Both your
memories were tampered with. And so were Quark's. And before you ask why, I'll
tell you right now I can't give you an answer. All I know is that it has
something to do with Terrell and these Orbs."
"Hmphh," Odo said.
Quark stood closer to his new best friend, the great Captain
Sisko.
"Well?" Kira asked, puzzling Quark but apparently not
Sisko.
"Put the three orbs together?" Sisko suggested.
"Maybe that's not a good idea," Kira said.
"You think they might actually cause the end of the
world?"
"What?!" Quark exploded.
"Calm down, Quark," Sisko chided him. "It's part of
the legend of Jalbador that when the three Orbs are brought together, the
Temple doors open and the world ends."
"I don't want the world to end in my bar," Quark said.
"Talk about being bad for business."
"Probably not a good idea to get them too close
together," O'Brien said. Quark could see the chief's attention was fixed
on his tricorder. "I'm picking up a lot of neutrino flux. Almost as if
some type of feedback loop is starting. That might explain the source of the
light those things are producing. I don't think the world's going to come to an
end, but we could get a blast of radiation that might do some harm."
"All right," Sisko said, holding up a hand that silenced
Quark. "You call it, Chief. Five meters apart? Two meters?"
O'Brien made an adjustment on his tricorder, then showed it to
Jadzia. "What would you say, Commander? Four meters should be safe?"
"Sure," Jadzia said. "And if you're going to send
these back with the Kai, I'd recommend sending at least one on a separate
shuttle. Just so an accident doesn't force them together."
Sisko smiled at Kira. "The Kai," he said.
"Major,
why don't you go back to the Temple and invite Kai Winn to visit
Quark's."
Kira grinned fiercely. "With pleasure." Then she marched
out into the Promenade.
"The Kai," Quark muttered. "In my bar. Might as
well close early."
He watched anxiously as Sisko lifted the newly discovered Red Orb
and carried it to the bar, keeping it well away from the other two still on the
deck in front of the mural.
While everyone else packed away their tools and prepared to leave,
Quark walked around behind the mural again. He looked inside the access panel.
"Uh ... I never knew about that tunnel, brother."
Rom's sudden, without-warning appearance was enough to make Quark
bang his head against the top of the opening.
"Neither did I," Quark said under his breath.
"But, it's a... good one to know about now," Rom said
happily.
"Why not?" Quark said. "Everyone else knows about
it now, too."
"Oh ... yeah. I forgot."
Quark walked back to the front of the mural. He couldn't believe
there was another maintenance tunnel coming into his bar that he didn't know
about. Especially one that would have been so convenient for... he shook his
head. For a moment, he thought he did remember the tunnel after all. But
if he did, then why hadn't he been using it? And why hadn't he discovered
the third Orb?
He was standing behind the bar when Sisko brought the second Orb
up to the counter.
In a gesture of good will he knew would come back
to haunt him, Quark started pouring mugs of root beer and passing
them out to everyone for free. For Jadzia. he even hand-mixed a raktajino.
Then all three Orbs were on the bar, one at each end and one dead
center, all of them flashing so rapidly that they almost appeared to glow with
steady lights.
"I... think they're pretty," Rom said, beside him.
"I think I'd like them out of my bar."
"You know, brother, you ... really should learn to take time
to appreciate the wonders all around us every day."
"That's easy for you to say. You're married to Leeta."
"I'm serious." Rom pointed to the Orb in the middle of
the countertop. "Just look at how ... gloriously the light comes alive in
that."
"Are you feeling all right?" Quark asked. Whenever Rom's
babbling began to veer toward poetry, Quark worried about his sibling.
"You're not paying attention, brother. Look more
closely." Rom started to push Quark forward, toward the Orb.
"Careful there, Rom," O'Brien warned. "Don't want
to knock one of those things over."
Quark pushed himself away from his brother. "See the trouble
you almost caused. These aren't playthings." Quark turned to the Red Orb
directly in front of him. "They're ..." He stopped as he tried to see
what was inside the Orb.
There definitely was something inside. He knew because there had
been the last time he had... "Oh, this is feeling too strange," he
whispered.
"Brother?" Rom said.
Quark peered deep within the Orb. Yes. He could
see it now. The city in the swamp. The glowing light approaching
through the trees. The ...
Quark popped open his eyes in Ferengi alarm.
"You're not moogie!"
He struck at the hideous monster before him, only at the last
moment dimly realizing it was a reflection within a reflection within the
sparkling red facets of the Orb.
"QUARK, NO!"
It could have been Captain Sisko who shouted. Or Jadzia or Chief O'Brien.
It might even have been Terrell or Odo or Garak, because they had
all been there that day, in one way or another.
But by then it was too late, and Quark held the Orb in his hand
and felt himself swung around through the air, as if he were dangling from a
length of ODN cable stretching down from an antigrav high above the Promenade
and then, when he let go and fell to the deck and looked up ...
He had no idea what he was seeing.
Besides the Orbs, of course.
The three of them were floating in midair, just a meter or so
above the deck, spinning and glowing, each just like an Orb of the Prophets,
except their lights were crimson red, flame red, blood red.
The Orbs seemed to have moved themselves to the points of an
equilateral triangle, and now twisting tendrils of light snaked out from each
Orb to link up with the others. Defining the triangle's edges. Creating a...
glow. A darkness. A distortion of some strange type. Exactly in the middle of
their formation.
Quark felt Rom drag him to his feet. He saw O'Brien try to touch
one of the Orbs and he flung back in a flash of red lightning.
He saw Jadzia standing close to the floating Orbs, aiming a
tricorder at them, a sudden strong breeze tugging at tendrils of her hair,
which fluttered past her face as if flying right into the center of the Orbs.
"Do you feel that, brother?" Rom asked.
Quark braced himself against the deck. Somehow, it felt as if the
deck were sinking in the center of his bar, drawing everything toward it.
The breeze was getting stronger. Now the flow of air blew into the
bar, swirling napkins and debris into the center of the Orbs' pattern.
And that debris wasn't being blown back out.
"We've got intensive neutrino flux!" Jadzia called out
over the intensifying wind. "A definite wormhole precursor!"
"Here?!" Sisko shouted.
Quark saw someone in a Starfleet uniform fire a phaser at one of
the Orbs, but the beam suddenly doubled in width and flashed back at the
shooter, disintegrating him.
And then Kai Winn and Major Kira were at the doorway of the bar,
the Kai's saffron robes billowed around her.
"Emissary!" she cried. "What have you done?!"
And then Quark heard the deck creak as it seemed to distort even
more and the station's pressure-failure sirens began to sound.
Quark could see Sisko tapping his communicator, giving orders,
looking wild.
His brother Rom pulled on his arm, dragging him around the bar,
giving the floating Orbs the widest possible berth.
Then the lights went out, as if the entire power grid had blown.
For a moment, the torrential wind died down and the red glow of
the Orbs diminished. Quark and Rom stumbled and ran to join the last Starfleet
stragglers fleeing his bar.
Outside in the Promenade, in the dim red glow that came from the
three floating Orbs in the bar— the only source of light in the station, it
seemed— Quark could see he was near to Captain Sisko. Without the roar of the
wind, Quark discovered he could hear again, as well. O'Brien, at Sisko's side,
was saying that the Red Orbs were drawing power from the station's fusion
reactors. With the power failure, they too had lost power. If they could just
shut down the reactors, the Orbs would be powerless.
"It's worth a try," Sisko said.
And then a dark shadow passed between Quark and Sisko, and Quark
saw Sisko go down, struck by a sudden blow to the head by some crazed
assailant.
"Abandon station!" Sisko suddenly shouted. "Chief!
Jadzia! Pass the order on to abandon station!"
"What about the reactors?" O'Brien's voice was urgent.
"Now, Chief!"
Then the pressure alarms were replaced by a siren that Quark had
only heard during drills. And never thought he'd live to hear.
Two long bursts. Two short ones.
The order to abandon the station had been relayed to Ops.
In the dim light and shadows, Quark saw Sisko push himself to his
feet, rubbing at his jaw. The captain
looked around in confusion, then tapped at his chest as he shouted
more orders.
Suddenly new sources of light appeared on the Promenade.
Golden columns of quantum mist.
Emergency beam-outs.
"Uh ... hold on to me, brother."
Quark felt Rom's fingernails dig into his arms. The wind began to
rise again. The whole station seemed to creak and flex. The glow from the bar
became brighter.
"Rom!" O'Brien shouted. "You're with me!"
Quark saw O'Brien lunge for Rom and grab his brother's arm just as
Rom held onto Quark's
"Chief!" Quark shouted. "What's happening?"
"There's a wormhole opening in the station!"
Quark felt his heart stop. A wormhole was opening in the station?
A wormhole was opening in his bar!
Quark looked past Rom and O'Brien as it seemed his bar was lit by
the literal flames of hell. Gul Dukat's pride and joy, the ridiculous mural of
Tholian or Tellarite design, suddenly exploded into a spray of splintered
glass, each glittering shard spinning madly as it was sucked down into the
center of the triangle formed by the floating, glowing Orbs.
It was the last thing Quark saw before the station flickered out
of existence before him in the swirl of the transporter.
But then, since he had lost everything, it was the last thing he
ever wanted to see.
As far as he was concerned, the legends of the Red Orbs of
Jalbador were true.
His world had come to an end.
CHAPTER 28
sisko jumped down from the Defiant's transporter pad
and ran into the corridor and to the bridge. He could already hear the ship's
impulse engines coming on line as she prepared to undock from the station.
Worf was in the command chair and he stepped out as soon as Sisko
appeared. On the main viewer, Deep Space 9 stretched out to the stars. But it
was only a dark silhouette against the Denorios Belt. All station lights were
out.
"How did you get the order to evacuate?" Sisko asked,
slipping into his chair.
"It came into Ops through Jadzia," Worf said. He was
already at tactical. "More than one thousand people are already
away."
Sisko knew just how fortunate the inhabitants and crew of the
station were. With the two Akira-class star-ships Admiral Ross had dispatched
to help with the
evacuation, more than twelve banks of transporters were operating
at once. And the main personnel banks on the Garneau and the Bondar could
retrieve more than one hundred evacuees every minute between them.
Jadzia and O'Brien were next on the bridge, followed by Bashir
and Kira.
Bashir held a medical tricorder to Sisko and Sisko winced,
suddenly realizing his jaw hurt.
"How's that feel?" the doctor asked.
"You should see the other guy," Sisko quipped. He didn't
know with whom he had collided during the evacuation, but this wasn't the time
to worry about it.
"Oh, Prophets!"
Sisko leaned forward with a smile. The exclamation had come from
Commander Arla at flight operations, the least religious Bajoran he had yet to
meet.
But before he could say anything to her about her apparent change
in faith, he saw what she saw on the viewer and all sense of amusement fled.
A large glowing sphere of red energy blossomed over a section of
the Promenade, just below Ops.
"What is that?" Sisko asked.
"The wormhole precursor," Jadzia replied. "It must
have found a new source of power, because it's continuing to accelerate."
"Worf! What's the status of the evacuation?"
"Fifteen hundred people away," Worf reported. "But
there is growing gravimetric distortion interfering with—"
Worf fell silent as a chorus of gasps filled the bridge.
The section of the habitat ring closest to the growing red sphere
of energy was beginning to buckle, bending like a broken wheel.
Sisko stared at the screen in sickened fascination. "How many
people are still on board ... ?"
"Communications are down, sir. We must withdraw."
"Release the docking clamps," he ordered.
Arla fumbled with her console until Kira touched the young Bajoran
commander on her shoulder and swiftly took over the position.
On the viewer, three escape modules launched from the habitat
ring, but instead of flying free of the station they were drawn on perfect
arcs into the red sphere.
"This can't be happening," Bashir said in shock.
" The impact of the three modules
set off a series of explosions that ringed the Promenade, and in a chain
reaction they traveled up the central core to Ops.
"Jake..." Sisko whispered, as if an icy hand clutched
his heart,' then spoke more strongly, "Did anyone see Jake?"
"He's on board," Bashir said at once.
"What about Kasidy?"
Sisko's heart sank. No one had seen her on the Defiant. His
hands tightened on the arms of his chair. Surely with the combined might of all
the vessels using transporters now, Kasidy had been among the lucky ones.
A new wave of horrified gasps escaped those observing the viewer
as a section of the habitat ring broke off and fell up into the red sphere.
"We are beginning to experience tidal distortions from an
intense gravitational source," Worf announced.
Then Jadzia made her report. "It's a wormhole, Benjamin. For
some reason it's opening about a hundred
times more slowly than the one we're used to, but it is opening."
"Get us out of here, Major."
"Aye, sir."
On the viewer, the image of Deep Space 9—what was left of
it—angled abruptly as the Defiant banked away.
And then the Starship shook violently as the viewer flared with
blue energy.
"We are under attack!" Worf shouted.
"Full power to shields!" Sisko ordered. He knew it had
to be the Jem'Hadar. The Dominion had finally reacted to—
"You're not going anywhere," Leej Terrell said from the
viewer.
Sisko leapt to his feet to face her. He recognized the bridge of
her Sagittarian cruiser. "Mr. Worf, lock on all weapons," he said.
"I cannot acquire a target."
On the viewer, Terrell was a study in triumphant rage. She pounded
a fist on the arm of her looming command chair. "Go back to your station,
Captain. You found the third Orb. Now you must join it."
"I thought you wanted the Orbs for yourself," Sisko
said, trying to goad her, as he had so recently, so long ago.
"If Cardassia can't have them, then no one can. Fire!"
Instantly the Defiant shook under another fusillade of
phaser fire.
"Worf! Where is she!"
"Her ship is cloaked, sir! I can pick up a slight modulation
when she fires, but not enough to extrapolate a course."
"Where did a Cardassian ship get a cloaking device?"
Sisko demanded to know.
The Defiant trembled as another round of phaser fire found
her.
Then Sisko heard the ship's own capacitors discharge with return
fire.
"I believe I hit her," Worf called out. "I will continue
to—"
The biggest blast yet hit the Defiant, and the ship spun on
her axis.
Each time DS9 slipped past the viewer, the red sphere was larger.
Now Sisko could see the rotating vortex was composed of red spiraling tendrils
of energy. In form, it looked just like the wormhole he had seen open so many
times. Only its color was different.
"Major Kira," Sisko said. "We need to be stabilized
so Worf can return fire."
"She's picked her targets," Kira warned. "Our
thrusters are off-line. Impulse is out. All we've got is warp and that's not
powered up yet."
"Working on it, sir!" O'Brien volunteered before he had
been asked.
"Can we get support from another ship?" Sisko asked.
"All channels are down," Jadzia said. "The other
ships are withdrawing."
"How can that be? Surely they can see we're in difficulty!"
Jadzia turned from her science station to Sisko. "Benjamin,
we're so close to that wormhole we could be within some kind of event horizon.
Those other ships might not even know we're still here."
O'Brien chimed in. "That could explain why the
wormhole seems to be opening so slowly. Those other ships might
have seen it move as quickly as the blue wormhole does. And we might have been
sucked in."
Sisko tried to follow the reasoning of his two experts. "So
we're in some kind of temporal bubble?"
"Not necessarily," Jadzia said. "It could be
straightforward relativistic time displacement We should be able to warp out
when the engines are ready, just like jumping out of a black hole."
"Thirty seconds to warp," O'Brien reported.
The Defiant shuddered as another volley hit her, then rang
with her own phasers as Worf once more returned fire. "I think I may have
hit her again," Worf said.
"Twenty seconds to warp," O'Brien counted down.
On the viewer, the red wormhole now obscured more than half of DS9.
Sisko watched as the station's upper docking pylons begin to twist down to the
red distortion, hull plates popping loose like autumn leaves in a storm. Then
one of the pylons broke free entirely as an explosion engulfed its base. It
tumbled into the wormhole, visibly breaking up into still smaller pieces. Then
it disappeared.
Another explosion shook the Defiant. Translator sparks
erupted from Worf's tactical station and the Klingon had to jump back as the
automatic fire-suppression system engulfed his console with anaerobic vapor.
"Ten seconds," O'Brien said.
"Major," Sisko ordered, "prepare to get us out of
here."
Another hit.
"Shields at thirty-seven percent," Kira announced.
"We can't take much more."
And then on the viewer, as if it were no more than a crumpled
piece of tissue being pulled down a drain, Deep Space 9 fell in on itself,
shattering like brittle ice, each shard drawn spinning into the endless, infinite
tunnel of the red wormhole at its heart.
Sisko felt a part of himself vanishing into that ravenous maw, to
be lost forever along with his station.
"They all got off in time," he chanted softly to himself,
willing his words to be true. "They had to get off in time."
"We have warp!" O'Brien announced.
On screen, the red wormhole continued to expand, continued to
open, its unwinding coils of negative energy now reaching out for the Defiant.
Sisko fell back in his chair, gripped the arms. "Now,
Major!"
"Never!" Terrell's voice echoed from all the bridge
speakers at once.
And then a final blast of phaser fire hit the Starship just as she
went to warp. And the first tendrils of the wormhole brushed across her hull to
claim her.
No one on board the Defiant had a chance.
They were all engulfed in a red flash of overwhelming intensity,
the sheer magnitude of which exceeded anything in their entire experience of
existence.
And then each moment dissolved into the next.
Until there was only the silence and the darkness of endless
infinite space ...
CHAPTER 29
she tumbled dead in space. No running lights. No
engine glow. Her only signature a faint infrared glow which testified to a
barely functioning life-support system, and the fragile lives of the
thirty-three people who still survived onboard.
There was no wormhole near her now. No sun. No planets.
And no hope.
Sisko awoke to the cool sting of a hypospray.
The bridge was dark, but enough display screens functioned for him
to see Bashir kneeling at his side.
"Casualties?" It was any captain's first thought, first
worry.
"Five dead in engineering," Bashir said. "A coolant
leak. A dozen injuries. Nothing serious. And Jake's fine. He's helping clean up
sickbay."
"Thank you, Doctor."
Sisko reached out, found the edge of his command chair, and used
it to brace himself as he rose to his feet.
He could smell smoke and ozone, and the damp soapy scent of the
fire-suppression sprays. But there were no wailing sirens. The ship was in one
piece. They had survived.
Then he looked at the viewer, saw only stars there.
Closed his eyes. Saw Deep Space 9.
He found Jadzia. A small medical patch on her forehead.
"Your hair's a mess, Old Man," he said.
Jadzia smiled up at him, tightly. "Thank you, Benjamin. You
know exactly what to say to make a girl feel her best."
"Any sign of Terrell?"
Jadzia shook her head.
"Communications back on-line?"
"There's no subspace distortion, if that's what you mean. But
I'm not picking up anything."
Sisko looked back at the viewer with a sudden rush of
apprehension. "Did we travel through the wormhole?"
The last thing he wanted was for the Defiant to become
another Voyager, tossed tens of thousands of light-years from home.
"No. Those are local stars," Jadzia said. "But we
are having trouble getting a fix on exactly where we are."
Sisko was suddenly aware of Major Kira beside him. Her face drawn,
her eyes dark. She held out a padd. "I found out why our navigation charts
aren't
working." She handed Jadzia the padd. "It's not a
question of where we are. It's when we are."
Sisko squinted sideways at the calculations Jadzia scrolled
through on the padd. "We've travelled through time?"
Jadzia nodded. "From the drift in star positions ...
twenty-four... almost twenty-five years." She looked up. Her face held the
same haunted expression as Kira's. "Benjamin, we've come forward to the
year 2400."
Sisko exhaled in shock. "How can that be?"
"It has to be the wormhole," Jadzia said.
"Captain," Kira asked, "we will be able to go back,
won't we?"
"Of... of course," Sisko said. "We can ... we can
slingshot back around a star...."
"Not really, Benjamin." Jadzia seemed apologetic.
"If we didn't travel here along a slingshot trajectory, we have no path to
follow back."
"But there has to be a way, doesn't there?" Kira
asked.
Sisko mind raced with possibilities. "We'll find a way. We'll
contact the Federation Department of Temporal Investigations. Twenty-five
years is a long time. There must have been some major breakthroughs in temporal
mechanics. They'll be able to help us." Sisko turned to address his bridge
crew. "Just remember, we have to follow Starfleet regulations to the
letter. We can't afford to learn anything about the time we're in, so we won't
alter the timeline when we—"
Sisko flew through the air as the bridge echoed with thunder.
"We are under attack again!" Worf said. "Cloaked
vessel dead ahead!"
Sisko forced himself to stand. He could taste blood in his mouth
from his fall. "Terrell..." he said. "However we got here, she
came with us."
"I do not think so," Worf said as a collision alarm
began sounding. "The ship is decloaking, and it is not hers."
Sisko stared at the viewer as a strange rippling checkerboard
effect, unlike any cloak he had ever seen, distorted the stars until a ship
became visible.
And though it was a class he didn't know, his apprehension became
relief as he recognized the hallmarks of Starfleet design: twin warp nacelles
set back for safety, a lower engineering hull, an upper command hull. Each
element was elongated to an extreme degree, and the command hull had what
appeared to be two forward-facing projections that resembled battering rams,
but overall it was a welcome sight.
"That's quite a ship, Benjamin. It's close to a kilometer
long, and I'm reading eighteen different phaser systems onboard. At
least I think they're phasers."
Sisko smiled. "That's all right, Old Man. At least it's on
our side. Commander Worf, open a channel."
"Channel open, sir."
"Attention, unidentified Starfleet vessel. This is Captain
Benjamin Sisko of the Starship Defiant. My crew and I have been
displaced in time and—"
"That's impossible," Kira said.
Sisko saw it, too. Didn't understand.
The huge vessel had come about so that its forward hull filled the
viewer. And from that angle, the ship's name was clear.
[7.5.5. Opaka.
"How could a warship be named for a woman of peace?"
Kira asked, incredulous.
Sisko was uncomfortable with even seeing the details of the ship's
design and learning its name. "Dax, degrade viewer resolution by fifty
percent and disable recording. We can't take any of these details home with
us."
He returned to stand by his command chair. "This is Captain
Sisko of the Defiant to the captain of the U.S.S. Opaka. We are
displaced in time. Under Starfleet regulations, we request that you do not communicate
directly with us in order to allow us to preserve our timeline. We will
require—"
"Incoming message," Worf interrupted.
"They have to know better," Sisko said. "We can't
risk receiving it. Jam it, Mr. Worf."
"No good, Captain. They're using a type of multiplexing I
have not—"
And then a familiar face formed on the viewer. His hair and beard
were pure white, his features lined and wrinkled, but he was unmistakable to
everyone on the Defiant who had encountered him four years ago—or
twenty-nine years ago.
"Captain Sisko," the commander of the Starship Opaka began,
"this is Captain Thomas Riker. Good to see you again, sir. And welcome
back."
Sisko tried to make sense of the uniform Riker wore. It seemed to
be closer to a Bajoran style, though in black and rust colors. Yet on his chest
he wore a version of the classic Starfleet delta in gold, backed by an
upside-down triangle in blue.
"Captain Riker," Sisko said. "I appreciate the contact,
and I'm glad to see you're no longer in Cardassian custody. But by talking to
us directly, you're
making it difficult for us to go back to our own time."
Riker laughed. "I wouldn't worry about that, Captain.
You can learn all you want about the future— because this is where you and your
crew are going to stay."
Sisko squared his shoulders. "No, Captain Riker, we are not.
One way or another, we want to return to our own time and our own lives."
Riker leaned to the side of his chair as if his back was sore.
"Captain, I don't care what the hell you want to do. Your place is
here and always has been. As for your ship and crew, every resource is needed
for the war, and I'm not letting the Defiant get away."
"What war?" Sisko asked. Could it be possible that the
Federation and the Dominion were still battling for control of the quadrant?
"Sir!" Worf suddenly announced. "Three ships
approaching on an attack vector!"
"Cardassian?" Sisko asked. "Jem'Hadar?"
Worf looked up at Sisko in surprise. "No, sir ... from their
identification signals, they are also Starfleet vessels."
Suddenly a barrage of explosions surrounded the Defiant, shaking
her badly.
On the viewer, Riker vanished and was replaced by an image of the Opaka
firing needle-thin lances of silver energy at the approaching ships.
"All three of the new vessels have locked their weapons on
us," Worf reported.
Riker reappeared on the viewer, eyes afire with rage.
"The War of the Prophets is coming! Choose your side,
Emissary—because this is your war now!"
Then the bridge of the Defiant fell silent, as everyone
turned to their captain. And waited for Sisko to make his decision.
TO BE CONTINUED IN ...
DEEP SPACE NINE®
MILLENNIUM
BOOK II of III
THE WAR OF THE PROPHETS